Skip to content

t18d/attested-conjectures

Repository files navigation

title description permalink seo
Database of Greek and Latin Conjectural Emendations Attested in MSS
A hard look at the soft practice of textual criticism
/
type
Dataset

Database of Greek and Latin Conjectural Emendations Attested in MSS

a project of Open Source by Tonkünstler-on-the-Bund




This database is searchable as three CSV files (Greek, Latin, OT/NT). The quickest way to get an addition or correction merged is to fork the repo, edit the CSV file and send in a pull request. Scope and formatting are explained in project Wiki. For changes relating to NT conjectures, please notify the upstream as well.

 
Bibliography

Theory

  • Hine, Harry, comment on 'confirmed conjectures', database Wiki (22 Jan. 2024).
  • Housman, A. E., M. Annaei Lucani belli civilis libri decem (Oxford, 1927), xxix.
  • James, Patrick, review of The Oxyrhynchus Papyri. Volume LXXXI, in The Classical Review, 68/2 (2018), 396.
  • Kenney, E. J., The Classical Text: Aspects of Editing in the Age of the Printed Book (Berkeley, 1974), 145.

Sources

  • P.Lond.Lit.
  • P.Oxy. I, II, III, IV, V, VI, VII, VIII, IX, X, XI, XIII, XV, XVII, XIX, XX, XXII, XXIV, XXVI, XXVII, XXXI, XXXII, XXXVIII, XLI, XLII, XLIV, XLV, XLVII, XLVIII, XLIX, L, LIII, LIV, LVI, LVII, LIX, LX, LXI, LXII, LXIII, LXIV, LXVI, LXVII, LXVIII, LXXV, LXXVI, LXXVIII, LXXIX, LXXXI, LXXXIV (LXXXV, LXXXVII unavailable)
  • P.Ryl. I, III
  • Adler, Ada (ed.), Suidae lexicon, 4 vols (Munich, 1928–35).
  • Aeschines, Orationes, ed. Mervin R. Dilts (Stuttgart, 1997).
  • Alciphro Rhetor, Epistolae, ed. E. E. Seiler (Leipzig, 1853), x.
  • Alciphro Rhetor, Epistularum libri IV, ed. Menno Anton Schepers (Groningen, 1901).
  • Alciphro Rhetor, Epistularum libri IV, ed. M. A. Schepers (Leipzig, 1905), vii–xviii.
  • Ammianus Marcellinus, Rerum gestarum libri qui supersunt, ed. V. Gardthausen (Leipzig, 1874–5).
  • Ammianus Marcellinus, Rerum gestarum libri qui supersunt, ed. Charles U. Clark (Berlin, 1910–15).
  • Ammien Marcellin, Histoire, i, ed. Édouard Galletier (Paris, 1968).
  • Ammien Marcellin, Histoire, v, ed. Marie-Anne Marié (Paris, 1984).
  • Ammien Marcellin, Histoire, iii, ed. Jacques Fontaine (Paris, 1996). (ii, iv, vi unavailable)
  • Andocides, Orationes, ed. J. H. Lipsius (Leipzig, 1888), xviiii.
  • Antiphon, Orationes et fragmenta adiunctis Gorgiae, Antisthenis, Alcidamantis declamationibus, ed. Friedrich Blass (Leipzig, 1881).
  • Apollonius Rhodius, Argonautica, ed. Hermann Fränkel (Oxford, 1961).
  • Appianus, Historia Romana, ed. P. Viereck and A. G. Roos, 2 vols (Leipzig, 1905–39).
  • Apuleius Platonicus Madaurensis, De philosophia libri, ed. Paul Thomas (Stuttgart, 1970).
  • Apuleius Platonicus Madaurensis, De philosophia libri, ed. C. Moreschini (Stuttgart, 1991).
  • Aratus, Phaenomena, ed. Douglas Kidd (Cambridge, 1997).
  • Aristophanes, Fabulae, ed. N. G. Wilson, 2 vols (Oxford, 2007).
  • Aristoteles, Quae feruntur de plantis …, ed. Otto Apelt (Leipzig, 1888).
  • Aristoteles, Atheniensium respublica, ed. F. G. Kenyon (Oxford, 1920).
  • Aristoteles, Metaphysica, ed. W. Jaeger (Oxford, 1957).
  • Aristote, Du Ciel, ed. Paul Moraux (Paris, 1965).
  • Aristote, Topiques, ed. Jacques Brunschwig, 2 vols (Paris, 1967–2007).
  • Aristoteles, Privatorum scriptorum fragmenta, ed. Marian Plezia (Leipzig, 1977).
  • Aristoteles, Ethica Eudemia, ed. R. R. Waltzer and J. Μ. Mingay (Oxford, 1991).
  • Aristotle, Poetics, ed. Leonardo Tarán and Dimitri Gutas (Leiden, 2012).
  • Arrianos, Alexandrou anabasis, i, ed. K. W. Krüger (Berlin, 1835).
  • Arrianus, Flavius, Alexandri anabasis, scripta minora et fragmenta, ed. A. G. Roos, 2 vols (Leipzig, 1967–8).
  • Asconius Pedianus, Q., Orationum Ciceronis quinque enarratio, ed. Albert Curtis Clark (Oxford, 1907).
  • Asztalos, Monika, Tor Ivar Østmoe, et al., Repertory of Conjectures on Horace, University of Oslo, accessed 9 Feb. 2024.
  • Athenaeus Naucratita, Dipnosophistarum libri XV, iii, ed. Georg Kaibel (Leipzig, 1887).
  • Athenaeus, Deipnosophistae, ed. S. P. Peppink, 2 vols (Leiden, 1936–9).
  • Ausonius, Decimus Magnus, Burdigalensis opuscula, ed. Rudolf Peiper (Leipzig, 1886).
  • Avianus, Fabulae, ed. Antonio Guaglianone (Turin, 1958).
  • Battezzato, Luigi, 'Livineius' unpublished Euripidean marginalia', Revue d'histoire des textes, 30 (2000), 323–48.
  • Berlincourt, Valéry, 'Emericus Cruceus’ Conjectures on the Thebaid and the Achilleid (1620). A Supplement to the New Edition of Statius’ Epics', Mnemosyne, 64 (2011), 285–94.
  • Billerbeck, Margarethe, and Mario Somazzi, Repertorium der Konjekturen in den Seneca-Tragödien (Leiden, 2009).
  • Borges, Cassandra, and C. Michael Sampson, New literary papyri from the Michigan collection: mythographic lyric and a catalogue of poetic first lines (Ann Arbor, 2012), 20.
  • Botley, Paul, Richard ‘Dutch’ Thomson, c. 1569–1613 (Leiden, 2016), 105.
  • Brink, C. O. (= K. O.), Horace on Poetry (Cambridge, 1971).
  • Buecheler, Franz (ed.), Petronii Saturae et liber Priapeorum (Berlin, 1904).
  • Caesar, C. Iulius, Commentarii belli civilis, ed. Alfred Klotz (Leipzig, 1926).
  • Caesar, C. Iulius, Commentarii belli Alexandrini, belli Africi, belli Hispaniensis, ed. Alfred Klotz (Leipzig, 1927).
  • Caesar, C. Iulius, Bellum Gallicum, ed. Otto Seel (Leipzig, 1968).
  • Callimachus, Fragmenta, ed. Rudolf Pfeiffer (Oxford, 1949).
  • Callimachus, Hymni et Epigrammata, ed. Rudolf Pfeiffer (Oxford, 1953).
  • Callimachus, The Hymns, ed. Susan A. Stephens (Oxford, 2015).
  • Calpurnius Siculus, T., Ecloga VII, ed. Lucia di Salvo (Bologna, 1990).
  • Cassius Dio Cocceianus, Historiarum Romanarum quae supersunt, ed. Ursul Philip Boissevain (Berlin, 1895–1901).
  • Cato, M. Porcus, De agri cultura liber, ed. Heinrich Keil (Leipzig, 1884).
  • Chariton Aphrodisiensis, De Callirhoe narrationes amatoriae, ed. B. P. Reardon (Munich, 2004).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes pro Sex. Roscio, de imperio Cn. Pompei, pro Cluentio, in Catilinam, pro Murena, pro Caelio, ed. Albert Curtis Clark (Oxford, 1905).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Paradoxa stoicorum, Academicorum reliquiae cum Lucullo, Timaeus, De natura deorum, De divinatione, De fato, ed. Otto Plasberg (Leipzig, 1908–11).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes pro Quinctio, pro Q. Roscio Comoedo, pro Caecina, de lege agraria contra Rullum, pro C. Rabirio perduellionis reo, pro L. Flacco, in L. Pisonem, pro C. Rabirio Postumo, ed. Albert Curtis Clark (Oxford, 1909).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Ad Q. fratrem epistularum libri tres, ed. H. Sjögren (Uppsala, 1911).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes pro Tullio, pro Fonteio, pro Sulla, pro Archia, pro Plancio, pro Scauro, ed. Albert Curtis Clark (Oxford, 1911).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes: Divinatio in Q. Caecilium, In C. Verrem, ed. William Peterson (Oxford, 1916).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Ad Atticum epistularum libri sedecim, ed. H. Sjögren, G. Thörnell and A. Önnerfors (Uppsala, 1916–60).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes pro Milone, pro Marcello, pro Ligario, pro rege Deiotaro, Philippicae I–XIV, ed. Albert Curtis Clark (Oxford, 1918).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orationes cum senatui gratias egit, cum populo gratias egit, de domo, de haruspicum responsis, pro Sestio, in Vatinium, pro Caelio, de provinciis consularibus, pro Balbo, in Pisonem, pro Rabirio Postumo, pro Scauro, ed. A. Klotz and F. Schoell (Leipzig, 1919).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, In Q. Caecilium divinatio, in C. Verrem actio I et II, ed. A. Klotz (Leipzig, 1923).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, De divinatione, De fato, Timaeus, ed. Remo Giomini (Leipzig, 1975).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Orator, ed. Rolf Westman (Munich, 1980).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Tusculanae Disputationes, ed. Michaelangelus Giusta (Turin, 1984).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Pro A. Cluentio Habito oratio, ed. Silvia Rizzo (Rome, 1991).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Oratio pro P. Quinctio, ed. Michael D. Reeve (Leipzig, 1992).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Oraliones in P. Vatinium testem et Pro M. Caelio, ed. Tadeusz Maslowski (Stuttgart, 1995).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, Oraliones in L. Catilinam quattuor, ed. Tadeusz Maslowski (Munich, 2003).
  • Cicero, M. Tullius, De finibus bonorum et malorum, ed. Claudio Moreschini (Munich, 2005).
  • Citti, V., and R. Dawe, 'Congetture ad Eschilo dalle edizioni cinquecentine', Lexis, 22 (2004), 249–60.
  • Clark, Albert C., Anecdota Oxoniensia, x: The Vetus Cluniacensis of Poggio (Oxford, 1905). ('A. C. Clark's finest work')
  • Clark, Albert C., Anecdota Oxoniensia, xi: Inventa Italorum (Oxford, 1909).
  • Claudianus, Claudius, Carmina, ed. John Barrie Hall (Leipzig, 1985).
  • Claudius Donatus, Tiberius, Ad Tiberium Claudium Maximum Donatianum filium suum interpretationes Vergilianae, ii, ed. Heinrich Georges (Leipzig, 1906).
  • Clausen, W. V., J. A. Richmond et al. (eds), Appendix Vergiliana (Oxford, 1967).
  • Courtney, Edward, The Fragmentary Latin Poets (Oxford, 1993). ('obscura diligentia')
  • Demosthenes, Orationes, ed. S. H. Butcher and W. Rennie, 3 vols (Oxford, 1903–31).
  • Demosthenes, Orationes, ed. M. R. Dilts, 4 vols (Oxford, 2002–9).
  • Dietsch, Rudolf (ed.), Gai Sallusti Crispi quae supersunt, i (Leipzig, 1859).
  • Diggle, James, 'Apologies to Bothe (and Others)', in Euripidea: collected essays (Oxford, 1994), 518–23.
  • Dinarchus, Orationes cum fragmentis, ed. Nicos C. Conomis (Leipzig, 1975).
  • Diodorus, Bibliotheca historica, ii, ed. Friedrich Vogel (Leipzig, 1890).
  • Diodorus, Bibliotheca historica, v, ed. Curt Theodor Fischer (Leipzig, 1906).
  • Diodore de Sicile, Bibliothèque historique, livre XII, ed. Michel Casevitz (Paris, 1972).
  • Diogenes Laertius, Vitae philosophorum, ed. Miroslav Marcovich (Berlin, 2008).
  • Diogenes Laertius, Lives of Eminent Philosophers, ed. Tiziano Dorandi (Cambridge, 2013).
  • Dionysius Halicarnasensis, Antiquitatum Romanarum quae supersunt, i–ii, ed. Carl Jacoby (Leipzig, 1885–8).
  • Dionysius Halicarnaseus, Opuscula, ed. Hermann Usener and Ludwig Radermacher, 2 vols (Leipzig, 1899–1904).
  • Driver, G. R., 'Hebrew Scrolls', The Journal of Theological Studies, 2 (1951), 17–30.
  • El-Maghrabi, M. G., and C. Römer (eds), Texts from the "Archive" of Socrates, the Tax Collector, and Other Contexts at Karanis (P. Cair. Mich. II) (Berlin, 2015), 48.
  • Eschilo, Agamennone, ed. Enrico Medda (Rome, 2017).
  • Eschilo, Supplici, ed. Carles Miralles, Vittorio Citti and Liana Lomiento (Rome, 2019).
  • Euripides, Fabulae, ed. J. Diggle, 3 vols (Oxford, 1984–94).
  • Finglass, P. J., 'Unpublished conjectures at Leiden on the Greek dramatists', Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies, 49/2 (2009), 187–221.
  • Finglass, P. J., 'Unpublished Conjectures on Sophocles by Jeremiah Markland', Greek, Roman, and Byzantine Studies, 51/2 (2011), 232–8.
  • Finglass, Patrick J. 'Il valore dei papiri per la critica testuale di Sofocle', in Il valore dei papiri per la critica testuale di Sofocle (Florence, 2013), 33–51.
  • Finglass, P. J. 'Editions of Sappho since the Renaissance', in The Cambridge Companion to Sappho (Cambridge, 2021), 247–59 at 255.
  • Frontinus, Iulius, Strategemata, ed. Robert I. Ireland (Leipzig, 1990).
  • Frontinus, De aquaeductu urbis Romae, ed. R. H. Rodgers (Cambridge, 2004).
  • Fronto, M. Cornelius, Epistulae, ed. Michael P. J. van den Hout (Leipzig, 1988).
  • Galán Vioque, Guillermo, 'Joseph Scaliger’s Notes on Quintus of Smyrna’s Posthomerica', Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies, 55 (2015), 946–68.
  • Gallavotti, Carlo (ed.), Theocritus quique feruntur bucolici Graeci (Rome, 1993).
  • Galletier, Édouard, Panégyriques latins, 3 vols (Paris, 1949–55).
  • Gellius, A., Noctium Atticarum libri XX, ed. Martin Hertz (Berlin, 1883–5).
  • Gerber, Douglas E. 'Emendations in the Odes of Pindar: An Historical Analysis', Entretiens Hardt, 31 (1984), 1–25.
  • Grenfell, B. P., 'The Value of Papyri for the Textual Criticism of Extant Greek Authors', The Journal of Hellenic Studies, 39 (1919), 16–36.
  • Håkanson, Lennart (ed.), Declamationes XIX maiores Quintiliano falso ascriptae (Stuttgart, 1982).
  • Hall, J. B., Prolegomena to Claudian (Oxford, 1986).
  • Havet, Louis, Manuel de critique verbale appliquée aux textes latins (Paris, 1911).
  • Harpocration, Lexeis of the Ten Orators, ed. John J. Keaney (Amsterdam, 1991).
  • Hérodote, Histoires, ed. Ph.-E. Legrand (Paris, 1954–64).
  • Herodotus, Historiae, ed. Haiim B. Rosén, 2 vols (Leipzig, 1987–97).
  • Herodotus, Historiae, ed. N. G. Wilson, 2 vols (Oxford, 2015).
  • Hesiod, Works and Days, ed. M. L. West (Oxford, 1978).
  • Hesiodus, Theogonia, Opera et dies, Scutum, ed. Friedrich Solmsen (Oxford, 1983).
  • Hohl, Ernst (ed.), Scriptores historiae Augustae, 2 vols (Leipzig, 1965).
  • Homerus, Opera, ed. Thomas W. Allen (Oxford, 1917–31).
  • Homerus, Ilias, ed. Martin L. West, 2 vols (Munich, 1998–2000).
  • Homerus, Ilias, ed. Helmut van Thiel (Hildesheim, 2010).
  • Homerus, Odyssea, ed. Martin L. West (Berlin, 2017).
  • Horatius Flaccus, Q., Opera, i: Carminum libri IIII, epodon liber, Carmen Saeculare, ed. Otto Keller (Leipzig, 1899).
  • Isocrates, Opera omnia, ed. Basil G. Mandilaras, 2 vols (Munich, 2003).
  • Iustinus, M. Iunianus, Epitoma historiarum Philippicarum Pompei Trogi, ed. Otto Seel (Stuttgart, 1985).
  • Iuvenalis, D. Iunius, Saturae sedecim, ed. James Willis (Stuttgart, 1997).
  • Kannicht, Richard (ed.), Tragicorum Graecorum Fragmenta (TrGF), v: Euripides (Göttingen, 2004).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), iv: Aristophon — Crobylus (Berlin, 1983).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), iii/2: Aristophanes: Testimonia et fragmenta (Berlin, 1984).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), v: Damoxenus — Magnes (Berlin, 1986).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), vii: Menecrates — Xenophon (Berlin, 1989).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), ii: Agathenor — Aristonymus (Berlin, 1991).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), vi/2: Menander: Testimonia et fragmenta apud scriptores servata (Berlin, 1998).
  • Kassel, R., and C. Austin (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), i: Comoedia dorica mimi Phlyaces (Berlin, 2001).
  • Kassel, R., and St. Schröder (eds), Poetae comici Graeci (PCG), vi/1: Menander: Dyscolus et fabulae quarum fragmenta in papyris membranisque servata sunt (Berlin, 2022).
  • Kayachev, Boris (ed.), Ciris (Swansea, 2020).
  • Kayser, C. L. (ed.), Flavii Philostrati quae supersunt, Philostrati Junioris Imagines, Callistrati Descriptiones (Turin, 1844).
  • Keller, Otto (ed.), Rerum naturalium scriptores Graeci minores, i (Leipzig, 1877).
  • Kenyon, Frederic George, The Evidence of Greek Papyri with Regard to Textual Criticism (London, 1904).
  • Kiss, Dániel, Catullus Online: An Online Repertory of Conjectures on Catullus, accessed 13 Feb. 2024.
  • Krans, Jan, 'Release Notes', The Amsterdam Database of New Testament Conjectural Emendation (updated quarterly), accessed periodically.
  • Krans-Plaisier, Jan, 'Amsterdam Database: Conjectures with Attestation', the Amsterdam NT Weblog (2 Dec. 2023), accessed 14 Dec. 2023.
  • La Penna, Antonio, and Rodolfo Funari (eds), C. Sallusti Crispi Historiae, i: Fragmenta 1.1–146 (Berlin, 2015).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita libri, iii, ed. Moritz Müller (Leipzig, 1884).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita libri, ii/i, ed. Moritz Müller (Leipzig, 1899).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita libri, i, ed. Moritz Müller (Leipzig, 1902).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita, i, ed. Robert Seymour Conway and Charles Flamstead Walters (Oxford, 1914).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita, ii, ed. Charles Flamstead Walters and Robert Seymour Conway (Oxford, 1919).
  • Livius, Titus, Ab urbe condita, v, ed. Alexander Hugh McDonald (Oxford, 1965).
  • Lucanus, M. Annaeus, Belli civilis libri decem, ed. A. E. Housman (Oxford, 1927).
  • Lucien, Œuvres, ed. Jacques Bompaire, 3 vols (Paris, 1993–2003). (tome IV unavailable)
  • Luck, Georg (ed.), Albii Tibulli aliorumque carmina (Stuttgart, 1998).
  • Lycophron, Alexandra, ed. Lorenzo Mascialino (Leipzig, 1964).
  • Lykophron, Alexandra, ed. Simon Hornblower (Oxford, 2015).
  • Lycurgus, Oratio in Leocratem, ed. Nicos C. Conomis (Leipzig, 1970).
  • Lysias, Orationes cum fragmentis, ed. C. Carey (Oxford, 2007).
  • Malcovati, Enrica (ed.), L. Annaei Flori quae exstant (Rome, 1972).
  • Manilius, M., Astronomica, ed. George P. Goold (Stuttgart, 1998).
  • Markus, D., and G. Schwendner, 'Seneca’s Medea in Egypt (663–704)', ZPE, 117 (1997), 73–84.
  • Marshall, P. K., The Manuscript Tradition of Cornelius Nepos (Oxford, 1977), 43.
  • Martialis, M. Valerius, Epigrammaton libri, ed. W. Heraeus and Jacob Borovskij (Leipzig, 1976).
  • Nemesianus, Cynegetica, ed. Rainer Jakobi (Berlin, 2014).
  • Nepos, Cornelius, Vitae cum fragmentis, ed. Peter K. Marshall (Leipzig, 1985).
  • Nicandre, Œuvres, ed. Jean-Marie Jacques, 2 vols (Paris, 2002–7).
  • Nonnos de Panopolis, Les Dionysiaques, i, ed. Francis Vian (Paris, 1976).
  • Nonnos de Panopolis, Les Dionysiaques, ii, ed. Pierre Chuvin (Paris, 1976).
  • Oppianus Apameensis, Cynegetica, ed. Manolis Papathomopoulos (Munich, 2003).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Fastorum libri sex, ed. R. Merkel (Berlin, 1841).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Amores, epistulae, medic. fac. fem., ars amat., remedia amoris, ed. R. Ehwald (Leipzig, 1888).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Tristium libri quinque, Ibis, ex Ponto libri quattuor, Halieutica fragmenta, ed. S. G. Owen (Oxford, 1915).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Heroidas, i, ed. Remus Giomini (Rome, 1963). (ii unavailable)
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Tristia, ed. Georg Luck (Heidelberg, 1967).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Ex Ponto libri quattuor, ed. J. A. Richmond (Leipzig, 1990).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Tristia, ed. John Barrie Hall (Stuttgart, 1995).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Fastorum libri sex, ed. E. H. Alton, D. E. W. Wormell, E. Courtney (Munich, 1996).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Metamorphoses, ed. R. J. Tarrant (Oxford, 2004).
  • Ovidius Naso, P., Carmina amatoria, ed. Antonio Ramírez de Verger (Munich, 2006).
  • Page, D. L. (ed.), Poetae melici Graeci (Oxford, 1967).
  • Pascal, Carlo (ed.), Carmina ludicra Romanorum (Turin, 1918).
  • Pausanias, Graeciae descriptio, ed. Maria Helena Rocha-Pereira, 3 vols (Leipzig, 1989–90).
  • Persius Flaccus, A., and D. Iunius Iuvenalis, Saturae, ed. W. V. Clausen (Oxford, 1966).
  • Petronius Arbiter, Satirarum reliquiae, ed. Franz Bücheler (Berlin, 1862).
  • Philo Alexandrinus, Opera quae supersunt, ed. Paul Wendland, Leopold Cohn and Siegfried Reiter, 6 vols (Berlin, 1896–1915).
  • Philostratus, Flavius, Heroicus, ed. Ludo de Lannoy (Leipzig, 1977).
  • Philostratus, Flavius, Vita Apollonii Tyanei, ed. Gerard Boter (Berlin, 2022).
  • Photius, Patriarchae lexicon, ed. Christos Theodoridis, 3 vols (Berlin, 1982–2013).
  • Places, Édouard des (ed.), Oracles chaldaïques avec un choix de commentaires anciens (Paris, 1971).
  • Plato, Opera, iii, ed. John Burnet (Oxford, 1903).
  • Platon, Théétète, ed. Auguste Diès (Paris, 1924).
  • Platon, Le Sophiste, ed. Auguste Diès (Paris, 1925).
  • Platon, Les Lois (livres VII–X), ed. Auguste Diès (Paris, 1956).
  • Plato, Gorgias, ed. E. R. Dodds (Oxford, 1959).
  • Plato, Meno, ed. R. S. Bluck (Cambridge, 1961).
  • Platon, Timée — Critias, ed. Albert Rivaud (Paris, 1963).
  • Platon, Gorgias — Ménon, ed. Alfred Croiset (Paris, 1965).
  • Platon, Parménide, ed. Auguste Diès (Paris, 1965).
  • Platon, Philèbe, ed. Auguste Diès (Paris, 1966).
  • Platon, Phèdre, ed. Claudio Moreschini (Paris, 1985).
  • Plautus, T. Maccus, Comoediae, ii/iv, ed. Georg Goetz (Leipzig, 1883).
  • Plautus, T. Maccus, Comoediae, i/i, ed. Fritz Schöll (Leipzig, 1884).
  • Plautus, T. Maccus, Comoediae, ii/v, ed. Georg Goetz and Gustav Loewe (Leipzig, 1884).
  • Plautus, Comoediae, ii, ed. Friedrich Leo (Berlin, 1906).
  • Plinius Secundus, C., Naturalis historia: libri XXXVII, ed. Karl Mayhoff (Munich, 1892–1909).
  • Plinius Caecilius Secundus, C., Epistularum libri decem, ed. R. A. B. Mynors (Oxford, 1963).
  • Pline le Jeune, Lettres, iii, ed. Anne-Marie Guillemin (Paris, 1967).
  • Plutarchus, Cimon, ed. Arnold Ekker (Utrecht, 1843).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, ii, ed. Frank Cole Babbitt (Cambridge, 1928).
  • Plutarchus, Moralia, ed. M. Pohlenz, K. Hubert, et al., 7 vols (Leipzig, 1929–78).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, iv–v, ed. Frank Cole Babbitt (Cambridge, 1936).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, vi, ed. W. C. Helmbold (Cambridge, 1939).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, xii, ed. (Harold Cherniss and) William C. Helmbold (Cambridge, 1957).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, vii, ed. Phillip H. De Lacy and Benedict Einarson (Cambridge, 1959).
  • Plutarch, Moralia, xiv, ed. Benedict Einarson and Phillip H. De Lacy (Cambridge, 1967).
  • Plutarchus, Vitae parallelae, ed. Konrat Ziegler and Hans Gärtner, 3 vols (Munich, 1973–2000).
  • Polybe, Histoires livres VII–VIII et XI, ed. Raymond Weil (Paris, 1982).
  • Polybe, Histoires livre XI, ed. Raymond Weil (Paris, 1990).
  • Propertius, Sextus, Elegiarum libri IV, ed. Paolo Fedeli (Munich, 1994).
  • Ptolemæus, Claudius, Geographia, i, ed. Carl Müller (Paris, 1883).
  • Publilius Syrus Mimus, Sententiae, ed. Otto Friedrich (Berlin, 1880).
  • Quintilianus, M. Fabus, Institutionis oratoriae libri duodecim, i, ed. M. Winterbottom (Oxford, 1970). (ii unavailable)
  • Quintus de Smyrne, La Suite d'Homère, ed. Francis Vian, 2 vols (Paris, 1963–6). (tome III unavailable)
  • Radt, Stefan (ed.), Tragicorum Graecorum Fragmenta (TrGF), iii: Aeschylus (Göttingen, 1985).
  • Radt, Stefan (ed.), Tragicorum Graecorum Fragmenta (TrGF), iv: Sophocles (2nd edn, Göttingen, 1999).
  • Reeve, M. D., 'Tricipitinus's Son', Zeitschrift für Papyrologie und Epigraphik, 22 (1976), 21–31.
  • Reeve, M. D., 'Acidalius on Manilius', The Classical Quarterly, 41/1 (1991), 226–39.
  • Reynolds, L. D. (ed.), Texts and Transmission: A Survey of the Latin Classics (Oxford, 1983).
  • Rossbach, Otto, De Senecae philosophi librorum recensione et emendatione (Breslau, 1888).
  • Rowe, Christopher, Aristotelica: Studies on the Text of Aristotle’s Eudemian Ethics (Oxford, 2023).
  • Sappho and Alcaeus, Fragmenta, ed. Eva-Maria Voigt (Amsterdam, 1971).
  • Schenkl, Karl, 'Valckenarii animadversiones in Philostratos', Wiener Studien, 14 (1892), 270.
  • Schneider, Otto (ed.), Nicandrea (Leipzig, 1856).
  • Schöll, Rudolf, and Wilhelm Kroll (eds), Novellae (Berlin, 1912).
  • Scribonius Largus, Compositiones, ed. Sergio Sconocchia (Berlin, 2020).
  • Seneca Maior, L. Annaeus, Oratorum et rhetorum sententiae, divisiones, colores, ed. Lennart Håkanson (Leipzig, 1989).
  • Seneca, L. Annaeus, Dialogorum libri XII, ed. Emil Hermes (Leipzig, 1905).
  • Seneca, L. Annaeus, Ad Lucilium epistularum moralium quae supersunt, ed. Otto Hense (Leipzig, 1914).
  • Seneca, L. Annaeus, Ad Lucilium epistularum moralium libri, ed. Achilles Beltrami, 2 vols (Brescia, 1916–27).
  • Seneca, L. Annaeus, Divi Claudii Apotheosis per saturam quae Apocolocyntosis vulgo dicitur, ed. Otto Rossbach (Bonn, 1926).
  • Sénèque, Dialogues, ii, ed. A. Bourgery (Paris, 1923).
  • Sénèque, Lettres à Lucilius, iv, ed. François Préchac (Paris, 1962).
  • Seneca, Lucio Anneo, Tragedie, ed. Giancarlo Giardina (Turin, 1987).
  • Seneca, L. Annaeus, Naturalium quaestionum libri, ed. Harry M. Hine (Stuttgart, 1996).
  • Sextus Empiricus, Opera, ed. Hermann Mutschmann and J. Mau, 3 vols (Leipzig, 1912–61).
  • Silius Italicus, Punica, ed. Josef Delz (Stuttgart, 1987).
  • Sjögren, H. (ed.), M. Tulli Ciceronis ad M. Brutum et M. Bruti ad M. Tullium Ciceronem epistularum liber novus (Uppsala, 1910).
  • Snell, Bruno, and Richard Kannicht (eds), Tragicorum Graecorum Fragmenta (TrGF), i: Didascaliae tragicae, catalogi tragicorum et tragoediarum, testimonia et fragmenta tragicorum minorum (Göttingen, 1986).
  • Solinus, C. Iulius, Collectanea rerum memorabilium, ed. Theodor Mommsen (Berlin, 1895).
  • Sommerstein, Alan H., 'The history of the text of Aristophanes', in Brill's Companion to the Study of Greek Comedy (Leiden, 2010), 412 n. 69.
  • Sophocles, Fabulae, ed. H. Lloyd-Jones and N. G. Wilson (Oxford, 1990).
  • Sophocles, Tragoediae, ed. R. D. Dawe (Leipzig, 1996).
  • Statius, P. Papinius, Thebaid and Achilleid, i, ed. J. B. Hall, A. L. Ritchie and M. J. Edwards (Newcastle, 2007).
  • Stobaeus, Ioannes, Anthologium, ed. Curt Wachsmuth and Otto Hense, 5 vols (Berlin, 1884–1912).
  • Strabon, Geographika, ed. Stefan Radt, 4 vols (Göttingen, 2002–5).
  • Tacitus, Cornelius, Opera minora, ed. M. Winterbottom and R. M. Ogilvie (Oxford, 1975).
  • Tacitus, Cornelius, Ab excessu divi Augusti libri XI–XVI, ed. Kenneth Wellesley (Leipzig, 1986).
  • Tacitus, Cornelius, Historiarum libri, ed. Kenneth Wellesley (Leipzig, 1989).
  • Tacitus, P. Cornelius, Agricola, ed. Josef Delz and J. von Ungern-Sternberg (Berlin, 2010).
  • Theodoridis, Christos (ed.), Die Fragmente des Grammatikers Philoxenos (Berlin, 1976).
  • Theodorus Prodromus, De Rhodanthes et Dosiclis amoribus libri IX, ed. Miroslav Marcovich (Stuttgart, 1992).
  • Théon, Aelius, Progymnasmata, ed. Michel Patillon (Paris, 1997).
  • Theophrastus, Characters, ed. James Diggle (Cambridge, 2004).
  • Thomson, D. F. S. (ed.), Catullus (Toronto, 1998).
  • Thucydides, Historiae, ed. Giovan Battista Alberti, 3 vols (Rome, 1972–2000).
  • Tov, Emanuel, Textual Criticism of the Hebrew Bible (Minneapolis, 2012), 329.
  • Valerius Flaccus, C., Argonauticon libri octo, ed. Edward Courtney (Leipzig, 1970).
  • Velleius Paterculus, C., Ex historiae Romanae libris duobus quae supersunt, ed. Karl Halm (Leipzig, 1876).
  • Velleius Paterculus, The Tiberian Narrative (2.94–131), ed. A. J. Woodman (Cambridge, 1977).
  • Velleius Paterculus, The Caesarian and Augustan Narrative (2.41–93), ed. A. J. Woodman (Cambridge, 1983).
  • Vergilius Maro, P., Opera, ed. Mario Geymonat (Rome, 2008).
  • Vergilius Maro, P., Aeneis, ed. Gian Biagio Conte (Berlin, 2009).
  • Vergilius Maro, P., Bucolica Georgica, ed. Silvia Ottaviano and Gian Biagio Conte (Berlin, 2013).
  • Vian, Francis (ed.), Les Argonautiques orphiques (Paris, 1987).
  • West, M. L. (ed.), Iambi et elegi Graeci ante Alexandrum cantati, 2 vols (Oxford, 1998).
  • West, Martin L. (ed.), Aeschyli tragoediae cum incerti poetae Prometheo (Stuttgart, 1998).
  • Wilamowitz-Möllendorff, U. v., 'Zu Plutarchs Gastmahl der Sieben Weisen', Hermes, 25 (1890), 208.
  • Williams, Heather J. (ed.), The Eclogues and Cynegetica of Nemesianus (Leiden, 1986).
  • Willis, James (ed.), Martianus Capella (Leipzig, 1983).
  • Willis, William H., 'The Robinson-Cologne Papyrus of Achilles Tatius', Greek, Roman and Byzantine Studies, 31 (1990), 73–102.
  • Wilson, N. G., Herodotea: studies on the text of Herodotus (Oxford, 2015), xii–xiii.
  • Winterbottom, Michael (ed.), The Minor Declamations Ascribed to Quintilian (Berlin, 1984).
  • Xenophon, Historia Graeca, ed. Otto Keller (Leipzig, 1890).
  • Xenophon, Scripta minora, ii, ed. Franz Rühl (Leipzig, 1912).
  • Xénophon, Économique, ed. Pierre Chantraine (Paris, 1949).
  • Xenophon Ephesius, De Anthia et Habrocome Ephesiacorum libri V, ed. James N. O'Sullivan (Munich, 2005).
  • Young, Douglas (ed.), Theognis, Ps.-Pythagoras, Ps.-Phocylides, Chares, anonymi aulodia, fragmentum teliambicum (Stuttgart, 1971).

See also James Zetzel's Textual Criticism and the Transmission of Latin Texts.

The top 10 critics are Reiske (276), Scaliger (237), Nicolaus Heinsius (213), Adamantios Korais (190), Bentley (166), Thomas Mangey (154), Casaubon (114), Valckenaer (106), Bekker (97) and Madvig (95).


Ref. Paradosis Conjecture Author Year Attested Place Rem.
AP 5.218.2 γλυκεροὺς/-ρὰς Γλυκέρας Scaliger P.Oxy. II 211
AP 9.570.1 ξανθοκηρ- Ξανθὼ κηρόπλαστε I. G. Huschke 1800 P.Oxy. LIV 3724
AP 9.588.5 -αῖς δορᾷ Johannes Pierson P.Tebt. I 3
AP 11.328.7 ἐρμηναῖοι ἐρυνεοὶ Friedrich Jacobs 1798–1814 P.Oxy. LXVI 4502
Ach.Tat. LC 2.2.1 γὰρ τὸν τὸν γὰρ Friedrich Jacobs 1821 P.Oxy. X 1250
Ach.Tat. LC 2.9.2 -θιγεν προσέθηκεν B. G. L. Boden 1776 P.Oxy. X 1250 ]ηκεν
Ach.Tat. LC 3.19.3 ὅμως ὅπως Cobet 1858 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901
Ach.Tat. LC 3.20.6 καθ' ἡμᾶς καὶ καθ' ἡμᾶς A. Wifstrand 1945 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901
Ach.Tat. LC 3.22.3 ἔ. π. ἔφη τοὺς πρωτομύστας Jérôme Commelin 1601 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901 et P.Oxy. LVI 3836
Ach.Tat. LC 3.22.6 ἡμῶν ἐκποδὼν ἡ]μῖν ἐμποδὼν Friedrich Jacobs 1821 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901
Ach.Tat. LC 3.23.1 τὴν ψυχὴν τῆς ψυχῆς Cobet 1858 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901
Ach.Tat. LC 3.24.2 πέντε αἱ πέντε Cobet 1858 P.Duk. inv. 772 + P.Köln inv. 901
Ael. NA 12.10 -ία μυωνιά Theodor Kock 1880–8 Laur. 86.7 (L)
Aesch. Ag. 175 φρε- φρονῶν Francesco Robortello 1552 Fac
Aesch. Ag. 231 -άν εὐχᾶν Maas 1951 Mac CQ
Aesch. Ag. 448 διὰ διαὶ Hermann 1852 Epim.Hom. δ 68
Aesch. Cho. 989 ψέ- λέγω Turnebus 1552 schol. vetus (Σ)
Aesch. PV 157 ἐπεγήθει/ἐπιγήθει ἐγεγήθει Valckenaer s.xviii med. Ambros. gr. G 56 (D) et Matrit. gr. 4677 (N)
Aesch. PV 691–3 δείματ' del. Hermann 1852 Ambros. gr. G 56 (D)
Aesch. Sept. 322 Ἀΐδαι ἄϊδι Turnebus 1552 Monac. gr. 565 (Uc)
Aesch. Supp. 44 -αις ἐπιπνοίας Francesco Robortello 1552 schol. vetus (Σ)
Aesch. Supp. 79 ηβαι ἥβαν C. G. Schütz 1794 schol. vetus (Σ)
Aesch. Supp. 459 -εῖ καλή Turnebus 1552 Bonon. Bibl. Univ. 2271 (Mb) a.c.
Aesch. Supp. 570 τὰν τὰ Hermann 1852 Guelf. Gud. gr. 4° 88 (Mc) a.c.
Aesch. T 1.5 -ουϲ Ἀριϲτοφάνει Bergk 1883 BXc Herm.
Aesch. T 56b.2 καταθ- καθέϲειϲ Casaubon 1600 Marc. gr. 468 (V) Animadv. 260, 24 sq.
Aesch. fr. 191.2 μέγα πῇ δ' μέγαν ἠδ᾽ Isaac Vossius 1629 Anon. B
Aesch. fr. 300.3 -δεῖ/-δων κυλίνδει Salmasius 1629 (?) Anon. C
Aesch. fr. 300.7 ἀγγέ- ἀντέλλει Grotius 1626 Anon. C et Tz.
Aeschin. 1.16 οὗ John Taylor 1771 Vat. gr. 64 (V) apud Reiske ('nihil restat supplendum cum Petito et Heraldo')
Aeschin. 1.16 om. δ' P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Vat. gr. 64 (V)
Aeschin. 1.35 ὅτι del. Brunck n.d. Barb. gr. 159 (B)
Aeschin. 1.40 Τιμάρχου τῷ Τ. Blass 1896 P.Oxy. LX 4029
Aeschin. 1.42 τ. ποιεῖν ταῦτα Blass 1896 P.Oxy. LX 4029
Aeschin. 1.45 om. μὲν Hieronymus Wolf 1572 P.Oxy. LX 4030
Aeschin. 1.55 Ἡ- ἡγήσανδρος H. G. Hamaker 1858 fac Mnem.
Aeschin. 1.62 ὅτι ὅτε Henri Estienne 1575 Paris. gr. 2947 (h)
Aeschin. 1.68 σπ- στειριεὺς Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Paris. gr. 2947 (h)
Aeschin. 1.73 κακῶς καλῶς Reiske 1771 Paris. suppl. gr. 660 (x) pc
Aeschin. 1.73 ἐῶν οὐκ ἐ. Reiske 1771 fac
Aeschin. 1.159 -ην σωφροσύνης Cobet s.xix med. Ambros. G 69 sup. (D)
Aeschin. 1.173 ἐξαιτήσ- ἐξαιρήσεται Blass 1896 P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 1.176 διισχ- ἰσχθυρίζεσθαι Hieronymus Wolf 1572 P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 1.177 νόμους μέν μὲν νόμους Cobet s.xix med. P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 1.178 -γορούντων κατηγόρων Blass 1896 P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 1.178 πᾶσι τοῖς δικαίοις πᾶσι δικαίοις Joseph Anton Hillebrand 1868 P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 1.181 -κελεύσας παρακαλέσας Henri Estienne 1575 P.Gen. I 256
Aeschin. 2.44 -σασθθαι θεάσεσθε Hieronymus Wolf 1572 Ambros. G 69 sup. (D)
Aeschin. 2.62 κεκώλυκε ἐκώλυσε Friedrich Franke 1860 Angel. gr. 44 (a)
Aeschin. 2.92 μουνο-/μουνυ- μουνιχιῶνος P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Angel. gr. 44 (a)
Aeschin. 2.102 δοκοίης ἂν δοκοῖεν Henri Estienne 1575 fpc
Aeschin. 2.116 -κεῖς φωκέας Friedrich Franke 1860 Laur. 60.4 (Flor.)
Aeschin. 2.138 om. οὔπω Scaliger s.xvi/xvii h et Flor.
Aeschin. 2.142 -οὶ Βοιωτῶν P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Marc. gr. VIII 4 (e) partim cum Reiskio
Aeschin. 2.158 προστρόπαιον αὑτοῦ π. Blass 1896 fac
Aeschin. 3.18 γέρα ἱερὰ P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. XIII 1625 ϊ[ε]ρα
Aeschin. 3.18 γέρα ἱερὰ H. G. Hamaker 1859 P.Oxy. XIII 1625 ϊ[ε]ρα
Aeschin. 3.20 τὸν ... σκυθρωπὸν τῶν ... σκυθρωπῶν Denys Lambin s.xvi med. P.Oxy. XIII 1625
Aeschin. 3.20 ἄγειν ἄγει Edward Bernard s.xvii ex. P.Oxy. XIII 1625
Aeschin. 3.26 -ους λόγον Karl Scheibe 1853 P.Duk.inv. 3 Neue Jahrb. f. Philol. u. Paed.
Aeschin. 3.26 ὁ κ. κτησιφῶν δὲ Blass 1896 P.Duk.inv. 3
Aeschin. 3.31 -γξω ἐξελέγχω Henri Estienne 1575 mpc
Aeschin. 3.47 ἵνα ἵν’ ὁ Henri Estienne 1575 P.Gron.Amst. 2
Aeschin. 3.47 ἢ τοῖς στεφάνοις del. Hieronymus Wolf 1572 P.Gron.Amst. 2
Aeschin. 3.53 μὲν ἀληθῆ ἀληθῆ μὲν Cobet s.xix ex. P.Oxy. XXIV 2404
Aeschin. 3.57 ἀκούσωσι ἀκούωσι H. G. Hamaker 1859 P.Oxy. LX 4044 Mnem.
Aeschin. 3.59 ὑμῶν ἡμῶν Henri Estienne 1575 Laur. 60.4 (Flor.)
Aeschin. 3.63 ὑπὸ ἀπὸ Hieronymus Wolf 1572 Phillips 8077
Aeschin. 3.94 ὁρώντων ζώντων Georg Kaibel s.xix ex. P.Oxy. IV 703 ζων[
Aeschin. 3.101 τῶν τῷ Andreas Weidner 1872 P.Oxy. LX 4048
Aeschin. 3.149 τοῦτο κ. τι κήρυγμά τι τοῦτο Blass 1896 Laur. 60.4 (Flor.)
Aeschin. 3.167 -θίζει/-θεστήσῃ κτλ. προσκαθιζήσει Lobeck s.xix in. P.Oxy. III 457 προσκαθ[ιζ]ησ[ει
Aeschin. 3.186 ἐ. ὦ ἄνδρες ἀθηναῖοι ὃ ἐστιν ὧν ἐγὼ Blass 1896 P.Vindob. G. 2.314 ZPE 205 (2018) 41–54
Aeschin. 3.196 ἐν τῷ ἐν Ferdinand Schultz 1865 P.Hamb. II 165
Aeschin. 3.196 om. τὰ Andreas Weidner 1872 P.Hamb. II 165
Aeschin. 3.230 -σεσθε ἀποψηφίσαισθε Henri Estienne 1575 Barb. gr. 159 (B)
Aeschin. 3.239 ἐξειρ- ἐξηργάσατο Blass 1896 P.Köln VI 254
Aeschin. 3.243 μοῖραν μόραν Hieronymus Wolf 1572 Barb. gr. 159 (B)
Alc. fr. 6.3 καὶ ΚΕ’ΝΑ August Seidler 1829 P.Oxy. XV 1789
Alc. fr. 34 ]ϲον δεῦτέ μοι νᾶϲον C. Gallavotti 1947 P.Mich. inv. 3498 + 3250b recto δεῦτ̣[έ] μοι νᾶcον; Borges-Sampson (2012)
Alc. fr. 343 τετυγ- τετυχ[ Lobel 1927 P.Oxy. XXXV 2734
Alcid. Od. 7 deest ΜΑΡΤΥΡΕΣ Reiske 1773 cod. ap. Cripp. (C)
Alcid. Od. 13 ἁλεί- ἁλιείαν Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
Alcid. Od. 20 στρα- συστρατεύειν Reiske 1773 AC2
Alcid. Soph. 11 πῶς πῶς δ ̓ Reiske 1773 XC
Alcid. Soph. 13 ἀφ ̓ οὗ ἀφ ̓ ἧς Reiske 1773 cod. ap. Cripp. (C)
Alcid. Soph. 29 προσδια- προδιαβάλλειν Reiske 1773 cod. ap. Cripp. (C)
Alciphr. 1.1.1 ἐπ᾽ ἀλλ- ἐπαλλήλων Valckenaer 1901 Harl. Ven. apud Schepers
Alciphr. 1.9.3 π. -οῖς παρ᾽ αὐτῶν Cobet 1854 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 1.11.1 κατεγγυώσ-/κατ᾽ ἐγγύησιν κατεγγυήσειν Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 3021 (Π)
Alciphr. 1.12.1 ἥ. δὲ ἥτις δέον Valckenaer 1755 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ) ad Eur. Ph. p. 549
Alciphr. 1.15.1 περι- παραπλεῖν Cobet 1854 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 1.17.3 ἐνοίκ- ἐκείνων Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 2.5.2 χάρτην δι' ἀρ. τ. σαπρὸν χαρτίδια ἀρχαῖά τινα σαπρὰ George d'Arnaud 1734 Harl. Ven. Γ Vat.1 Miscell. Obs. iv/iii p. 453
Alciphr. 2.5.2 -ον ἡμίβρωτα George d'Arnaud 1734 codd. praeter Leid. Miscell. Obs. iv/iii p. 453
Alciphr. 2.7.1 τρίκουρον τρικόρωνον J. H. Majus 1716 Harl. Ven. Γ Vat.1 Hist. crit. de la rép. des lettr. XI p. 144 ('tres cornicis ætates habens')
Alciphr. 2.7.1 τάλαντον ταλάντατον M. V. de La Croze 1715 B Harl. Γ Vat. apud Berglerum ('& miserrime senex')
Alciphr. 2.7.2 Κέκρο- Κέρκοψ Pieter Burman I 1727 B Vat.2 Flor. Π Δ ad Ov. met. 14.92
Alciphr. 2.17.2 ἕ. δὲ ἰ. ἕν ἰδὼν Stephan Bergler 1715 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B)
Alciphr. 2.18.3 ὄνησιν μ. ἀνήσει πάντα μηχανώμενος Stephan Bergler 1715 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B)
Alciphr. 2.21.2 Ταθ-/πενθίᾳ τενθείᾳ Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 2.24.2 ἀναπείσ- ἀναγκάσω Cobet 1854 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B)
Alciphr. 2.25.1 ἐπὶ τ. θ. ὑπὸ τοῖς θάμνοις Stephan Bergler 1715 codd. praeter B
Alciphr. 2.26.1 αὐτοχρήματον/ἀθλο- αὐτόχρημα τὸν Johannes Pierson 1752 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B) p. 96
Alciphr. 2.32.3 Φ. τε ε. καὶ Γ. Φείδωνός εἰσι καὶ Γνίφωνος Cobet 1854 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B) s.l.
Alciphr. 2.34.3 ἐ. ἀ. ἐπαύσατο τῆς ἀδολεσχίας Cobet 1854 Vindob. phil. gr. 342 (B)
Alciphr. 3.1 inscr. -δεχθ- Δοπαδεκθάμβῳ Thomas Reinesius 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a apud Berglerum
Alciphr. 3.1.2 Θεόχαρις Θεοχάρης J. Gronovius 1706 Harl. Ven. N in textu Lambecii
Alciphr. 3.7.4 μάστιξι del. Friedrich Jacobs 1821 Harl. Ven. Neap.a ad Ach.Tat. p. 799 ('si abesset, non desiderarem')
Alciphr. 3.7.5 συμποσί- συνεδρίου Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a
Alciphr. 3.7.5 δήμῳ δημίῳ Stephan Bergler 1715 codd. praeter Vat.1
Alciphr. 3.8.1 Ἀκαρνί-/Ἀκαρανί- Ἀκαρνανίδα Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 3.8.2 -μάττ- ἀπομύττεσθαι Reiske 1829 codd. 'emungi'
Alciphr. 3.9.2 γὰρ ἀνίᾳ Γερανείᾳ Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a
Alciphr. 3.9.3 ἀνθέξ- ἀνέξεται Stephan Bergler 1715 Neap. III A A 14 (Neap.a)
Alciphr. 3.10.2 ἀμύν- ἁμίλλης George d'Arnaud 1734 Harl. Ven. Neap.a Miscell. Obs. v/ii p. 192
Alciphr. 3.10.2 -ος κῶμα George d'Arnaud 1734 Harl. Neap.a
Alciphr. 3.10.4 ἀνέπλη- ἀνέτλημεν Reiske 1829 codd.
Alciphr. 3.11.3 οὐκ ᾐ. οὐκέθ᾽ ᾐσθόμην οὐκέθ᾽ G. A. Hirschig 1855 Neap. III A A 14 (Neap.a) Zeitschr. f. d. Alt. Wiss.
Alciphr. 3.11.3 -ως πάντες Hemsterhuis 1901 Harl. Ven. apud Schepers
Alciphr. 3.13.3 -ὸν μακρὰν Reiske 1829 Neap. III A A 14 (Neap.a)
Alciphr. 3.14.1 Ζευγί- Ζευξίππην J. H. Majus 1716 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ) Hist. crit. de la rép. des lettr. XI p. 149
Alciphr. 3.14.1 -αι κ. -οί συνοικίας καὶ ἀγρούς Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. 5566
Alciphr. 3.14.2 ἀνε- ἐνεδείξατο Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Vat.1
Alciphr. 3.15.1 τὰ τειρ- τὰ Πειρήνης Stephan Bergler 1715 codd.
Alciphr. 3.17.3 τ. Τιλ- τῆς τηλίας Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a
Alciphr. 3.17.3 ὄπιθ- ὄπισθεν Gisbert Koen 1766 Harl. Ven. Neap.a ad Greg.Cor. §XXXV ('poëticum ὄπιθεν ferri nequit in Alciphr.')
Alciphr. 3.18.1 κατέαγα Stephan Bergler 1715 codd. praeter Γ
Alciphr. 3.18.4 -κίσι ἐναγέσι Stephan Bergler 1715 codd. praeter Vat.1
Alciphr. 3.19.2 Εὐοκ- Ἐτεοκλῆς Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a
Alciphr. 3.19.5 εἰσήρεσ- εἰσήῤῥησε Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Neap.a 'ab ἔρρειν quod perniciosam itionem denotat'
Alciphr. 3.20.1 καὶ β. ἴ. δὴ καὶ τ. π. ε. καὶ τύφου πλήρης εἶ καὶ βαδίζεις ἴσα (δὴ) Reiske 1829 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.22.2 γυμν- σεμνὸν Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.22.2 β. καὶ βίον Stephan Bergler 1715 codd. praeter Γ
Alciphr. 3.23.2 ὁ π. κ. -ιστος ὁ περίψυκτος καὶ περικαλλής Dindorf 1842–7 codd. praeter Γ ThGL s.v.
Alciphr. 3.23.2 στέφ- σκέπειν Naber 1878 Harl. Ven. Mnem.
Alciphr. 3.23.5 ἁ- ἀπλανῶς Stephan Bergler 1715 codd.
Alciphr. 3.24.1 τὴν π. τὴν τῶν πενήτων Reiske 1829 codd.
Alciphr. 3.24.3 τοιαῦτα τῆς Π. π. τοιαῦτα τὰ τῆς Π. προπύλαια Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ) 'Qui sermone Græco imbutas habent aures facilè sentiunt'
Alciphr. 3.26.1 ἐκκουριασθ- ἐκκορηθείης Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.27.1 ἔδοξ- ἔδοσαν H. J. Polak 1901 Harl. Ven. apud Schepers
Alciphr. 3.27.1 τὸ παράνσιγώην, σιγῆ δ. ἐ. τὸ παρὸν σιγώην, σιγὴ δέ ἐστι Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ) 'quintuplici errore'
Alciphr. 3.27.2 τὰς ἄλλας τὰς ἄ. ἃς Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.28.1 ἀμειδῆτον ἀμειδῆ τὸν Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.28.1 σκιλδαμ- σκινδαλμοὺς Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.29 inscr. Πηξάγω- Πηξάγκωνος Cobet 1854 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 3.30.1 Βροτη- Βρεντησίου F. J. Bast 1809 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.30.3 προῦργ- πανοῦργος Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.30.5 παίουσι παίζουσι Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.31.1 οἷός ε. ὅς εἰμι Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.32.2 -οῦς Λεωπρέπους Cobet 1854 Harl. Ven.
Alciphr. 3.32.2 Καρανω- Κρανωνίου Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.33.2 στε- Τενεδίῳ Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 3.34.1 ἀττι- ἀστικῆς David Ruhnken 1820 Harl. Ven. apud Weiske in Longin.
Alciphr. 3.34.2 ἀγρικῶς ἀγροικικῶς Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 3.34.5 μεναρ- Μεγαρικοῖς Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 1696 (Γ)
Alciphr. 3.36.3 βάθρ- βαράθρων Stephan Bergler 1715 Marc. class. VIII 2 (Ven.)
Alciphr. 3.36.3 κινού- κοινούμενος Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. Γ
Alciphr. 3.36.4 οἷον π. ε. ἧ ποδῶν εἶχον Stephan Bergler 1715 Harl. Ven. ᾗ codd.
Alciphr. 3.38.2 δορυ- δρυπετεῖς Joannes Meursius 1617 Paris. gr. 3050 (Δ) p. 324
Alciphr. 3.40.3 πρόσοδ- πρόοδον Stephan Bergler 1715 Vat.2 Π Δ
Alciphr. 3.40.3 π. -ως περιπάτους ἀνειμένους Stephan Bergler 1715 Vat.2 Flor.
Alciphr. 4.2.2 σ. ἀπὸ σοῦ σπουδασθῆναι ὑπὸ σοῦ Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.2.2 -ει φέρειν Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.4.4 μαστήρ- μαστάρια Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPDW 'deminutivum à μαστός'
Alciphr. 4.4.4 ἀπ- ἐπέδειξας Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.6.1 προσήμ- προσιέμην Stephan Bergler 1715 Vindob. phil. gr. 318 (W)
Alciphr. 4.6.3 παρ᾽ ἡμῖν παρῆμεν Reiske 1829 VFP 'aderamus, conveneramus'
Alciphr. 4.7.3 ἀρνού- ἀρκούμενον M. V. de La Croze 1715 VFPD apud Berglerum
Alciphr. 4.7.4 -ειν πείθουσιν Reiske 1829 Vindob. phil. gr. 318 (W)
Alciphr. 4.7.4 πρόσ- πρόκειται Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.8.2 κατη- παρηγόρημα Stephan Bergler 1715 Palat. 132 (C)
Alciphr. 4.8.2 πολλήν τ. ἐφορ- πολύν τινα ἐνεφορησάμην Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.8.2 τότε δ. ἄ. τὸ δ(ὲ) ἄρα Stephan Bergler 1715 VFP
Alciphr. 4.10.3 διασώ- διώσασθαι Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.13.10 σκώλυκ- σκώληκας J. S. Bernard 1795 VF ad TheophNonn, ii, p. 77
Alciphr. 4.13.12 πηγ- πυγὴν Meineke 1853 FPD apud Seiler
Alciphr. 4.13.14 σκευηρ- συνηρεφῆ Valckenaer 1768 VFPD ad Eur. Hipp. 468 fin.
Alciphr. 4.14.1 ἀπ- ἐπήγγειλεν Hemsterhuis 1901 VFPD apud Schepers
Alciphr. 4.14.5 ἰσχύ- ἰσχίων Stephan Bergler 1715 VFP
Alciphr. 4.14.5 -ῷ αὐτῶν George d'Arnaud 1734 VFPD Miscell. Obs. v/i p. 63
Alciphr. 4.16.3 αὐτοῖς τοῖς αὐλοῖς -ὸν τ. α. George d'Arnaud 1734 VF Miscell. Obs. v/ii p. 274
Alciphr. 4.16.4 -ιῶσαι περιουσιάσαι Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.16.7 ἑταίρ- ἑτέρους Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.17.2 ἐφ- ἀφέτω Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.17.2 μουσικ- φυσικῶς J. Ph. d’Orville 1750 VFPD ad Charitonem p. 441
Alciphr. 4.17.3 -ίσαι σωφρονῆσαι Stephan Bergler 1715 VFP
Alciphr. 4.17.3 ὅπῃ ποτὲ ὁποίποτε Cobet 1854 VFP
Alciphr. 4.17.5 προσ- προλαμβάνει Stephan Bergler 1715 VFPD
Alciphr. 4.17.5 π. τ. Ἑ. πρῶτος εἰς τὴν Ἑλλάδα Stephan Bergler 1715 VF
Alciphr. 4.17.6 τί σοὶ λ. Λ. τί σὺ λέγεις Λάμια Perizonius 1715 VFPD apud Berglerum ('Quid tu ad hæc dicis Lamia, nonne vera & justa loquor?')
Alciphr. 4.18.3 ξῆλος ἤ ξ. εἴ Stephan Bergler 1715 Paris. gr. 3054 (L) teste Schepers
Alciphr. 4.18.4 τροφ- τρυφὰς Henri Estienne 1572 VFPD s.v. σαλάκων
Alciphr. 4.18.15 ἢ μ. ἦ μέγα J. F. Boissonade 1822 Laur. Plut. 59.5 (F) ad Aristaenet. p. 538
Alciphr. 4.18.15 οὕτω μ./οὔτω μ. οὐ τῶν μεγάλων J. Ph. d’Orville 1750 VF ad Charitonem p. 716
Alciphr. 4.19.6 Πρωλέ- Πρωτέως Perizonius 1715 Vat. gr. 1461 (V) apud Berglerum
Alciphr. 4.19.9 -ης Ἀριάδνη Hemsterhuis 1901 VF apud Schepers
Alciphr. 4.19.10 ἄμισθ- ἄπιστα George d'Arnaud 1734 VFPpc Miscell. Obs. v/ii p. 282
Alciphr. 4.19.12 αὐτοῖς οἷς α. ἧς Meineke 1853 VFPD apud Seiler
Alciphr. 4.19.13 -ης τῆς ἀφῃρημένην τῆς Stephan Bergler 1715 VF
Alciphr. 4.19.20 α. τ. Ἄ. αἰδούμεθα μὰ τὴν Ἄρτεμιν J. F. Herel 1768 Palat. 132 (C) s.l.
Alciphr. fr. scr. inc. 1 αὐτ- αὑτῶν Adriaan Heringa 1749 FPD p. 285
Alciphr. fr. scr. inc. 2 κουρί- κουρείοις Adriaan Heringa 1749 FPD p. 285
Alciphr. fr. scr. inc. 3 ἰσχνὰς ἐγχ- ἰσχνεγχύλους F. J. Bast 1809 Paris. gr. 3021 (P) Lettr. crit. p. 231
Alciphr. fr. scr. inc. 4 -ευστα/-εστα ἀφαρμάκευτα J. A. Wagner 1798 PD
Anaximen. Rh. 1.13 ἢ ἄ. ἢ ὑπ' ἄνθρώπων Leonhard Spengel 1844 P.Hib. I 26
Anaximen. Rh. 1.15 τὸν τρόπον τοῦτον τοῦτον τὸν τρόπον Leonhard Spengel 1844 P.Hib. I 26 [τ]οῦ[το]ν τὸν [
Anaximen. Rh. 2.3 περιττῶς τριττῶς Bekker 1831 P.Hib. I 26
Anaximen. Rh. 4.1 -λωμεν διέλθωμεν Leonhard Spengel 1844 P.Hib. I 26
Anaximen. Rh. 4.3 νόμος ὁ ν. Leonhard Spengel 1844 P.Hib. I 26
Anaximen. Rh. 4.4 ἴσασι/εἰδῶσι τιμῶσι Leonhard Spengel 1844 P.Hib. I 26
And. 1.1 κ. ὑ. γε καὶ ὑμῖν τε Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.5 α. ἐ. αὐτοὶ οἱ ἐχθροὶ Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.7 -ῶντες ψευδομαρτυριῶν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.9 ο. -ει οὕτως ἔχειν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.19 ἀ. -ῶν ἀπογράψας αὐτὸν Scaliger 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Reiske
And. 1.19 καὶ καταλαμβανόμενος κ. λαμ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.23 οὐδὲ νῦν τοῖς οὐδὲν αὐτοῖς Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.30 γὰρ ε. γ ̓ ἂν εἴη Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.33 ἀπολογεῖσθ- ἀπολελογῆσθαι J. O. Sluiter 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.34 ἐ. ο. ἐπειδὴ δὲ οὗτοι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.36 ἔτι ζη- ἐπιζητεῖν P. P. Dobree 1820 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Dobson (1828)
And. 1.36 -ῃ καθέλοι G. F. Schömann 1819 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) p. 151
And. 1.40 -ει καταλαμβάνειν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.47 ἔγρ- ἀπέγραψεν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.56 σωθέντι μοι δοκεῖν σ. μὴ δ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.56 ἀ. ο. μὴν κ. ἀλλ ̓ οὐ μετὰ κακίας Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.61 ὑμῶν ἡμῶν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.61 ὃ μονὴν ὅ μοι ἦν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'qui mihi erat'
And. 1.62 ὡς ἥκοιμι ὡς ἔχοιμι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.62 π. π. παρὰ τὴν πατρῴαν Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.65 Ἀμίαν τοῦτον ἐξ Ἀμίαντον τὸν ἐξ Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.79 τά τε τὰ δὲ Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.81 ἐπειδὴ ἐπειδὴ δ ̓ Muretus 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 1.86 ἄνω γεγρ. ἀναγεγραμμένους Muretus 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 1.87 μηδὲν μηδὲν μήτε Baiter-Sauppe 1839–43 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.88 τῶν δημοσίων τ. δὲ δ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.88 αἱ γραφαί ἢ γ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.89 δοκιμάσαντες -ας Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.90 α. τρ. αὐτοῖς τοῖς τριάκοντα Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.91 -ο π. ἄλλῳ πείσομαι Samuel Petit 1741 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) p. 29
And. 1.96 ἐάν τις Αἰαντίς Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.101 ἀπὸ τ. τ. ὑπὸ τῶν τριάκοντα Valckenaer 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 1.105 ἢ χρὴ εἰ χ. Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.105 ε. -οὺς εἰ αὐτοῖς Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.107 -ας προτάξαντες J. O. Sluiter 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.111 προστά- προσάξειν Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.113 μὲν τὼ με τὼ Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.116 δὴ ν. δὲ νόμον Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.116 -ας Ἀνδοκίδης Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.116 τιθ- θεὶς Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'in aor. 2'
And. 1.119 ἀξι- ἂ. ἠξιοῦμεν ἂν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.120 -ῃ ταύτην Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.122 Ἐπεχάρην Ἐπιχάρη Valckenaer 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 1.125 ἦ. μὲν ε. ἦν μὴ εἶναι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.126 ε. ὑ. εἶναί οἱ ὑὸν Muretus 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 1.128 τ. -ίῳ τῷ παιδὶ P. P. Dobree 1820 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Dobson p. lix
And. 1.133 -ον π. ὀλίγου πραθείσης Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'scil. ἀργυρίου'
And. 1.134 ἀπελάσας καὶ τούτους καὶ ἀ. δὲ τ. κ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.141 -ες ἀναμνησθέντας Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 1.144 ἔτι εἰδότα μὲν ἔ. δ' ε. μ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) δὲ A
And. 1.146 τ. αὖ ὄ. τότ ̓ ἦν ὄνειδος Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.5 ἡ- ὑμῖν Valckenaer 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 2.5 τῷ πρώτῳ τούτῳ εἰπόντι τ. π. τοῦτο ε. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.5 ἐ. τὸ ε. ἐπὶ τῷ εὖ Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.6 εὐδαιμο- εὐγνωμονέστεροι Didier Hérauld †1650 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) jurisconsulte
And. 2.7 -η μ. ἀνάγκην μοι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.7 αὐτὸ μ. ἀφέντ- αὐτὸν μὲν ἀφεθέντα Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'subaudi ἐμὲ'
And. 2.8 -ησεν ἐπεφόβησθε Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'sec. plur. plusquamperf. passivi, ita timebatis vosmet ipsos mutuo'
And. 2.8 πᾶν ἰαθῆναι παυθῆναι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.11 ἢ -ον ἢ ὅσου Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.12 μὴ δι' α. μηδ' αὐτοὺς Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'ne ipsos quidem'; μηδὲ A
And. 2.14 οἱ τ. ἐ. τὰ ἐναντία Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 2.17 -ᾷν δαπάνης J. O. Sluiter 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.6 εὑρέ- ᾑρέθησαν Henri Estienne 1575 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 3.6 τί δαί τί δέ Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.10 ἄλλο ὅ τι ἄ. τ. J. O. Sluiter 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.12 ἐ. μ. γέγ. τεί. ἐκεῖ μὲν γὰρ γέγραπται τὰ τείχη Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.13 ο. γ. π. οἶμαι γὰρ ἂν πάντας Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.14 -γῆσαι ναυπηγεῖσθαι Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.15 μ. δοκεῖ μοι δοκοῦμεν Reiske 1771 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 3.17 ν. δ ̓ αὕτως νῦν δ ̓ αὐτοῖς Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.18 κ. ὑ. ἡ. καὶ οὐχ ὑφ ̓ ἡμῶν Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'neque remittunt ista a nobis coacti'
And. 3.21 π. ὑ- περὶ ἡμῶν J. G. Baiter 1839–43 codd.
And. 3.23 -οις εὑρομένους Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.26 καὶ φασί τινες, ἂν ναί, φασί τινες, ἂν Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) 'nae'
And. 3.26 ο. ὑ- οὖν ἡμῶν J. G. Baiter 1839–43 codd.
And. 3.27 συνοικοῦντ- συννικῶντας Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.29 τοῦ βασιλέως τῷ β. Bekker 1822 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 3.30 -ώμεθα βουλοίμεθα Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 3.32 τ. δ. σ. Ἀ. τὴν δὲ συμμαχίαν τὴν Ἀργείων Blass 1871 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 3.41 -εσθαι ποιήσασθαι Henri Estienne 1575 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 3.41 δι' ὑ- δι ̓ ἡμᾶς Reiske 1771 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 4.2 δὲ καὶ μὲν καὶ Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.6 ῥᾴδιον δὲ ἐντεῦθεν ῥ. δὲ καὶ ἐ. Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.7 -ωμεν ποιήσαιμεν Muretus 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) apud Sluiter
And. 4.10 βιότη- βιαιότητος Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.11 διπλάσει- διπλασιάσειεν Reiske 1771 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q) Muretus?
And. 4.12 ε. -ῆσθε εἴπερ ἡγεῖσθε Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.14 ὑπ- ἐπεδείξατο Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.17 ἀπ- ἐπηνάγκασε Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.18 -βούλ- συμβόλοις Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.21 τ. μ. μὲν τοσαῦτα Blass 1871 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 4.27 τοὺς μὲν -μένους τ. μ. ἀφαιρούμενος Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.30 -αν προσέταξε(ν) J. O. Sluiter 1804 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.33 Κόνω- Κίμωνα Henri Estienne 1575 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.35 οὐδὲν οὐδένα Reiske 1771 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
And. 4.41 εἰς Θ. καὶ Μ. κ. ε. Μ. εἰς Θ. καὶ εἰς Μ. καὶ εἰς Μ. Hermann Sauppe 1839–43 Ambros. D 42 sup. (Q)
And. 4.42 ἐν ἀν. εὐανδρίᾳ Joannes Meursius 1617 Lond. Burn. 95 (A) p. 260
Antig. Mir. 50 -αι ποιοῦντα J. N. Niclas 1791 Palat. gr. 398 apud Beckmann
Antig. Mir. 152 -νίθων ὀρνέων F. J. Bast 1809 Anon.Vat. c. 14 p. 95
Antipho 1.1 ἔχοιμι ἔχει μοι J. M. Gesner 1743 NA1 ad Luc. Bis Acc. p. 806
Antipho 1.5 ἐκ προβουλῆς -ίας ἐ. π. ἀκουσίως John Taylor 1773 NA apud Reiske p. 848
Antipho 1.6 ἓν ο. εὖ οἶδεν John Taylor 1773 codd. apud Reiske p. 848
Antipho 1.17 διακονοῦσαν Reiske 1773 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Antipho 1.22 ἐποι- ποιήσατε Bekker 1823 Npc
Antipho 2.1.5 εἶχ- εἷλεν Valckenaer 1768 codd. ad Eur. Hipp. 1002
Antipho 2.2.7 ὑ. τε τ. ὑπό τε γὰρ τοῦ Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 2.2.9 ληφ- λειφθείς J. M. Gesner 1773 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N) apud Reiske p. 838 ('relictus in urbe')
Antipho 2.2.9 ληφ- λειφθείς John Taylor 1773 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N) apud Reiske p. 848
Antipho 2.3.2 ὀ. ὑπ ̓ αὐτοῦ ὀφθέντες ὑπ ̓ αὐτῶν Reiske 1773 NA
Antipho 2.3.5 πῶς πᾶς Bekker 1823 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Antipho 2.3.7 πῶς πᾶς Reiske 1773 NA
Antipho 3.1.2 μ. ἐ. μὲν οὐδὲν ἐνθύμιον Hemsterhuis 1735 NAB Misc. obs. v/iii p. 59
Antipho 3.2.10 τοῦ ν. ὑ. τε τῶν π. τῶν πραχθέντων ὑπό τε τοῦ νόμου Reiske 1773 NApc
Antipho 3.2.12 ὁμοί- ὁσίως Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 3.3.4 αὐτὴν τὴν αὐθέντην Valckenaer 1767 codd. Diatribe p. 189
Antipho 3.3.4 προκ- προσκαταγνωσθέντα Reiske 1773 codd. p. 934
Antipho 3.3.7 -ίως κ. ἀκουσίοις κακοῖς Reiske 1773 NA
Antipho 3.4.4 μ. πονήσ- μήτε ἐπινοήσας Valckenaer 1767 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N) Diatribe p. 189
Antipho 4.4.3 ὅδε δ. ὅ γε διωκόμενος Reiske 1773 Apc
Antipho 5.24 -εν ἄλλοθι Henri Estienne 1575 NA
Antipho 5.37 ψ. ἀ. τῷ ψεύδεσθαι ἀπώλλυτο Reiske 1773 A2
Antipho 5.50 -αντι προτείναντας Reiske 1773 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N) 'scil. ὑμᾶς'
Antipho 5.72 ᾧ β. ὃ βουλεύεται Henri Estienne 1575 Stob.
Antipho 5.80 ἐ. μ. ἐὰν μὲν γὰρ Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 5.94 τὰ δ. τὰ μὴ δίκαια Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 5.94 οὔτι οὔ τοι Reiske 1773 NABZ
Antipho 5.96 -ων, ὡ. πάσχω, ὡς Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 6.18 τοῦτο κ. τούτου κρατεῖ Reiske 1773 NAB
Antipho 6.21 ἐ. ἐπειδὴ δὲ Reiske 1773 codd.
Antipho Soph. fr. 9 ἀντιφάνης ἀντιφῶν Meineke 1860 cod. Farnes. (F)
Antisth. Aj. 7 γνωσθήσεσθε γνώσεσθε Reiske 1773 cod. ap. Cripp. (C)
Antisth. Od. 13 -ῶν -ώτατα κακὼ ἐναντιωτάτω Reiske 1773 cod. ap. Cripp. (C) 'in duali'
Ap. Rhod. 1.74 ἦεν κτλ. ᾖεν Arthur Platt 1914–9 Palat. gr. 186 (V)
Ap. Rhod. 1.372 πρώραν πρώειραν Bergk n.d. Et.Gen.
Ap. Rhod. 1.749 ἀμειβό- ἀμυνόμενοι Jeremias Hoelzlin 1641 Laur. Plut. 32.16 (S)
Ap. Rhod. 1.883 -κέως ἐνδυκὲς Janus Rutgersius 1618 Et.Gen. 'Rutgersius – an ugly word to my thinking' (Bywater)
Ap. Rhod. 1.941 -τον Ἄρκτων Hoelzlin 1641 schLa
Ap. Rhod. 1.990 φράξαν φράσσον Fränkel 1961 P.Oxy. LXIV 4414
Ap. Rhod. 1.990 -ίοιο ἀπειρεσίῃσι Arthur Platt 1914 P.Oxy. LXIV 4414 Journ. of Phil. 33 (1914) 12–3
Ap. Rhod. 2.119 μέλαν τεταγών μάλ᾽ ἀντεταγών Sanctamandus n.d. P.Oxy. XXXIV 2697
Ap. Rhod. 2.171 νεφ- λαιφέων Naber n.d. P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5417
Ap. Rhod. 2.177 βιθυνηίδι θυνηίδι Meineke n.d. schL lm.
Ap. Rhod. 2.217 ἧς Brunck 1780 Et.
Ap. Rhod. 2.906 -νάσσατο κατενίσσετο Naber n.d. P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5417 ac
Ap. Rhod. 2.921 ἔδυνε μέλαν ἔδυ μέλανα Bywater n.d. P.Oxy. XXXIV 2694 ] μελανα
Ap. Rhod. 2.926 -οντο χεύαντο Brunck 1780 Et.
Ap. Rhod. 2.989 ἔ. μέμηλε(ν) ἔργα μεμήλει Brunck 1780 P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5417 ]γ̣’ ε̣μεμη̣λει; hoc flagitat temporum ratio
Ap. Rhod. 2.1017 habent del. Arthur Platt 1914–9 P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5417
Ap. Rhod. 2.1260 ἀλημο- δαημοσύνῃσιν George d'Arnaud 1730 marg. E2
Ap. Rhod. 3.158 -ροιο μεγάλοιο Eduard Gerhard 1816 Strassb.
Ap. Rhod. 3.201 -μαδοί πρόμαλοι Henri Estienne 1574 Et.Gen. et EM
Ap. Rhod. 3.254 om. π̣ο̣δων Florent Chrestien s.xvi ex. P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5421 F. Vian, Bibliothèque d’Humanisme et Renaissance 34 (1972) 478, 482
Ap. Rhod. 3.685 θῦεν θυῖεν Rudolf Merkel 1852–4 Laur. Plut. 32.16 (S)
Ap. Rhod. 3.745 ναῦται ναυτίλοι Porson s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. IV 690 ναυ]τίλο̣ι
Ap. Rhod. 3.909 κατὰ μετὰ Henri Estienne 1574 P.Oxy. IV 691 μ[
Ap. Rhod. 3.944 εὖτ' ε̣ϲτ' Ziegler n.d. P.Oxy. XXXIV 2693
Ap. Rhod. 3.1076 -ην πασιφάης Henri Estienne 1574 PE
Ap. Rhod. 3.1214 sq. schol. -υσὶ δρυῒ Friedrich Ellendt 1835 Paris. 2727 (P) 1, 450 sq.
Ap. Rhod. 3.1226 schol. ἠμφίεστο ὑφέεστο A. F. Naeke 1833–7 Laur. 32.9 (L) Rh. Mus. 2-5
Ap. Rhod. 4.86 τόνδε τόνγε Brunck 1780 P.Oxy. IV 692
Ap. Rhod. 4.438 ὥς Brunck 1780 P.Oxy. XXXIV 2694
Ap. Rhod. 4.464 ἐπᾶλτο ἐξᾶλτο Jeremias Hoelzlin 1641 P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5421
Ap. Rhod. 4.726 ἀπ' επ Fränkel 1961 P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5421 pc
Ap. Rhod. 4.852 στῆ Fränkel 1961 P.Oxy. LXXXIV 5421 pc
Ap. Rhod. 4.978 -εσσι κεράασι Eduard Gerhard 1816 Laur. Plut. 32.16 (S) p. 157
Ap. Rhod. 4.1129 ε. ἐ. εὐαγέως τ' ἐπιβώμια Fränkel 1961 P.Oxy. XXXIV 2691 ευαγεωϲ τ ε̣[
Ap. Rhod. 4.1487 αὐλείτης/αὐλήτης αὐλίτης Rudolf Merkel 1852–4 Et.Gen.
Apollod. Π. θεῶν 20 -βαφεῖς μελαμβαθεῖς Brunck 1786 F
App. BC 4.169 -εύετο ἐστράτευτο Bekker 1852–3 Marc. 387 (B)
App. BC 4.553 ἔκ τε ἐκ δὲ Bekker 1852–3 Marc. 387 (B)
App. Hisp. 115 -ων Ῥωμαίοις Henri Estienne 1557 exc. Const.
App. Hisp. 255 εἰρήνῃ φησὶν ε. φασὶν Henri Estienne 1557 exc. Const.
App. Pun. 274 -ὸν αὐτῶν Reiske 1785 exc. Const. apud Schweighäuser
App. Syr. 351 -εύεσθ- βουλεύσεσθαι Henri Estienne 1557 Vratisl. Rhedig. 14 (d)
App. fr. 10.12 λαθ- λαβεῖν Fulvio Orsini 1582 Vat. gr. 73 (Z)
App. fr. 10.13 ἐπιγελάσας ἐ. δ' Johannes Schweighäuser 1785 Vat. gr. 73 (Z)
Ar. Ach. 46 οὔ οὐκ Odoard Biset 1570 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Ach. 60 πρυτανεύσητε -εύητε Meineke n.d. P.Oxy. LXVI 4510
Ar. Ach. 68 ἐτρυχόμεσθα -μεθα Bentley s.xviii in. Bodl. Holkh. Gr. 88 (L) apud Burges, Classical Journal xi, xii, xiii
Ar. Ach. 171 -μί' ἐστι διοσημία 'στι Elmsley 1809 P.Oxy. LXVI 4510 E. was an heir
Ar. Ach. 238 σίγα σῖγα Bentley s.xviii in. c
Ar. Ach. 296 γ' ἂν ἄν γ' Bentley s.xviii in. Γ3
Ar. Ach. 297 σύ μοι μοι σὺ Hermann s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. LXVI 4510
Ar. Ach. 323 γ' ἆρα τἄρα Elmsley 1809 P.Oxy. LXVI 4510
Ar. Ach. 325 δήξομαι γὰρ (vel γ' ἄρ') ὑμᾶς δήξομἄρ' ὑμᾶς Bentley s.xviii in. P.Oxy. LXVI 4510
Ar. Ach. 401 σαφῶς σοφῶς Valckenaer 1757 Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Ach. 454 γε σε Bentley s.xviii in. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Ach. 623 γε καὶ γε Bentley s.xviii in. BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 636 ο. πρέσβεις ἀ. τ. πόλεων ἀπὸ τῶν πόλεων οἱ πρέσβεις Bentley s.xviii in. BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 671 -κλῶσι/-κλοῦσι ἀνακυκῶσι Bergler n.d. Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Ach. 819 Ἑρμ᾽ ἐμπολαῖε Ἑρμᾶ ᾽μπολαῖε Scaliger n.d. BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 912 δαὶ δὲ Bentley s.xviii in. BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 917 θρυαλλίδας θρυαλλίδα Elmsley 1809 BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 928 φορούμενος φερόμενος Brunck 1783 BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 960 ταυτησὶ τῆς ταυτησὶ P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix BKT V/II 231
Ar. Ach. 970 κιχλᾶν κιχλῶν Valckenaer 1757 Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Ach. 1111, 1112 G. H. Schaefer n.d. Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Ach. 1175 -ρίῳ χυτριδίῳ Dawes n.d. Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Av. 75 γὰρ (ἅτ’) γ’ ἅτ’ Valckenaer 1757 Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Av. 213 -η διεροῖς ἐλελιζομένης δ᾽ ἱεροῖς Meineke 1839–57 Haun. 1980 (H)
Ar. Av. 463 -χεῖσθαι/-χεῖσθε κατάκεισθε Bentley s.xviii in. anon. Parisinus
Ar. Av. 494a schol. μᾶτερ/μάτερ μάτηρ Elmsley 1821 M9Lh
Ar. Av. 520 ὤμνυέ τ'/ὠμνύετ ὤμνυ τ' Bentley s.xviii in. Marc. gr. 475 (G)
Ar. Av. 575 Ἶριν Ἔρην Bentley s.xviii in. Ambros. L 39 sup. (M)
Ar. Av. 576 -ψει πέμπει Thomas Tyrwhitt 1822 anon. Parisinus
Ar. Av. 689 τοῖσιν alterum τοῖς Charles Daubuz 1710 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Av. 765 schol. -φω ἀναγράφει Bentley s.xviii in. cod. Ambr. M
Ar. Av. 880 schol. ὑμ- ἡμῖν Meineke 1839–57 cod. Ambr. M
Ar. Av. 1069 om. πάνθ' Ludolph Dissen n.d. P.Louvre ed. Weil = Austin 42
Ar. Av. 1078 ἀγάγῃ ἀπαγάγῃ Bergk 1852–7 P.Louvre ed. Weil = Austin 42
Ar. Av. 1080 πᾶσι om. Triclinius s.xiv in. P.Louvre ed. Weil = Austin 42
Ar. Av. 1115 μήνην μῆν' P. P. Dobree s.xviii in. Marc. gr. 475 (G)
Ar. Av. 1308 οὐκ ἄρα οὐκ ἆρα Ludolf Küster 1710 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Av. 1314 καλεῖ καλοῖ Valckenaer 1757 Γ s.l. et Bp
Ar. Av. 1322 εὐήμερον εὐά- Brunck 1783 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Av. 1669 ἐς εἰς Jan van Leeuwen 1902 P.Oxy. LXVI 4516
Ar. Av. 1669 -τορες φράτερας Dindorf 1822 P.Oxy. LXVI 4516
Ar. Av. 1671 αἰκίαν αἴκειαν Lenting 1839 P.Oxy. LXVI 4516
Ar. Av. 1672 καταστήσω καταστήσας R. B. Hirschig 1849 P.Oxy. LXVI 4516
Ar. Av. 1691 σὺ τὰ σὺ Frederick H. M. Blaydes 1882 Estensis α.U.5.10 (E)
Ar. Av. 1693 διδότω δότω Valckenaer 1757 ΓUL
Ar. Eccl. 51 Φιλοδωρίτου Φιλοδωρήτου Valckenaer 1757 Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Eccl. 275 τ' άπερ/τάπερ γ᾽ ἅπερ Jonathan Toup s.xviii med. Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Eccl. 281 Πνύκ᾽/Πνύχ᾽ Πύκν᾽ Musurus n.d. Perus. H 56 (Λ)
Ar. Eccl. 346 ἵεμαι ἱέμην Brunck n.d. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Eccl. 404 χρὴ χρῆν Musurus n.d. Perus. H 56 (Λ)
Ar. Eccl. 456 ταύταις αὐταῖς Bergk n.d. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Eccl. 652 -ῶς λιπαρῷ Bentley s.xviii in. P.Mich. inv. 6649
Ar. Eccl. 707 λαβούσας λαβόντας Valckenaer 1757 Rav. 429 (R) et Perus. H 56 (Λ) tacite
Ar. Eccl. 710 νῦν νυν F. H. Bothe n.d. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Eccl. 1124 ἔχει/ἔχοι ἔχῃ Valckenaer 1757 Perus. H 56 (Λ) tacite
Ar. Eq. 84b schol. πλεῖον/πλείω πλείους Dindorf 1837 Estensis α.U.5.10 (E)
Ar. Eq. 143 ἐξολῶν ἐξελῶν Valckenaer 1757 Rav. 429 (R) et sch. V. cites the scholia
Ar. Eq. 424 -υον vel sim. ἀπώμνυν Bentley s.xviii in. G et Par 6
Ar. Eq. 545 -ῶς σωφρονικὸς Brunck 1783 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Eq. 726 om. alterum ὦ Elmsley 1809 P.Oxy. LXXIX 5196
Ar. Eq. 802 -ξῃς/-σῃς vel sim. ἁρπάζῃς Bentley s.xviii in. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Eq. 873 -ον ὅσων Bentley s.xviii in. Bpc
Ar. Eq. 881 τηλικουτονί τηλικοῦτον Valckenaer 1757 Laur. 31.13 (X)
Ar. Eq. 895 τοῦ τὸν Bentley s.xviii in. Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Eq. 981 γένοιθ' ’γένεθ' Scaliger n.d. schol. Γ
Ar. Eq. 1017 ἐκέλευσ' ἐκελευ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes 1882 P.Oxy. XI 1373
Ar. Eq. 1046 -ροῦν σιδήρου Bergk n.d. P.Bingen 18 ac
Ar. Eq. 1058 φράσαι/φράζευ φρασ]σαι Brunck 1783 P.Oxy. XI 1373
Ar. Eq. 1070 ἑκάστοτε ἑκάστοθ᾽ ἃς Frederick H. M. Blaydes 1882 P.Oxy. XXXI 2545
Ar. Eq. 1158 φράσεις -ῃς Porson n.d.
Ar. Lys. 81 om. τὼ Reisig n.d. schol. R et Mu2
Ar. Lys. 106 πορπατιϲ- πορπακιϲάμενοϲ Ludolf Küster 1710 schol. O lm.
Ar. Lys. 126 μοι μυᾶτε μοιμυᾶτε L. Dindorf n.d. schol. O lm.
Ar. Lys. 180 τάδε τᾷδε Bentley s.xviii in. P.Bodl. Gr. class. e. 87
Ar. Lys. 427 ἀλλ’ ἄλλ’ Valckenaer 1757 MS (Brunck 1781)
Ar. Lys. 476 τοῖσι(ν) τοῖς Bentley s.xviii in. Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Lys. arg. 1.15 -πληγεὶς καταπλαγεὶς Ludolf Küster 1710 Bodl. Barocci 38B (O)
Ar. Nub. 137 ἐξευρ- ἐξηυρημένην Porson n.d. Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Nub. 185 δοκοῦϲιν ἐ. δοκοῦϲ᾽ ἐοικέναι Bentley 1708 Neap. II F 22 (Np1) per litt.
Ar. Nub. 366 ἡμῖν ὑμῖν Charles Daubuz 1710 Eac Ψ
Ar. Nub. 451 ματιολ- ματτυολοιχός Bentley 1708 Harl. 5725 (Ln5)
Ar. Nub. 507 μελιττοῦταν μελιτοῦτταν Valckenaer s.xviii ex. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 140
Ar. Nub. 533 ὑμῖν ὑμῶν Hermann Sauppe n.d. Marc. gr. 473 (V3) s.l.
Ar. Nub. 538 σκύτινον σκυτίον P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix XLn5
Ar. Nub. 615 ὑμᾶς κοὐκ ὑμᾶς δ᾽ οὐκ Bentley 1708 Lpc
Ar. Nub. 862 πειθ- πιθόμενος Bentley 1708 Θpc
Ar. Nub. 872 κρέμαιό γ᾽ κρέμαι᾽ Bentley 1708 Matrit. 4683 (Md1)
Ar. Nub. 933 -βάλλεις ἐπιβάλλῃς Brunck 1783 recc.
Ar. Nub. 1379 γ᾽ ἄν/γὰρ γε Dindorf n.d. P.Stras. inv. 621
Ar. Pax 83 -ρῶς σοβαρὸς Cobet n.d. Rhet. lex. τότ Naoumides lm.
Ar. Pax 475 Ἀ- Ἁργεῖοι Dindorf n.d. Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Pax 715 σ. β. βουλὴ σὺ Bentley s.xviii in. schol.
Ar. Pax 758 om. alterum δ' Bentley s.xviii in. PSI VI 720
Ar. Pax 1013 ἀποχειρωθείς ἀποχηρωθείς Valckenaer 1757 Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Pax 1152 καὶ κυδοιδόπα/-τα κἀκυδοιδόπα Musurus n.d. L2
Ar. Plut. 4 ταῦτα ταὐτὰ Thomas Magister n.d. P.Oxy. XIII 1617
Ar. Plut. 179 schol. ανόητον ὄνον τὸν Bentley 1708 Estensis α.U.5.10 (E) per litt.
Ar. Plut. 374 οὖν ἂν Ludolf Küster 1710 Vbg1 (Invernizi)
Ar. Plut. 411 -κλινεῖν κατακλίνειν Angelo Canini n.d. Bodl. Holkh. Gr. 88 (L) v.l.
Ar. Plut. 485 ἢ τί γὰρ/εἴ τι γὰρ/ἢ τί γ᾽ ἂν τί γὰρ Porson n.d. Ambros. C 222 inf. (K)
Ar. Plut. 499 ἐ. σ. τ. μ. τούτου μάρτυς ἐγώ σοι Hall-Geldart 1906–7 P.Ant. l1I 180
Ar. Plut. 504 -ῶσι πεινῶσιν Ludolf Küster 1710 Bodl. Holkh. Gr. 88 (L)
Ar. Plut. 1018 παγκάλας παγκάλους Valckenaer 1757 Mpc et L
Ar. Plut. 1037 τυγχάνει τυγχάνοι Valckenaer 1757 Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Plut. 1116 ἐπιθύει ἔτι θύει Valckenaer 1757 Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Ran. 50 τρισ- τρεῖς Meineke Marc. gr. 475 (G)
Ar. Ran. 77 om. γ᾽ Bentley s.xviii in. Marc. gr. 475 teste Peppink ad Mnem. N.S. 60 (1933) 382
Ar. Ran. 239 Libero choro trib. Reisig n.d. Reg. gr. 147 (Vs1)
Ar. Ran. 252 γ᾽ ἄρα/γὰρ γ᾽ αρ[ Elmsley n.d. BKT V/II 18
Ar. Ran. 269 τῷ κωπίῳ τὼ κωπίω Valckenaer 1757 Matrit. 4683
Ar. Ran. 673 ποιῆσαι νοῆσαι Valckenaer 1757 Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Ran. 690 ἐγγενέσθαι ἐκγένεσθαι Valckenaer 1757 Md1 et U et Vs1 ἐκγενέσθαι MSS
Ar. Ran. 743 οἴμωζε ᾤμωζε Valckenaer 1757 Neap. II F 22 (Np1)
Ar. Ran. 826 δὴ δὲ Richards n.d. Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Ar. Ran. 870 σοι σοὶ F. V. Fritzsche 1845 Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Ran. 993 (δὲ) δὴ δὲ Bentley s.xviii in. Rac
Ar. Ran. 1046 ᾽πικαθοῖτο/γ᾽ ἐπικαθῆτο ᾽πικαθῆτο Bentley s.xviii in. Vs1 s.l. et Par 20 pc
Ar. Ran. 1052 τοιοῦτον τοῦτον Charles Daubuz 1710 Urb. gr. 141 (U)
Ar. Ran. 1063 ἀμπίσχ- ἀμπισχών Dindorf n.d. Brux. 4280–3 (Br1) Fritzsche?
Ar. Ran. 1064 τί τι Bentley s.xviii in. Urb. gr. 141 (U)
Ar. Ran. 1438 αἴροιεν αὖραι αὔραις Sommerstein n.d. Mpc
Ar. Ran. 1496 -σι σεμνοῖσιν Brunck 1783 Bodl. Holkh. Gr. 88 (L)
Ar. Thesm. 285 τὸ πόπανον τὰ πόπαν' Porson n.d. PSI XI 1194
Ar. Thesm. 287 Φερσέ- Φερρέφαττα Thiersch n.d. PSI XI 1194
Ar. Thesm. 745 τυν- τυννοῦτον et -το Brunck 1783 P.Oxy. LVI 3839
Ar. Thesm. 745 Μι. μικρὸν νὴ Δία μικρὸν νὴ Δία F. V. Fritzsche 1838 P.Oxy. LVI 3839
Ar. Thesm. 746 -εν γέγονε Brunck 1783 P.Oxy. LVI 3839
Ar. Thesm. 754 μοι τὸ τὸ Lobeck 1809 P.Oxy. LVI 3839 ad Ajax 1066
Ar. Thesm. 1185 -ύλῃ γογγυλί Enger n.d. P.Oxy. LVI 3840
Ar. Vesp. 239 -ψαμ- ἥψομεν Brunck 1783 Rav. 429 (R)
Ar. Vesp. 384 τα vel τὰ ἔσται Bentley s.xviii in. Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Vesp. 386 κλαύ- κατακλαύσαντες Bentley s.xviii in. Marc. gr. 474 (V)
Ar. Vesp. 390 -οισι δακρύοισιν Charles Daubuz 1710 Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Vesp. 398 ταῖσι ταῖσιν Charles Daubuz 1710 Marc. gr. 475 (G) 'but the doctor (as is supposed), thinking Mr. Daubuz would outshine him in learning, and eclipse his glory, did not encourage him to publish it'
Ar. Vesp. 399 -αν πρύμνην Elmsley n.d. Paris. gr. 2717 (C)
Ar. Vesp. 419 ὑμῶν ἡμῶν Florent Chrestien s.xvi ex. Palat. gr. 128 (Vp3)
Ar. Vesp. 526 δὲ δὴ Porson n.d. Palat. gr. 128 (Vp3)
Ar. Vesp. 558 -φυξιν ἀπόφευξιν Bentley s.xviii in. Haun. 1980 (H)
Ar. Vesp. 576 γράψομαι γράφομαι Brunck 1783 P.Oxy. XI 1374
Ar. Vesp. 694 ἀνταν- ἀντενέδωκεν P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Haun. 1980 (H)
Ar. Vesp. 790 ἐπέθηκε ἐνέθηκε Bergk P.Oxy. XI 1374
Ar. Vesp. 1132/5 ἀναλαβοῦ ἀναβαλοῦ Valckenaer 1757 B et Rpc
Ar. Vesp. 1210 -κλίνω κατακλινῶ Scaliger Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Vesp. 1413 -ειν κλητεύεις Bergler Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. Vesp. 1424 πράγμ- τραύματος Reiske Paris. gr. 2715 (B)
Ar. fr. 135 -ειψεν/ἡμεῖς ἤμει Bekker 1829 Phot. Szac
Ar. fr. 471 καὶ τῶν βελέκκων βελέκκων Theodor Kock 1880 P.Oxy. XV 1801 CAF I
Arat. Phaen. 140 ὑποφ- ὕπο φαίνεται Ernest Maass 1893 Edinb. Adv. MS 18.7.15 (E)
Arat. Phaen. 147 ὑπὸ ὕπο Ernest Maass 1893 Edinb. Adv. MS 18.7.15 (E) p. 97
Arat. Phaen. 196 -άν/-ήν ὄργνυιαν J. H. Voß 1824 Palat. gr. 40 (P)
Arat. Phaen. 313 -ον ἀσσότερος Jean Martin 1956 Salmant. M 233 (Q)
Arat. Phaen. 413 -ον εἰλυμένος Scaliger 1600 Epc ad Manil. 5.340 p. 430
Arat. Phaen. 421 α. τε κ. τε αἶψα δὲ κοῦφά τε J. H. Voß 1824 Vat. gr. 1910 (V)
Arat. Phaen. 466 συνεεργμ- συνεερμένα Philipp Buttmann 1826 Vat. gr. 199 (N)
Arat. Phaen. 627 μεταδύεται μέτα δύεται Grotius 1600 Edinb. Adv. MS 18.7.15 (E)
Arat. Phaen. 724 τε δὲ Guillaume Morel 1559 Salmant. M 233 (Q)
Arat. Phaen. 736 ἰοῦσα ἄγουσα Philipp Buttmann 1826 BKT V/I 7503 + 7804
Arat. Phaen. 750 ἐμπλήσει ἐμπλήσσει J. H. Voß 1824 BKT V/I 7503 + 7804
Arat. Phaen. 770 κε θέλῃ κ. κ᾿ ἐθέλῃ καὶ Jean Martin 1956 Paris. gr. 2841 (D)
Arat. Phaen. 832 ὑπείκωσ᾽ ὑπεῖεν ἂν Grotius 1600 Estensis α T 9 14 (T)
Arat. Phaen. 846 μετ᾽ μέτ᾽ J. H. Voß 1824 Edinb. Adv. MS 18.7.15 (E)
Arat. Phaen. 870 φαίνονται φαίνωνται J. H. Voß 1824 BKT V/I 7503 + 7804
Arat. Phaen. 1119 ἀγέρωνται ἐρχόμεναι ἀ. -οι J. H. Voß 1824 Edinb. Adv. MS 18.7.15 (E)
Archil. fr. 4.6 ἀλλά τε ἀλλ᾽ ἄγε Musurus n.d. P.Oxy. VI 854
Arist. Ath. 57.2 γερ- ἱερῶν Herbert Richards 1891 P.Lond.Lit. 108 apud Herwerden-Leeuwen
Arist. Cael. 292b αὕτη αὐτῇ Carl Prantl 1857 Paris. gr. 1853 (E) a.c.
Arist. EE 1215a5 -ον βίου Demetrius Chalcondyles Monac. gr. 635 (B) apud Ambr.
Arist. EE 1218a23 -εις τάξις Demetrius Chalcondyles Monac. gr. 635 (B) apud Ambr.
Arist. EE 1219b40 ε. ᾖ ἄ. εἰ ᾗ ἄνθρωπος Hermann Bonitz 1859 CBL N. Jahrb. f. Phil. u. Paed.
Arist. EE 1226a39 δρῶντες δρῶμεν Herbert Richards 1915 Monac. gr. 635 (B) 'We go wrong by doing so with our senses'
Arist. EE 1233a20 ἄξιον ἀξιοῦν ἄ. μικρῶν ἀ. Leonhard Spengel 1841–3 Vat. gr. 1342 (P) m. sec.
Arist. EE 1237b4 ἄλλῳ. ὥστ’ ἄλλο. ὥ. Henry Jackson Laur. Plut. 81.4 m. sec.
Arist. EE 1247a7 οὗτοι οὐ τῷ Demetrius Chalcondyles Lib. de bon. fort. apud Ambr.
Arist. EE 1249b15 -ῶς ἐπιτακτικὸς Herbert Richards 1915 Monac. gr. 635 (B)
Arist. Mech. 849b18 ἠνέχθη ἣν ἠν. Niccolò Leoniceno Paris. gr. 2115 (A)
Arist. Metaph. 1060b14 δ᾽/γὰρ γ᾽ Hermann Bonitz 1848 Vindob. phil. gr. 100 (J) s.l.
Arist. Metaph. 1075b23 ταὐτὰ ταῦτα Hermann Bonitz 1848 Vindob. phil. gr. 100 (J)
Arist. Po. 1447b9 om. ἀνώνυμος Bernays 1857–80 Σ
Arist. Po. 1447b16 μουσι- φυσικόν Daniel Heinsius 1611 Σ p. 71
Arist. Po. 1448a16 αὐτῇ δὲ τῇ τῇ αὐτῇ δὲ Petrus Victorius 1560 Paris. arab. 2346
Arist. Po. 1448a34 χωνίδ- Χιωνίδου Francesco Robortello 1548 Σ
Arist. Po. 1453b34 τὸν μ. τὸ μέλλοντα Theodorus Rentius 1569 Σ
Arist. Po. 1454b1 μύθου ἤθους Friedrich Ueberweg 1869 Σ
Arist. Po. 1455a4 χλοη- χοηφόροις Petrus Victorius 1560
Arist. Po. 1455b17 om. οὐ Bonaventura Vulcanius 1792 Σ apud Burgess
Arist. Po. 1456a28 τὰ διδόμενα τὰ ᾀδόμενα Vincenzo Maggi 1550 Σ
Arist. Po. 1456a34 καὶ Hermann 1802 Σ
Arist. Po. 1456b8 φανοῖτο φαίνοιτο Charles Bigg 1883 Ricc. 46 (B) Journ. of Phil. ('See Goodwin §26')
Arist. Po. 1456b21 ὄ. ῥ. ἄ. ἄρθρον ὄνομα ῥῆμα Leonhard Spengel 1868 Σ p. 328
Arist. Po. 1456b26 om. τὸ F. W. Reiz 1786 Σ
Arist. Po. 1457a3 -ὸν αὑτὴν Thomas Tyrwhitt 1794 Will. of Moerb.
Arist. Po. 1457a13 θεοδώρῳ τὸ δῶρον θεόδωρος τὸ δωρος Franz Ritter 1839 Σ
Arist. Po. 1457a33 -ος ὀνόματι Leonhard Spengel 1868 Σ p. 332
Arist. Po. 1457b2–3 ὑφ- ἀφῃρημένον Leonhard Spengel 1868 Σ p. 332
Arist. Po. 1458a29 πυρίχαλκον πυρὶ χαλκὸν Francesco Robortello 1548 Σ
Arist. Po. 1460a5 διαιρεῖσθαι αἱρεῖσθαι Hermann Bonitz 1862 Will. et Σ
Arist. Po. 1460b23 ἀ. εἰ ἀδύνατα Johannes Vahlen 1867 Paris. gr. 2038
Arist. Po. 1460b36 ἔτ. ὥ. ξενοφάνη εἰ ἔτυχεν ὥσπερ Ξενοφάνει Johannes Vahlen 1867 Ricc. 46 (B)
Arist. Po. 1461a16 τὸ δὲ τὰ δὲ Leonhard Spengel 1868 Σ p. 341
Arist. Po. 1461a31 γε κατὰ γε καὶ κατὰ Daniel Heinsius 1611 Σ
Arist. Po. 1461a34–5 ὡδὶ ἢ ὡς ὡδὶ ἢ ὡδί ὡς Johannes Vahlen 1874 Ricc. 46 (B)
Arist. Po. 1461b6–7 -λ- κεφαλλῆνες Thomas Tyrwhitt 1794 Paris. gr. 2038
Arist. Po. 1461b8 διαμάρτημα δι’ ἁμάρτημα Vincenzo Maggi 1550 Will. et Σ
Arist. Po. 1461b15–16 ὑπεναντία ὡς ὑπεναντίως Thomas Twining 1789 Σ
Arist. Po. 1461b21 ̓Ο. τοῦ Μ. ̓Ορέστῃ τῇ τοῦ Μενελάου Johannes Vahlen 1874 Σ
Arist. Po. 1462a3 om. οἳ Petrus Victorius 1560 Σ
Arist. Top. 121b ἐπ' ἄ./εἰς ἄ ὑπ' ἄλληλα Theodor Waitz 1846 M2 p. 473; 'alterum sub altero' (Pacius)
Arist. Top. 133a ἢ οὗ τοὔνομα ἢ τ. Giorgio Colli 1955 Vat. gr. 244 (W)
Arist. Top. 134b ἔσται ἔστι W. D. Ross 1955 Pier. Morg. 758 (M)
Arist. Top. 148a ἔτι εἰ τῶν ὁμοίων ἔ. ε. ἐπὶ τῶν ὁ. Max Wallies 1923 Marc. App.IV.5 (f)
Arist. fr. 57.12 Rose οὔτε ουδε Meineke 1839–57 P.Oxy. IV 666
Arist. fr. 842.7 Page τ᾽ ἀθάνατον/εἰς ἀ. ἰσαθάνατον Wilamowitz n.d. BKT I 25 Did. in D. col. 6.18 seqq.
Aristarch.Trag. fr. 3 -νημα σωφρόνισμα Meineke 1839–57 Macar.
Arr. An. 2.14.4 ἡ δ. ἐ. Ἀ. ἡ δὲ ἐπιστολὴ ἡ Ἀλεξάνδρου K. W. Krüger 1851 Vindob. hist. 4 (A)
Arr. An. 2.17.1 -λιπ- ὑπολειπομένους Karl Sintenis 1867 Vindob. hist. 4 (A)
Arr. An. 3.29.4 πόν- τόποις J. G. Schneider 1835 Paris. gr. 1753 (B) apud Krüger
Arr. An. 4.26.5 -ον ἀνέστελλεν H. R. Grundmann 1884 Vindob. hist. 4 (A)
Arr. An. 4.29.1 -ασθαι ἡγήσεσθαι J. G. Schneider 1835 Vindob. hist. 4 (A) apud Krüger
Arr. An. 6.3.2 ἐπεὶ ἐπὶ Karl Sintenis 1867 Vindob. hist. 4 (A)
Arr. Post Alex. 24.16 ἔ[]εν ἔταξεν Ulrich Köhler 1890 Vat. gr. 495 (V)
Ath. 3.116d π. μνήμης ἠξιωμένης παροιμίαν μ. -ην Casaubon 1597 D B Q M
Ath. 3.117c -ῆρος Κράτητος Casaubon 1597 B Qmg P
Ath. 3.118b ὡ. α. ὡς ὁ αὐτός Casaubon 1597 D B Qsl M
Ath. 3.125a -λειπ- Ἀπολιπούσῃ Casaubon 1597 D B
Ath. 4.128d πᾶσιν παισίν Casaubon 1597 DBQMP
Ath. 4.143a λύτγι- Λύττιοι Cobet Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 4.159d τῆς ε. ... -ᾳ τῇ εἰς ... Πραγματείαν Casaubon 1597 B Q M
Ath. 4.184a Μελοποιϊ- Μελοποιῶν Jacques Daléchamps 1583 D B Qpc M
Ath. 5.201f -αί πολλάς Georg Kaibel 1887 D B
Ath. 5.205e παρὰ π. δὲ Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 5.208d τριῶν τε τ. δὲ Johannes Schweighäuser 1801–5 Laur. Plut. 60.02 (E) a.c.
Ath. 8.359b πάντως κρες ἡμῖν ἐστιν π. κρέα ἡ. ἐ. Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 9.369d αλμ- Δαλματίαν Jacques Daléchamps 1583 Dmg B
Ath. 9.371a τοῦ ταινας τευτλίδας Casaubon 1597 Dsl B
Ath. 9.375e νοθ- νοτοῦντι J. C. de Pauw 1745 Marc. 447 (A)
Ath. 9.406d ἄν τις εἴποιμι ἄ. τι ε. Casaubon 1597 Dpc B
Ath. 9.408a τὸ δειναὶ προσλελαληκέναι τὸ δεῖνα π. Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 11.463d γοῦν δ ̓ οὖν P. P. Dobree 1833 C E
Ath. 11.485b τὴν δὴ τ. δὲ Johannes Schweighäuser 1801–5 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 11.490e οὐρανός τε γῆ οὐρανοστεγῆ Benjamin Heath 1798 Marc. 447 (A) apud Schweighäuser
Ath. 11.498a κάλλ- σκαλλίον Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B) σκάλλιον B
Ath. 11.499c Δ. ἐ. Δίφιλος δὲ ἐν Georg Kaibel 1890 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 11.506a -ων ἐπιγραφομένῳ Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 11.508f ἐπ- ἀπεσφάγη Nauck C E
Ath. 12.526d εἶ; τίς/ἢ τίς ἤ τις Meineke 1858 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 12.532c -λιπ- κατέλειπε(ν) Cobet 1873 C E
Ath. 13.568f Φιλιππίδου Φιλίππου Meineke 1859 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 13.574a ἀρξάμενος θ ̓ οὕτως ἀ. δ ̓ ο. Georg Kaibel 1890 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 13.594e εὐφ- συμφωνίαις Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 14.623a τέλος μέρος τέλος Meineke 1859 C E
Ath. 14.633b καιγ- καταγηρασάντων Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 14.634a κ. τε καλεῖσθαι δὲ Georg Kaibel 1890 C E B
Ath. 14.657b τὰς β. τοὺς βοῦς Casaubon 1597 Laur. Plut. 60.01 (B)
Ath. 15.694d ἔτικτε τέκνα Λατώ ἔ. παῖδα Λ. Hermann 1816 CE p. 694
Ath. Epit. 6.253e ὥσπερ ὥσπερ εἰ Jonathan Toup 1790 Laur. Plut. 60.02 (E)
Ath. Epit. 7.280e ἀλλήλους -οις Grotius 1626 Laur. Plut. 60.02 (E)
Ath. Epit. 14.655e τοῦ μέλανος ἔχοντος τ. μ. -ες Wilamowitz Laur. Plut. 60.02 (E)
BGU 1074 Οὐήρῳ Σευήρῳ Viereck n.d. P.Oxy. XXVII 2476
Bacchyl. 17.53 μ[ε κουρ]α με νυμ[φα H. Jurenka 1898 P.Oxy. VIII 1091
Bacchyl. 17.62 βαθείας ἐκ βαθείας Blass 1898 P.Oxy. VIII 1091
Bacchyl. fr. 20B.11 αὐτὴ/αὐτὰς αὐτίκα Georg Kaibel s.xix ex. P.Oxy. XI 1361 αυτ̣ικ̣[.]
Call. Ap. 2 οἷο δ' οἷον Valckenaer 1799 P.Oxy. XX 2258
Call. Ap. 7 μακράν -ρην Meineke 1861 P.Oxy. ined. A fr. 2 recto
Call. Ap. 8 schol. Ψ -ρευομ- καθιερωμένων Meineke 1861 Ambros. 734 (e)
Call. Ap. 10 ἴδη ἴδεν C. J. Blomfield 1815 P.Oxy. XX 2258 ]δεν
Call. Cer. 86 om. vel ἀμέλγει ἀμιθρεῖ David Ruhnken 1761 P.Oxy. XIX 2226
Call. Cer. 86 om. vel ἀμέλγει ἀμιθρεῖ Valckenaer 1799 P.Oxy. XIX 2226
Call. Cer. 93 ἶνες ρινος Valckenaer 1799 P.Oxy. XIX 2226
Call. Cer. 106 ἤδη οὐδὲν Bergk s.xix med. P.Oxy. XIX 2226
Call. Del. 25 ὑπαὶ ῥιπῆς ὑπ]ὸ ῥιπαῖς C. J. Blomfield 1815 P.Oxy. XIX 2225
Call. Del. 158 ὑπ᾽ ὀμ- ὑφ᾽ ὁμοκλῆς Janus Lascaris 1496 P.Oxy. XIX 2225 υφομ[
Call. Del. 159 πανσυ- πασσυδίῃ Janus Lascaris 1496 P.Oxy. XIX 2225
Call. Del. 179 καρπόν καπνόν Reiske 1757–66 P.Oxy. XIX 2225
Call. Dian. 16 -μάδας ἐνδρομίδας Janus Lascaris 1496 Et.Gen.
Call. Dian. 29 ὅτι ὅτε Janus Lascaris 1496 P.Mil.Vogl. II 42
Call. Dian. 61 μοχθίσσειαν μυχ- Meineke 1861 P.Ant. I 20 lemma
Call. Dian. 70 -ύσεται μορμύσσεται Janus Lascaris 1496 P.Ant. I 20
Call. Epigr. 27.1 -όν ἀοιδῶν Scaliger n.d. P.Oxy. LXVIII 4648 αοιδω[
Call. Jov. 80 σφι σφε Bentley 1697 P.Oxy. ined. A fr. 1 recto
Call. Lav.Pall. 52 μ᾽ οὐκ μὴ οὐκ Arnaldus s.xviii in. Paris. Gr. 2763 (E)
Call. Lav.Pall. 117 ἐ. δ᾽ ἐρέει Bergk s.xix med. Paris. Gr. 2763 (E)
Call. fr. 1.11 Schol. Lond. λεπτ` κατὰ λεπτ` A. Rostagni 1929 teste Milne Cl. R. 43 (1929) 214
Call. fr. 7.14 πολὺ μένουσιν πουλὺ μένωσιν Valckenaer 1799 PSI XI 1219 Elegiarum Fragmenta p. 276
Call. fr. 43.14 παραχρῆμ' παρὰ χρέος A. F. Naeke 1845 P.Oxy. XVII 2080
Call. fr. 43.16 ἀκουὰς ἀκουαῖς Bentley 1697 P.Oxy. XVII 2080
Call. fr. 43.64 γαιοδόται γεωδαῖται Bentley 1697 P.Oxy. XVII 2080
Call. fr. 43.71 γυνή γύπῃ David Ruhnken 1761 P.Oxy. XVII 2080
Call. fr. 43.71 γυνή γύπῃ Jonathan Toup s.xviii med. P.Oxy. XVII 2080 Exeter
Call. fr. 64.13 ἀκουὰς Κραννώνιος Bentley 1697 P.Oxy. XIX 2211
Call. fr. 115.12 γυνή ἔτραφεν David Ruhnken 1761 P.Oxy. XVII 2080
Call. fr. 178.16 λεύχης λέσχης Henri Estienne 1566 P.Oxy. XI 1362
Call. fr. 178.33 ναυτιλίῃσιν ἥν ]λίης εἰ νῆιν Nauck s.xix ex. P.Oxy. XI 1362 ?
Call. fr. 191.10 χάλκεον Παγχαῖον Bentley 1697 P.Oxy. XI 1363
Call. fr. 191.42 -ους παρθένοις Hemsterhuis 1761 P.Oxy. VII 1011 apud Ernesti
Call. fr. 197.1 ὅπερ Φεραῖοϲ αἰνείων- -αῖοϲαινίωνθὲοϲ Wilamowitz 1905 P.Oxy. XVIII 2171 Herm. 40 p. 158
Call. fr. 265 ἡληλ- κτλ. εἰληλούθειν Otto Schneider 1870 Sud. codd. AGITVM
Call. fr. 272 Δεκελ- δ᾽ ἐκλειόθεν Bentley 1697 Et.Gen.
Call. fr. 301 οὔτε ὅν τε Bentley 1697 schol. (a) et (b) cod. Ox. et Et.Gud.
Call. fr. 326 θανεῖν θανέειν Bentley 1697 'Zonar.' codd. Tittm.
Call. fr. 384.26 -ϲομ- θηϲαμενω Hunt 1922 P.Oxy. ined. ]ηϲαμενω[
Call. fr. 388.9 Φωκείων Φωκαέων Valckenaer 1799 P.Oxy. XV 1793
Call. fr. 721 ἔαϲιν ἐωϲιν Dindorf 1864 Theognost. cod. Barocc. Thes.L.Gr. I/2 p. 9 C
Callistr. 423.31 -αν στήσασα Friedrich Jacobs 1829–32 A
Carm. conv. 906 Page εἰ δὴ χρὴ εἰ χρὴ Johannes Schweighäuser 1798 Arist. Ath. c. 20 fin
Carm. conv. 906 Page εἰ δὴ χρὴ εἰ χρὴ Porson n.d. Arist. Ath. 20 fin
Carm. conv. 907 Page κύρησαν ἔσαν Erasmus n.d. Arist. Ath. 19.3
Charito 2.3.5 ποθεν ποδῶν J. Ph. d’Orville 1750 P.Oxy. VII 1019 a man of means
Charito 2.4.5 ἐπυρφόρει επυρπ̣ο[λει Rudolf Hercher 1854 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.4.6 μή τις μή τι Cobet 1842 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.4.7 ἀπόλωλαϲ ὦ ἀπόλωλά cοι Zimmerman 1925 P.Oxy. XLI 2948 Philologus LXXX (1925); απολ]ωλ̣α̣ ϲ̣οι
Charito 2.4.7 οὐδ' ... οὐδ' ουτε ... ο[υ]τ̣[ε Rudolf Hercher 1854 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.4.8 δὲ τίϲ ϲέ τιϲ Cobet 1842 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.4.8 τίνας τίνα Rudolf Hercher 1854 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.4.9 αν επειθεν ανεπειθ[εν Rudolf Hercher 1854 P.Oxy. XLI 2948
Charito 2.11.5 μᾶλλον οὐ μαλλον η C. D. Beck 1783 P.Michael. 1
Charito 4.2.8 τοσοῦτον τουτον F. L. Abresch 1753–5 P.Fay. 1
Charito 4.2.9 αἵματος τ̣ολμ[ηματος Cobet 1842 P.Fay. 1
Charito 4.2.13 ἐμνημόνευσεν εμνη]μονε[υ]σας Reiske 1750 P.Fay. 1
Charito 8.5.12 ἔχειν del. Rudolf Hercher 1854 codex Thebanus spatium non sufficit in Theb.
Charito 8.6.10 λειποψυχῶν λιπ- Cobet 1842 codex Thebanus
Charito 8.6.11 ἐπεκλύοντο -κυλιοντο J. Ph. d’Orville 1750 codex Thebanus
Charito 8.6.12 -ριον αργυρον Rudolf Hercher 1854 codex Thebanus
Charito 8.7.2 ὅτε ποτε Reiske 1750 codex Thebanus
Choerob. in Theod. p. 231.6-7 Παλάμ- Πάλμυδος Dindorf 1864 Marc. 489 (V) Gr. Gr. iv/1 Hilg.; ThGL 6,108 D
Choerob. in Theod. p. 268.35 λινό- αἰνοτάλαντα Bekker 1821 Marc. 489 (V) Gr. Gr. iv/1 Hilg.
Choerob. in Theod. p. 352.11 -τήτειρα ὀπτῆρα A. F. Naeke 1845 Coisl. 176 (Bekker) Gr. Gr. iv/1 Hilg.
Clem.Al. Strom. 2.9.45 θαυμάσας θαμβηβεὶς Theodor Zahn 1892 P.Oxy. IV 654 Gesch. d. NT. Kan. ii. p. 657
Cratin. fr. 107 ποσὶν ποσσὶν Meineke 1839–57 Poll. 10.50 S
Cratin. fr. 171 ΞΥΝΤΙΧΕΙΑΙ κτλ. ξυντυχίαισι Martin Runkel 1827 PSI XI 1212
Cratin. fr. 415 ἀποσεισάμενος ἀποσπ- Bergk 1838 Synag. 127.1 Commentationum de reliquiis p. 258
Cypr. F 1 θέτιδος Θέμιδος Heyne 1803 P.Oxy. LVI 3829
D.C. 37.13.2 -τητο ἐκεκράτυντο Reiske 1752 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L) apud Reimarum
D.C. 37.55.1 -ουμένου συναιρομένου F. W. Sturz 1825 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L)
D.C. 38.50.3 -σκοπ- ἐπικοπῆς Wilhelm Xylander 1558 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L)
D.C. 39.15.1 -ὼν βαλὸν Bekker 1849 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L)
D.C. 39.51.1 τ. πρὸ τ. ἠ. τὰ πρὸς τῆς ἠπείρου Bekker 1849 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L)
D.C. 39.55.4 τοῖς τε τοῖς τότε F. W. Sturz 1814 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L) p. 12
D.C. 40.64.1 τ. ἐ. αὑτ- π. τὴν ἐσθῆτα αὐτοῦ περιρρῆξαι Reiske 1757 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L) p. 72
D.C. 42.22.4 καὶ ἀ. κἂν ἀπέκτεινεν L. Dindorf 1863 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. 44.2.4 αὐτήν α. τε Reiske 1757 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L) p. 89
D.C. 46.34.2 -αντες δόξοντες Reiske 1757 Laur. Plut. 70.8 (L) p. 99
D.C. 46.34.2 ἀντικεκακ- ἀνατὶ κεκακῶσθαι H. S. Reimarus 1750 Paris. gr. 1169
D.C. 48.24.2 -είσης ἐρασθεὶς Wilhelm Xylander 1558 Turon. 980
D.C. 48.24.5 -ου περιορώμενος Wilhelm Xylander 1558 Turon. 980 p. 649
D.C. 69.13.3 λαμβάνων ἀπολ- Reiske 1757 Vat. gr. 145 (V) p. 149
D.C. fr. 5.3 -δημ- ἔκδηλον Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 5.6 δι᾿ ἃς μάχεσθε, προαποκτείνετε δ. ἃ. μ., -ατε Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 5.7 αὐτοῖς αὐταὶ τοῖς Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 5.7 ἔληγον ἐς λόγους F. R. C. Krebs 1832 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 8.1 ῥᾷον ῥᾷστα Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73 ῥαιστ. cod.
D.C. fr. 9.3 -ατο … ε. ἠμύνετο … εὐηργέτει Étienne Gros 1845 Turon. 980
D.C. fr. 12.10 -αι τεκμήρασθε Étienne Gros 1845 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 18.2 τινα ἰσχὺν ἔχειν τινα ἰσχύειν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 18.4 -μους πολεμίους Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 18.6 δέχ- δέξεσθαι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 18.7 αἵ τε γ. αἱ δὲ γυναῖκες Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 18.10 τέτοκ- ἔτεκεν Étienne Gros 1845 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 23.3 οἵ τέ γε οἵ τε γὰρ Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 23.3 προσχαρ- προχωρῆσαι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 25.4 πολλὰ πολλοὶ πολλὰ Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 29.4 που τοῦ F. W. Sturz 1825 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 36.2 τοὺς … αὐτοὺς τ. … αὐτὰς Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 36.3 που δόξει σπουδάζει Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 36.28 -ων πάντα Étienne Gros 1845 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 36.29 -ῶν αὐτὸν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 36.33 deest συληθῆναι Niebuhr 1828 Vat. gr. 73 RhM
D.C. fr. 38.2 προσ- προορᾶται Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 38.2 διαπεσεῖ ὅθεν διαπεσεῖσθαι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 39.10 τοῦ τὸ Étienne Gros 1845 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 40.13 φησι σφίσι F. W. Sturz 1825 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 40.18 πάθους παρὰ Leonhard Tafel 1831 Vat. gr. 73 in versione
D.C. fr. 40.18 θαρσή- φθαρήσεσθαι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 40.26 -οντο συνεστ- ἐγένετο συνιστάμενοι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 40.31 οὐ τῶν αὐτῶν οὐδὲν α. Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 40.32 -οις ἐ. τούτους ἐθεράπευεν Étienne Gros 1845 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 43.7 -ποίησαν μετεποιήσαντο Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 43.10 ἐν βίᾳ ἂν β. Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 43.14 ῥᾷστα αὐτὰ ῥ. αὐτὸ Bekker 1849 AB
D.C. fr. 43.18 πᾶσι γὰρ π. τὲ γ. Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 46.2 τοῦ -οῦ τῆς αὐτῆς L. Dindorf 1863 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 52.2 τότε ἐσωφρόν- τό τε σωφρονοῦν Bekker 1849 Paris. gr. 1169
D.C. fr. 54.2 -ανόντως κ. πρώην προλαμβάνων ὡς καὶ παρὸν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 55.4 ὅτι ὅτε Bekker 1849 Vat. et Paris. gr. 1169
D.C. fr. 55.5 τ. γε π. π. τῶν τοῦ πολέμου πραγμάτων Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 55.8 οὐκέτι οὐκ ἔστι Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 55.8 εὐδοκ- εὐδοξίαν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 55.10 -εῦσιν πρέσβεσιν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 56.1 πάνυ δι᾿ ὀργὴν π. δ. -ῆς Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.2 ὅ. ἀντωφ. ἐ. ὅσον ἂν ὠφελήσεσθαί ἐλπίσωσιν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.2 -αντας κατορθώσοντας Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.4 ἐπειδή τοῦθ' ἐ. τε τ. Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.4 κατάρχ- καὶ ἄρχειν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.6a -ᾶται τολμᾷ Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.6b ἐστὶν ᾿Ι. ἐς τὴν ᾿Ιταλίαν Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.11 α. δὲ ὀ. καὶ α. τὲ ὀ. καὶ Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.22 τ. ἄ. ἐκ μ. π. τῶν ἄλλων τῶν ἐκ μ. προλεγομένων Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.22 π. τέ τ. ἔσται μ. ἂν α. ἀποτροπὴ μ. π. τέ τ. ἔσται καὶ μ. ἂν α. ἀποτροπὴ μήτ᾽ Bekker 1849 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 57.25 -κελον ἀπερίσκεπτον F. W. Sturz 1825 Vat. gr. 73
D.C. fr. 58.2 -οῦσθαι ἐκτρυχώσειν L. Dindorf 1864 Vat. gr. 73 corrigendum
D.H. 1.6.3 -οῖς αὐτῆς Reiske 1774 Chis. 58 (A)
D.H. 1.6.5 -ους φιλοθέωρος Reiske 1774 Chis. 58 (A)
D.H. 1.48.2 -λεῖ κύκλῳ Reiske 1774 Urb. 105 (B)
D.H. 1.61.4 αὐτῶ αὑτῷ Hermann Sauppe 1861 Urb. 105 (Bb) Eph. Gott.; m. sec.
D.H. 1.62.1 βατί- βάτειαν Hermann Sauppe 1861 Chis. 58 (A)
D.H. 1.65.3 προειδ- προιδομένου Friedrich Sylburg 1586 Urb. 105 (Ba) m. pr.
D.H. 2.45.4 -ωσι συνάξουσι Cobet 1854 Urb. 105 (Ba) Var. lect. p. 97; m. pr.
D.H. 3.4.2 -εις κατάμεμψις Reiske 1774 Urb. 105 (Bb) m. sec.
D.H. 3.23.7 -ων εὕρισκον Reiske 1774 ABb
D.H. Comp. 2.6 κατανοοῦντι κατὰ γοῦν Reiske 1775 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F)
D.H. Comp. 6.1 τε πῶς καὶ τε καὶ Reiske 1775 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F)
D.H. Comp. 9.8 πλεῖ- πλέον Dindorf 1860 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F) ad Soph. fr. 754 (774 Radt)
D.H. Comp. 11.23 συμμετριάζ- συμμετρία σώζουσα Reiske 1775 FPM
D.H. Comp. 18.26 -ατο ἐπίμπρα Reiske 1775 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F)
D.H. Comp. 24.7 τῶν ἁπάντων τὸν ἀπ' αὐτῶν Reiske 1775 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F)
D.H. Comp. 25.43 τοῖς … -οις τοὺς … ἀπείρους Reiske 1775 Paris. gr. 2918 (E)
D.H. Dem. 4.5 ἐγκαλλωπιζ- ἐγκολπιζομένην Friedrich Sylburg 1586 Ambros. D 119 sup. (A)
D.H. Dem. 5.4 κάλλιον εἰπεῖν καλλιεπεῖν Friedrich Sylburg 1586 AIV
D.H. Dem. 24.11 om. οὔτε διδαχῆς Reiske 1777 AB
D.H. Dem. 50.2 ἐν ἑκάστοις σ. ἕνεκα τοῖς σώμασι Reiske 1777 Marc. app. gr. X 34 (V)
D.H. Isoc. 9.7 αὐτοὺς οὐ τοὺς Reiske 1775 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F)
D.H. Isoc. 13.2 καιν- κενότητος Henri Estienne 1575 TB
D.H. Lys. 9.5 τάξ- λέξεως John Taylor 1766 Laur. Plut. 59.15 (F) apud Holwell; m. pr.
D.H. Rh. 9.2 ἡ -α τὴν διδασκαλίαν Friedrich Sylburg 1586 Guelf. 14 (G) in tomum post. p. 9
D.L. 1.22 Νείλεῳ ἐκπεσόντι Φ. Ν. ἐκπεσὼν τῆς Φοινίκης Casaubon 1583 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 1.34 ἀστρολόγον -ων Reiske 1889 Palpc Plan Herm.
D.L. 1.53 -τροπῶ ἐπιτρέπω Casaubon 1583 Neap. III Β 28 (D)
D.L. 1.59 ὁτὲ ποτὲ Henri Estienne 1570 Gnomol.Vat. 505
D.L. 1.68 ἕκτ- πέμπτην Casaubon 1583 F3
D.L. 1.81 κ. -ὸν κατεσοβαρεύετο αὐτοῦ Joachim Kühn 1692 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 1.81 -ρικα γαύρηκα Gilles Ménage 1663 B2
D.L. 1.116 ψάμμου σάμου Casaubon 1583 rec.
D.L. 1.118 αὐ- δισκῆσαι αὑτὸν δισκεῦσαι Scaliger 1663 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) apud Ménage
D.L. 1.118 -ίστων βελτιόνων Walther Kranz 1934–7 Vat. gr. 990
D.L. 1.121 ἄρ’ οὖν τ. ἄ. ἀ. ἆρ’ οὖν τοῦτ’ ἄρ’ ἀληθές Gottlieb Roeper 1848 rec. Philol.
D.L. 2.15 ἐνθάδε ἐνθάδ’ ὁ Casaubon 1583 Ael. VH 8.19
D.L. 2.18 Εὐριπίδης -δας Cobet 1850 Laur. Plut. 69.13 (F)
D.L. 2.24 εἰ καὶ εἰ C. F. Hermann 1829 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 2.32 ὅτε καιρὸς ἤδη γηραιός Gilles Ménage 1663 Vat. gr. 990
D.L. 2.44 οὐδὲν οὐδὲν’ Grotius 1626 B2mg
D.L. 2.74 εἰπεῖν μ. εἶπε μή Casaubon 1583 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 2.105 Μήδι- Μήδειον Ludwig Preller 1864 Paris. gr. 1759 (P) m. pr.
D.L. 2.118 -κεκαυμ-/-κεκαλυμμ- συγκεκαμμένον Scaliger 1663 Neap. III B 29 (B) apud Ménage
D.L. 3.17 σαφάσαιμι/σαφὲς ἅμι σάφα ἴσαμι H. L. Ahrens 1843 Neap. III B 29 (B) σαφαισαμι
D.L. 3.53 μονοτρόπως Henri Estienne 1570 Vindob. phil. gr. 314 (Vi)
D.L. 3.78 εὐ- ἀπαραίτητα Casaubon 1583 Paris. gr. 1417
D.L. 4.9 ἤδη ἐδωροδόκηοεν ᾔδει δωροδοκήσων Madvig 1871 P4
D.L. 4.16 συνθέμενος -θέων Gilles Ménage 1663 B2mg
D.L. 4.16 ἧξε ᾖξε Hemsterhuis 1744 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) ad Ar. Plut. 732
D.L. 4.48 -ους αἰσθανομένοις Méric Casaubon 1664 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) apud Pearson
D.L. 5.1 φαιστιάδ- φαιστίδος P. J. Núñez 1621 Didym. Vita Arist. p. 43
D.L. 5.7 εἰς ἀθάνατον/τ’ ἀ- ἰσαθάνατον Bergk 1853 Didym.
D.L. 5.7 ἀχιλλ- ἀχιλεὺς Michael Maittaire 1722 Didym.
D.L. 6.9 -ὸν αὐτοῦ Cobet 1850 Vat. gr. 140 (W)
D.L. 6.14 ἐκ πάντων Σωκρατικῶν ἐκ π. τῶν Σ. Herbert Richards 1904 rec. CR
D.L. 6.52 -ας … -ας γυναῖκα … ἀπηγχονισμένην Herbert Richards 1904 Paris. suppl. gr. 134 (Π) CR
D.L. 6.54 -ποτε μηδέπω Gilles Ménage 1663 ΔΠ
D.L. 6.63 ἐνάριζ’ ἐράνιζ’ Henri Estienne 1593 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) praef. p. 12
D.L. 6.66 τῆ -α τὴν ἑταίραν Herbert Richards 1904 PpcΦ CR
D.L. 6.75 ἐπ’ -ὸν ἐπ’ αὐτῶ Reiske 1889 Palat. gr. 93 (Ψ) Herm. ('post eum')
D.L. 6.87 ἵν’ ἐγκρατὴς ἦ ἵν’ ἐγκρατήση Meineke 1857 B2
D.L. 7.86 τὸ κ. λ. τῷ κατὰ λόγον Otto Heine 1869 Neap. III Β 28 (D) JClPh
D.L. 7.123 προσποιουμένη -ης Joachim Kühn 1692 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 7.149 νόμ- ὅλων Reiske 1889 Sud. ε 142 Herm.
D.L. 7.152 πάχους -έος Reiske 1889 Sud. κ 1996 Herm.
D.L. 7.177 -άσειν δοξάζει Reiske 1889 Sud. ε 177 (praeter cod. A) Herm.
D.L. 8.13 τοῦ Ἀ. τὸν Ἀπόλλωνος Gilles Ménage 1663 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 8.39 καταληφθῆναι -λειφθῆναι Eduard Schwartz 1903 cod. Cantab. (Marcovich) RE
D.L. 9.2 ὅκως ὑπὲρ ὅκωσπερ Meineke 1842 rec.
D.L. 9.32 ἀφίστασθαι ὑφ- Reiske 1889 Φh Herm.
D.L. 9.32 ἐπέκρυσ- ἐπέκκρισιν W. A. Heidel 1912 Arsenii Violetum apud Diels
D.L. 9.42 π. τ. τῆς περὶ Casaubon 1583 Neap. III Β 28 (D)
D.L. 9.43 δοκεῖ ἐδόκει Herbert Richards 1904 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) CR
D.L. 9.66 καθάροι ἐκάθαιρεν Gilles Ménage 1663 Φh
D.L. 9.69 ἀνθρώπων ἀπάνθρωπον Casaubon 1583 Laur. Plut. 69.28 (G)
D.L. 9.79 κ. ε. καὶ αἱ εὐλαὶ Reiske 1889 Sud. π 3216 Herm.
D.L. 9.89 τὸ ἀ. τοῦ ἀπορροίας Ignazio Rossi 1788 Φh
D.L. 9.106 μηδὲν ε. … τ. δ. μ. ε. τὰ μὲν εἶναι … τὰ δὲ μὴ εἶναι Reiske 1889 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) Herm.
D.L. 9.107 ὅτι φ. ὅτε φαίνεται Jonathan Barnes 1992 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.5 λεοντίαν Λεόντιον Casaubon 1583 Laur. Plut. 69.35 (H) m. sec.
D.L. 10.25 Ἐπιστολικά περὶ Ἐ. ε. κ. δ. Ἐπιστολικά, Περὶ Ἐ. ε. κ. δ. Bernays 1866 Neap. III B 29 (B)
D.L. 10.26 φιλονεικεῖ ἐφιλονείκει Casaubon 1593 Φh apud Stephanum
D.L. 10.31 ἀδυνατεῖ δύναταί Pierre Gassendi 1649 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.32 -γένεια ὁμογενὴς Pierre Gassendi 1649 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.32 εἴρη- ἤρτηται Tommaso Aldobrandini 1594 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.36 καὶ ἐπ’ ἐκεῖνα συνεχῶς καὶ ἐ. ἐ. καὶ σ. Walter Arndt 1913 Neap. III Β 28 (D) diss.
D.L. 10.40 δὲ εἰ εἰ δὲ Pierre Gassendi 1649 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.44 ἑκάστην αὐτὴν ἑ. -ῶν J. G. Schneider 1813 Neap. III Β 28 (D)
D.L. 10.57 -τέον θεωρητόν J. G. Schneider 1813 Constant. gr. Vet. Ser. 80 (Co)
D.L. 10.63 καὶ C. F. Hermann 1834 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.65 -θησία ἀναισθητεῖ(ν) J. G. Schneider 1813 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.65 ταύτ- αὕτη Marcus Meibom 1692 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) Musiktheoretiker
D.L. 10.72 διαλέκτους ὡς βελτίους -ου ὡ. β. Joachim Kühn 1692 P1
D.L. 10.83 ὅσοι Pierre Gassendi 1649 rec.
D.L. 10.110 τὰ μ. τὰ δὲ τὰ μέρη. τὸ δὲ Pierre Gassendi 1649 Constant. gr. Vet. Ser. 80 (Co)
D.L. 10.119 καὶ -εὶς κἂν πηρωθῆ Herbert Richards 1904 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ) CR
D.L. 10.126 τὸ σιτίον οὐ τὸ πλεῖον σ. ο. τ. π. Usener 1887 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.131 τὰς τῶν ἐν ἀπολ. τὰς ἐν ἀπολαύσει Ignazio Rossi 1788 Vat. gr. 96 (Φ)
D.L. 10.142 εἰσπλη- ἐκπληρουμένοις Usener 1887 Diog.Oen. fr. 33 mg inf. S.
D.L. 10.151 ἀπὸ ἐπὶ Gilles Ménage 1663 Epicur. Sent.Vat. 6
D.S. 9.10.4 ἐᾷ τὰ γράμματα ἐᾷ με γ. L. Dindorf 1828 Vat. gr. 73 (M)
D.S. 11.7.4 deest ὁρῶν Henri Estienne 1559 PS
D.S. 12.63.2 -ων τούτω Reiske 1757 PS
D.S. 12.68.6 ταῦτα ταύτας Reiske 1757 Escor. Σ-III-5 (S)
D.S. 12.76.1 προβ- περιβεβληκότες Henri Estienne 1559 Escor. Σ-III-5 (S)
D.S. 20.21.1 ἀθῴους ἀθρόους J. F. S. Kaltwasser 1786 R2X
D.S. 20.40.6 -δεδεγ- ἀποδεδειγμένος L. Dindorf 1826 RX
D.T. schol. p. 471.35 Ἀντιφ- Ἰοφῶντος J. A. Cramer 1837 Vat. gr. 14 (C)
Dem. 1.14 τις ἂν εἴποι κτλ. del. Cobet s.xix med. P.Oxy. LXII 4310
Dem. 4.29 -ριεῖ προσποριεῖται Ludolf Küster s.xvii/xviii Paris. gr. 2936 (R)
Dem. 5.13 γεγενημένην Reiske 1774–5 ve Wb
Dem. 6.6 πρόσθ- προσθῆσθε Bekker 1823 Vind. phil. gr. 70 (Wb)
Dem. 6.9 ταῦθ ̓/ταῦτα ταὐτὰ Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Vind. phil. gr. 70 (Wb)
Dem. 7.17 διεπίσ- δ' ἐπίστευεν Cobet s.xix med. Mg (?) apud Dilts
Dem. 8.28 κωλῦσαι ἐπισχεῖν Blass 1885–9 EM
Dem. 9.25 πέμπτον/πολλοστὸν μ. μέρος Carl Rehdantz 1865 Opc
Dem. 9.53 μισῆσαι μισεῖν Blass 1885–9 Ypc
Dem. 9.67 ὥστε ὥ. μηδέν Seager n.d. Opc
Dem. 9.75 π. ἔπειτα … εἰ γὰρ … ποιήσοντας εἰ γὰρ … ἔπειτα … G. H. Schaefer 1824 Harl. 6322 (Ll)
Dem. 10.58 οἰομ- εἰθισμένοις Cobet Monac. gr. 485 (A)
Dem. 14.5 δὲ δὴ P. P. Dobree 1814 P.Med. inv. 71.80 pc
Dem. 17.8 ὑμᾶς ἡμᾶς Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Vind. phil. gr. 70 (Wb)
Dem. 18.90 προγενομ- προγεγεναμένοις G. H. Schaefer 1825 Hpc
Dem. 18.92 κοινῷ ἐν τῷ κ. P. P. Dobree 1814 Vind. phil. gr. 137 (We)
Dem. 18.99 ἐθελόν- ἐθελοντῶν Giovanni Bernardino Feliciano 1543 Monac. gr. 85 (B)
Dem. 18.195 χρὴ χρῆν Markland 1757 Paris. gr. 2508 (H)
Dem. 18.195 τῷ τὸ P. P. Dobree 1814 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 136 (Ft)
Dem. 18.204 -σα(ι)το ἀγασθείη Cobet s.xix med. P.Oslo II 10
Dem. 18.248 φυλά- φυλακῶν Karl Halm n.d. Paris. gr. 2935 (Y)
Dem. 18.258 τὴν/om. τῆς Scheibe n.d. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 136 (Ft)
Dem. 18.310 κ. τε καλῷ Karl Fuhr 1914 Brux. Bibl. Regia 11294–5 (O)
Dem. 19.3 πεποιήκῃ/ἐμπεποιήκει ἐμπεποίηκεν Markland 1757 P.Oxy. LXVII 4569
Dem. 19.21 διδάσκειν διδάξαι Markland 1757 Pap.Flor. IV 24 + P.Lond.Lit. 127
Dem. 19.21 ταῦτα τοῦτο J. T. Voemel 1849 Pap.Flor. IV 24 + P.Lond.Lit. 127
Dem. 19.190 εἰσιτήρια/εἰσητήρια εἰσιτητήρια Reiske 1774–5 Salaman. M 224 (Sb)
Dem. 19.254 οἷος οἵους Cobet s.xix med. Lond. Addit. 39617 (Ln)
Dem. 19.255 -αμένη ἀποτισομένη Friedrich Sylburg B2
Dem. 19.280 καὶ τοῦ τοῦ P. P. Dobree 1814 P.Oxy. VIII 1094
Dem. 19.300 -ους τούτοις Reiske 1774–5 Laur. Plut. 61.136 (L)
Dem. 19.303 Θεμιστοκλέους τὸ Θ. Henri Weil 1883 schol.
Dem. 20.2 ἀφείλετο del. Reiske 1774–5 S1
Dem. 20.28 διείρηκεν διῄρηκεν P. P. Dobree 1814 Ftpc
Dem. 20.155 ἡμᾶς ὑμᾶς F. A. Wolf 1789 Vind. phil. gr. 70 (Wb)
Dem. 21.10 μήτε μὴ Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Bpc
Dem. 21.18 προσδ- προδιαφθείρας Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Caes. Malat. D 27.1 (Cd)
Dem. 21.52 -ες ἀνίσχοντας Denys Lambin 1570 Lond. Addit. 39617 (Ln)
Dem. 21.53 κρατῆρας Humbert n.d. Scorial. Φ II 1 (Ee)
Dem. 21.104 εἰμὶ εἴην Cobet s.xix med. Cdpc
Dem. 21.114 ἢ τὰ καὶ τὰ Markland 1757 Bpc
Dem. 21.122 εἰ εἰπεῖν Reiske 1774–5 kpc
Dem. 21.220 πρόη- προῆσθε Dindorf 1874 Vpc
Dem. 22 arg. 2.9 διαφων- διαφθονηθῇ Hieronymus Wolf 1604 TCDG
Dem. 23 arg. 2.4 Θάσ- Θριάσιος Hieronymus Wolf 1604 TCDG
Dem. 23 arg. 2.5 -ης Κερσοβλέπτῃ Bekker 1823 Paris. 2940 (T) corr. pr. m.
Dem. 23.114 ἔχοι εἶχεν Hieronymus Wolf 1604 P.Oxy. III 459 = Pap.Flor. VIII 33 ac
Dem. 23.115 -λή ἐπιστολαί Reiske 1774–5 P.Oxy. III 459 = Pap.Flor. VIII 33
Dem. 23.117 βουλεύσθε βούλη[σθ]ε Reiske 1774–5 P.Oxy. III 459 = Pap.Flor. VIII 33
Dem. 23.152 αὐ- αὑτοῦ Reiske 1774–5 Ppc
Dem. 24.63 -τῖσ- ἀποτεῖσαι Blass 1885–9 P.Oxy. IV 701 = Pap.Flor. VIII 36 pc
Dem. 24.64 -τίσ- ἐκτείσῃ Blass 1885–9 P.Oxy. IV 701 = Pap.Flor. VIII 36 pc
Dem. 24.64 -τίσ- ἐκτείσωσι Blass 1885–9 P.Oxy. IV 701 = Pap.Flor. VIII 36 pc
Dem. 24.108 -γήσ- ἀπολογίσασθαι Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Paris. gr. 2998 (k)
Dem. 24.183 προσέδοξεν πρὸς ἔδοξεν Dindorf 1874 Ρ.Oxy. XV 1811
Dem. 31.11 -αντα ποιήσοντα P. P. Dobree 1814 Marc. gr. 416 (F)
Dem. 39.21 σεαυτὸν σε αὐτὸν G. H. Schaefer 1827 Marc. gr. 416 (F)
Dem. 39.23 προσμισεῖν πρὸς μισεῖν G. H. Schaefer 1827 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 41 arg. 1 τὸ τὸ μὲν Blass 1885–9 SD
Dem. 42.23 μεμάθηκας -κώς Joseph May s.xix/xx Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 43.27 τούτῳ τουτῳί Blass 1885–9 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 43.72 οὗτος (οὕτως) οὕτως Reiske 1774–5 Marc. gr. 418 (Q)
Dem. 44.11 -ειν ποιήσει Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Paris. gr. 2936 (R)
Dem. 49.19 μοῦ αὐτῶν μου αὐτῷ Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 52.3 λαμπρεῖ Λαμπτρεῖ Baiter-Sauppe 1839 Harp. λ 4
Dem. 52.15 θέλων 'θέλοντος Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 52.17 οὖν οὐ Bekker 1823 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 52.19 εἴ Denys Lambin 1570 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 52.29 -λειφ- ἀπαληλιφέναι Bekker 1823 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 54.28 λε- ληχθῆναι Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Monac. gr. 485 (A) ?
Dem. 57.15 εἴεσαν/εἴησαν ἤεσαν G. H. Schaefer 1827 Marc. gr. 416 (F)
Dem. 57.67 ταῦτά ταὐτά Denys Lambin 1570 Dac Lambin p.c.
Dem. 58.10 -ῆκεν προσήκει Thalheim n.d. Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 59.40 ἀήτης αἰήτης Reiske 1774–5 Coislin. 339 (v)
Dem. 59.43 ἡμᾶς ὑμᾶς G. H. Schaefer 1827 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 59.74 εὐλαβ- εὐσεβείας John Taylor 1757 Dpc
Dem. 60.8 οὐδ ̓ οὔθ ̓ Reiske 1774–5 Laur. 59.9 (P)
Dem. 61.37 τὴν τῶν Hermann Sauppe 1839 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. 61.39 ἐν ἐπὶ Hieronymus Wolf 1604 Ambros. D 112 sup. (D)
Dem. Ep. 2.1 ἡγού- ἡρούμην G. H. Schaefer 1827 F2
Dem. Ep. 3.9 τὸ ὅσον ὅσον Blass 1885–9 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.22 ἀγνώμοσι ἀγνῶσι P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.22 ἠδικεῖσθε/ἀδικεῖσθαι ἀδικοῖσθε Hermann Sauppe 1839 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.25 οὐδεὶς ἂν οὐδεὶς Hermann Sauppe 1839 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.27 τὴν τιν' Blass 1885–9 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.28 δὲ δ'ἐν Reiske 1771 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.30 πατρῴους πατρίους Hieronymus Wolf 1604 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.31 Εὔδικον/Εὔδημον Εὐθύδικον Blass 1885–9 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.32 γενήσεσθαι γενέσθαι Karl Fuhr 1914 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Ep. 3.38 om. ἐὰν Bekker 1823 P.Lond.Lit. 130 (inv. 133)
Dem. Prooem. 26.1 κοιῶς κοινῶν Hieronymus Wolf 1604 P.Oxy. I 26
Din. 1.109 ἐλεήϲετε ε̣λ̣ε̣ηϲαιτε P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. XLIX 3436
Din. 3.21 καταλλάξαϲθαι ἀντικαταλλ- G. A. Hirschig 1850 P.Oxy. XLIX 3437 Philologue 5 (1850) 326–328
Din. 3.22 om. ψηφιϲμάτων Eduard Maetzner 1842 P.Oxy. XLIX 3437
Diog. Ep. 34.2 ἀρκ- ἀλκτήρια Alfons Hecker 1842 Palat. gr. 398 (P) Comment. Callim. (1842) 92 ad Callim. fr. 346 Pf.
Diph. fr. 69 -ην/-ον εὑρημένη Scaliger n.d. Et.Sym. et Synag.
EM 229.44 καλεῖται Καλλίμαχος Alfons Hecker 1849 Et.Gen. B Philol. 4, 478
Epich. fr. 97 ]ότως και εοικοτως Blass 1889 P.Oxy. XXV 2429 Jb. cl. Ph. 139 (1889) 261
Epict. Diatr. 4.1.136 om. εἰ Hieronymus Wolf 1560 P.Cair.Mich. II 11 vel πότερον Wolf
Epicur. Sent.Vat. 51 -ει ἔθη Wilhelm von Hartel 1888 P.Berol. 16369 apud Wotke
Eub. fr. 39 δ' ἐπέσεσθε κτλ. δὲ πεύσεσθ' Meineke 1839–57 Et.Sym.
Eub. fr. 46 -λικὰ σικελὰ Bentley 1708 Poll. F epist. ad Hemst. I p. 284 Wordsw.
Eup. fr. 99.42 τ. π. πέττειν τινὰ Casaubon 1621 P.Cair. 43227 πέττειν τι[
Eur. Alc. 493 γε τι Nauck n.d. Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE)
Eur. Alc. 909 -ὰς πολιᾶς Lenting n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O)
Eur. Alc. 1037 ἀτιμάζων ἀτίζων Scaliger n.d. Harl. 5743 (Q)
Eur. Alc. 1092 ὅπουπερ ἔστι ὅτου πάρεστι Andreas Weidner 1883 Harl. 5743 (Q) ὅπου πάρεστι Q
Eur. Alc. 1112 -μοις δόμους Monk n.d. Marc. gr. IX 10
Eur. Andr. 7 habent del. Valckenaer n.d. P.Oxy. III 449
Eur. Andr. 404 δῆτ᾽ ἐμοὶ δῆτά μοι Ludwig Radermacher 1891 lΣy et Σy p. 12
Eur. Andr. 814 μέγ᾽ ἀλγεῖ μεταλγεῖ Nauck n.d. γρΣv et iΣhb
Eur. Andr. 832 -λοις πέπλους Reiske n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O)
Eur. Andr. 962 φόβω(ι) φόνωι Lenting n.d. Hier. τάφου 36 (H)
Eur. Andr. 985 τε δὲ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vatop. 36 (gV)
Eur. Andr. 1009 ἰὼ ω Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 P.Oxy. XXII 2335 et P.Berol. inv. 17021
Eur. Andr. 1079 -άθειν ἀμυναθεῖν Elmsley n.d. Hier. τάφου 36 (H)
Eur. Ba. 20 πρῶτον πρώτην Cobet 1873 Chr. Pat. 1595 cod. A p. 599
Eur. Ba. 23 τῆσ- τασδε Johannes Pierson 1752 P.Berol inv. 21235 p. 122
Eur. Ba. 233 ὅστις ὥς τ[ις Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 P.Oxy. LIII 3718
Eur. Ba. 406 θ᾽ ἃν ἔνθ᾽ Schoene n.d. Barberin. gr. 4 (gB)
Eur. Ba. 468 ἀλλ᾽ ὃς α̣λλα Willem Canter 1571 P.Ant. I 24
Eur. Ba. 468 -λης σεμελην Willem Canter 1571 P.Ant. I 24
Eur. Ba. 1083 ἐστήριζε -ιξε Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Chr. Pat. 2259
Eur. Ba. 1083 σεμνοῦ -ον Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1096 κραταβ- κραταιβόλους Benjamin Heath n.d. Chr. Pat. 667
Eur. Ba. 1098 δ' τ F. H. Bothe 1802 P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1100 τ' ὄχον στοχον Reiske n.d. P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1102 τλῆμον τλημων Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1102 -ησμένος λελημμενος Samuel Musgrave n.d. P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1104 -σπάρασον α]νεσπαρασσον Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1132 στυγνάζων στεναζων Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1133 ἀνέφερε εφερε Duport n.d. P.Oxy. XIX 2223
Eur. Ba. 1157 ἀίδαν Ἀίδα Benjamin Heath n.d. P.Ant. II 73 αι̣δα
Eur. Ba. 1179 ἐμὸν ἐμὸν ἐμὸν Samuel Musgrave n.d. Plut. Crass. 33.6 (codd. Plut.)
Eur. Ba. 1184 τλάμων τλᾶμ̣ον F. H. Bothe 1802 P.Ant. II 73
Eur. Ba. 1285 οἰμ- ὠιμωγμένον Elmsley n.d. Orus de orthogr. = lex. Messan., ed. Rabe, Rh. Mus. 47 (1892) 413
Eur. Ba. 1332 ἀρμονίας Ἁρμονίαν Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 D.P. 391 schol.
Eur. Ba. 1344 -μεθά λισσόμεσθά Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Chr. Pat. 2557 codd. pauci
Eur. Ba. 1345 εἴδ- ἤιδετε Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Et.Gen. AB etc.
Eur. Ba. arg. 7 -ως ἄλλους F. H. Bothe 1826 Palat. gr. 287 (P)
Eur. El. 374 γ' ἄρα ταρα August Seidler n.d. P.Hib. I 7
Eur. El. 568 -ῆς φρονεῖς John Jackson 1955 Lac
Eur. HF 62 θεῶν θείων Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. ps.-Iustin. expos. fid. 8
Eur. HF 168 ἐμοὺς ]εμοι Camper n.d. P.Hib. II 179
Eur. Hec. 8 χερρο- Χερσονησίαν Brunck n.d. St.Byz.
Eur. Hec. 210 ἁ τ- τάλαινα August Seidler n.d. Vat. gr. 53 (Vb)
Eur. Hec. 355 μέτα μέγα Willem Canter 1571 Rw i.m.
Eur. Hec. 426 τ᾽ ἐμοί τέ μοι August Matthiae 1813 Vat. gr. 1345 (Sa)
Eur. Hec. 580 λέγον λέγων Johannes Pierson pre-1752 MB et V2 et iΣm GRBS (2009)
Eur. Hec. 605 μου μοι G. H. Schaefer n.d. Dres. Da.22 (Dr)
Eur. Hec. 810 ποτ᾽ τότ᾽ Hoffmann n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O)
Eur. Hec. 902 κοινὸν καλὸν Nagel n.d. Thom. Mag. ap. Treu, JclPh Suppl. 27 (1902) 24
Eur. Hec. 908 τοιόνδ᾽ τοῖον Johannes Livineius 1581–2 Hier. τάφου 36 (H)
Eur. Hec. 921 ναύταν ναυτᾶν Valckenaer n.d. Σm
Eur. Hec. 931 Ἰλιάδα Ἰλιάδος Valckenaer 1749 K1c et PrRfRw
Eur. Hec. 932 ἐς οἴκους οἴκους King n.d. manus Triclinii
Eur. Hec. 958 αῦτα αὐτὰ Hermann n.d. F2
Eur. Hec. 984 χρὴ δεῖ Nauck n.d. GK
Eur. Hec. 1032 ἐπήγαγεν ὑπ- Goram n.d. Vat. gr. 1345 (Sa)
Eur. Hec. 1070 τᾶνδε τάνδε August Seidler n.d. OGZc
Eur. Hec. 1108 ζοῆς/ζωῆς ζόης Markland 1822 Va i.m. ap. Burges, CJ 25 (1822) 340
Eur. Hec. 1167 -υον ἤνυτον L. Dindorf n.d. Huv
Eur. Hec. 1176 τε τὸν Nauck n.d. Laur. 32.3 (L)
Eur. Hec. 1215 -νῶι καπνὸς Willem Canter 1571 Kγρ
Eur. Hel. 135 οὔ πω vel ἦ που οὔ που P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Laur. 32.3 (L)
Eur. Hel. 634 χεῖρας χέρας Elmsley n.d. P.Oxy. XXII 2336
Eur. Heracl. 837 -ῃ μάχη Elmsley 1813 Laur. 32.3 (L)
Eur. Hipp. 71–2 ὄπαρθένων ἄρτεμι ὄλυμπον Nauck n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O)
Eur. Hipp. 364 σὰν σᾶν Elmsley n.d. Paris. gr. 2713 (B)
Eur. Hipp. 378 κάκιον κακίον' Henrik van Herwerden n.d. cod. Oxon. Cyrilli Alex. Exerc. crit. (1862) 135
Eur. Hipp. 480 τἄρα γ᾽ τἄρ᾽ ἂν Brunck n.d. Hc
Eur. Hipp. 554 τλάμον/τλᾶμον τλάμων Benjamin Heath n.d. Vat. gr. 910 (C)
Eur. Hipp. 560 διογ- διγόνοιο Scaliger n.d. γρΣb
Eur. Hipp. 584 ἰαχὰν ιαν Weil n.d. P.Oxy. XIX 2224
Eur. Hipp. 659 ἔκδημος ἐκδημῆ Hermann n.d. DB2
Eur. Hipp. 814 ὦ βιαίως βιαίω F. H. Bothe 1802 Laur. 31.15 (D)
Eur. Hipp. 1070 ἧπαρ δακρύων τ' ἧπαρ· δακρύων Wilamowitz n.d. HnOx
Eur. Hipp. 1255 -ραὶ συμφορὰ Elmsley n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O)
Eur. Hipp. 1317 -póv ἐχθρῶν Elmsley n.d. V3
Eur. IA 308 γε φ. σε δεῖ γε φερειν σε Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. P.Köln II 67
Eur. IA 309 -ως αλλοις Markland n.d. P.Köln II 67
Eur. IA 380 αἰσχρὸς οὐκ χρηστὸς Grotius n.d. Stob. cod. M
Eur. IA 793 οὐλο- ολο̣[μενας George Burges P.Leid. inv. 510
Eur. IA 804 πύλας πελ̣[ας Joshua Barnes n.d. P.Köln II 67
Eur. IT 252 καὶ τυχ- κἀντυχόντες Reiske 1753–4 P.Hib. I 24
Eur. IT 587 γε τὰ Hermann n.d. P.Hib. I 24 ]τ̣α
Eur. IT 618 τήνδε τῆσδε F. H. Bothe n.d. P.Hib. I 24
Eur. Ion 1428 Jean Brodeau Laur. 32.3 (L)
Eur. Med. 12 πολιτῶν πολίταις Joshua Barnes n.d. V3
Eur. Med. 140 τὸν Samuel Musgrave 1778 HE
Eur. Med. 159 εὐνέταν εὐνάταν Thomas Tyrwhitt 1822 Es
Eur. Med. 189 -μαθ- ὁρμηθῆ(ι) Brunck n.d. Athous Ivir. 209 (E)
Eur. Med. 246 -κα ἥλικας Porson n.d. Haun. 417 (Hn)
Eur. Med. 261 -κη(ι) δίκην Elmsley n.d. CDE
Eur. Med. 291 μέγα σ. μεταστένειν Nauck n.d. Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE)
Eur. Med. 306 τι τί Murray n.d. OA
Eur. Med. 584 σύ σύ· Witzschel n.d. ELV2
Eur. Med. 584 νῦν νυν Elmsley n.d. gE et Σb
Eur. Med. 594 -έως βασιλεων Elmsley n.d. P.Heid. 1385
Eur. Med. 884 τ' ἐμοὶ τέ μοι Janus Lascaris n.d. Palat. gr. 98 (Va)
Eur. Med. 979 ἁ δ. δύστανος Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Laur. 31.15 (D)
Eur. Med. 1089 κοὐκ οὐκ Reiske n.d. P.Lond.Univ.Coll. inv. s.n.
Eur. Med. 1094 μέν τ' μέν γ' Reiske n.d. P.Strasb. inv. WG 304–307
Eur. Med. 1094 μέν τ' μέν Porson n.d. Neap. Vind. gr. 17 (Nv)
Eur. Med. 1101 -ωσι θρεψουσι Brunck n.d. P.Strasb. inv. WG 304–307
Eur. Med. 1108 ἤλυθε/ἦλθε ηλθεν Dindorf n.d. P.Strasb. inv. WG 304–307
Eur. Med. 1110 ἀίδην/ἀίδαν αιδου Earle n.d. P.Strasb. inv. WG 304–307
Eur. Med. 1159 -πέσχ- ἠμπίσχετο Aemilius Portus n.d. Hn et gE
Eur. Med. 1180 δρομ- δρα[μη]μασιν Cobet s.xix ex. P.Oxy. XXII 2337
Eur. Med. 1281 ὧν ὃν August Seidler n.d. P.Harr. I 38
Eur. Med. 1281 μοίραι τ̣ο̣λμαι Nauck n.d. P.Strasb. inv. WG 304–307
Eur. Med. 1285 ἄλη(ι) άλα̣ι̣ς Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. P.Harr. I 38
Eur. Med. 1290 δή ποτ᾽ δητ᾽ Hermann n.d. P.Harr. I 38
Eur. Med. 1296 γῆ(ς) σφε γης γε Elmsley n.d. P.Harr. I 38
Eur. Med. 1308 ἤ πω et ἦ που ου που Barthold n.d. P.Harr. I 38
Eur. Med. (a) 15 ἡβώωντα/ἡβόωντα ἡβώοντα Janus Lascaris n.d. Palat. gr. 98 (Va)
Eur. Med. (a) 28 τῶ τὸ Brunck n.d. Laur. 31.15 (D)
Eur. Or. 35 ὁ δὲ ὅδε Reiske n.d. GK
Eur. Or. 38 -βω(ι) φόβον Charles Willink 1986 V3sXd
Eur. Or. 47 μήτε μηδὲ Elmsley n.d. AGK
Eur. Or. 64 -κε παρέδωκεν Porson n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 393 (An)
Eur. Or. 79 ὅ. δ' ὅπως Porson n.d. B1cRw
Eur. Or. 82 γόνον δόμον Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. K2γρ
Eur. Or. 118 τε γε Benedict n.d. ZbZcTac
Eur. Or. 127 κεκτη- κεχρημένοις F. W. Schmidt n.d. AarγρGglR1γρ
Eur. Or. 141 κτυπεῖτε ψοφεῖτε Elmsley n.d. Aarγρ
Eur. Or. 162 nota Ἠλ. del. August Seidler n.d. Tt3
Eur. Or. 193 ματέρος ματρός Hermann 1796 Monac. gr. 500 (Mo) teste Biehl
Eur. Or. 193 ματέρος ματρός Porson n.d. Monac. gr. 500 (Mo) teste Biehl
Eur. Or. 204 γόοις γόοισι Hermann 1796 Pap.Flor. III
Eur. Or. 204 γόοις γόοισι Porson n.d. Pap.Flor. III
Eur. Or. 239 δ' εἰς φέροις Valckenaer 1749 Laur. 32.2 (L) et Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z)
Eur. Or. 271 nota Ἠλ. del. J. A. Hartung 1837 SRw
Eur. Or. 293 δ' θ' Markland n.d. Harl. 5725 (U)
Eur. Or. 294 ἀνακαλύπτ', ὦ ἀνακαλύπτου Valckenaer 1749 B2 et Tt1/2
Eur. Or. 323 φόνον φόνου Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. B et ZdZurs
Eur. Or. 329 απόφατιν ἄπο φάτιν Valckenaer 1749 RS et Prc
Eur. Or. 381 μηνύσω μηνύω Wecklein n.d. Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE)
Eur. Or. 383 -ου ἀφύλλους Reiske n.d. V2s et Σv
Eur. Or. 406 om. γ' Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. SaZcZm
Eur. Or. 473 σεσωσμ- σεσωμένος Wecklein n.d. Athous Dion. 334 (Ad)
Eur. Or. 545 σε γε Samuel Musgrave n.d. Z et γρPrS
Eur. Or. 671 ἐμῶν κακῶν ἐγὼ κακῶν Porson n.d. ZcgE
Eur. Or. 680 nota Ἠλ. Χο. Willem Canter 1571 Z et Xa
Eur. Or. 694 μὲν γὰρ τὰ γὰρ τὰ Joshua Barnes n.d. KS et gE
Eur. Or. 695 τάδε τόδε King n.d. Vat. gr. 1135 (R)
Eur. Or. 698 -τι ἐντείνοντα Elmsley n.d. sRf1Rw1
Eur. Or. 698 ἐντεί- ἐκτείνοντι Wecklein n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 119 (Rw)
Eur. Or. 701 θέλεις -οις G. H. Schaefer n.d. Athous Vatop. 671 (At)
Eur. Or. 703 κτῆμα χρῆμα Henrik van Herwerden n.d. Barberin. gr. 4 (gB)
Eur. Or. 729 ἧι Battier n.d. Laur. 31.10 (O) ἧ O
Eur. Or. 730 ἰδὼν ἰδὼν δ' Charles Willink 1986 Ambros. F 74 sup. (Ab)
Eur. Or. 758 μῦθος δ' μῦθος Brunck n.d. VFP
Eur. Or. 759 νῦν νυν Joshua Barnes n.d. XTz
Eur. Or. 766 ἔγκλημά τι ἔγκλημα τί Hermann n.d. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 66 (K)
Eur. Or. 785 ἀσχάλ(λ)ων -αλῶν Joshua Barnes n.d. RS
Eur. Or. 789 δὲ/γὰρ γε Lenting n.d. V et lΣv et Ab
Eur. Or. 793 τόδ᾽ τὸ δ᾽ F. A. Paley n.d. MBC
Eur. Or. 795 νῦν νυν Monk n.d. Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z)
Eur. Or. 836 -σι εὐμενίσιν August Seidler n.d. Parm. 154 (Tp)
Eur. Or. 836 φόνω(ι) φοβωι̣ F. A. Paley n.d. P.Mich. inv. 3735c
Eur. Or. 836 φόνω(ι) φόνου J. A. Hartung n.d. PrS ἕνεκα φόνου Vgl
Eur. Or. 891 -οῖς καλοὺς J. A. Hartung n.d. Athous Dion. 334 (Ad)
Eur. Or. 911 χρὴ δεῖ Sybel n.d. Hier. 36 (H)
Eur. Or. 929 εὐνίδ- εὔνιδας Hermann n.d. Athous Vatop. 671 (At)
Eur. Or. 946 -ουμένους πετρούμενος Elmsley n.d. HMCKRS et V2sPrγρ
Eur. Or. 966b κάρα κάρᾳ Charles Willink 1986 GZm
Eur. Or. 976 ἰὼ ἰὼ ἰὼ Wecklein n.d. Cremon. 130 (Cr)
Eur. Or. 993 -μοσι λευκοκύμοσιν King n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 393 (An)
Eur. Or. 1000 Ἀτρέως Ἀτρέος Porson n.d. SPr1s
Eur. Or. 1002 ἀελ- κτλ. αλιου Porson n.d. P.Oxy. LX 4014
Eur. Or. 1011a ἤλυθε ἦλθεν Brunck n.d. Vat. gr. 909 (V)
Eur. Or. 1035 δ᾽ ἢ δὴ Elmsley n.d. Zm1γρ
Eur. Or. 1037 νῦν νυν Scaliger n.d. Tc
Eur. Or. 1047 με τήξεις μ᾽ ἔτηξας F. H. Bothe 1825 Zd1c
Eur. Or. 1092 λέχος λ. γ' Johannes Livineius 1581–2 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 66 (K)
Eur. Or. 1114 ὥσθ᾽ ὡς Wecklein n.d. Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE)
Eur. Or. 1148 σπάσω μέλαν σπασώμεθα Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. γρCPr
Eur. Or. 1156 τι τοι Charles Willink 1986 MnS1s
Eur. Or. 1165 -ώσωμεν ἀνταναλώσω μὲν Willem Canter 1571 A et V2/3
Eur. Or. 1169 -εν ἔσχ᾽ Joshua Barnes n.d. GK1c
Eur. Or. 1169 οὐ del. Porson n.d. Laur. 32.33 (Rf)
Eur. Or. 1181 νῦν νυν Porson n.d. Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Zd)
Eur. Or. 1216 νῦν νυν Brunck n.d. Vat. gr. 51 (Zb)
Eur. Or. 1231 ἵκου ἱκοῦ Dindorf n.d. KAa
Eur. Or. 1236 ἐπεβ- συνεβούλευσα Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. Aars
Eur. Or. 1238 οὐκοῦν οὔκουν Brunck n.d. Prc
Eur. Or. 1257 ἐξεύρηι ἐξάρη Henrik van Herwerden n.d. Rem. 1306 (Pr)
Eur. Or. 1272 θῆρας θήρας Weil n.d. VaCRXTt3
Eur. Or. 1281-2 νῦν νυν Joshua Barnes n.d. Tt3Zc
Eur. Or. 1297n Ἠλ. ἡμ. Hermann n.d. Ambros. L 39 sup. (G)
Eur. Or. 1299n ἡμ. Ἠλ. Hermann n.d. XaZd
Eur. Or. 1300 φίλοισι φίλοις Charles Willink 1986 Cremon. 130 (Cr)
Eur. Or. 1340 ἀλλ' ἄγ' Weil n.d. P.Oxy. XI 1370 α̣γ'
Eur. Or. 1360 τὰς … τὰς τὰ … τὰ Weil n.d. Mc
Eur. Or. 1380 ἔσθ᾽/ἔστ᾽ ἔστιν Joshua Barnes n.d. GKTt3 et Σmbc
Eur. Or. 1394 habent del. Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. P.Oxy. LIII 3717
Eur. Or. 1398 -σι ξίφεσιν Porson n.d. Monac. gr. 560 (Mn)
Eur. Or. 1424a τὴν τὰν Brunck n.d. Salam. 31 (S)
Eur. Or. 1448a ἐκλήισε ἔκλησεν Charles Willink 1986 Zd2γρ
Eur. Or. 1448b -αις στέγας Charles Willink 1986 Cremon. 130 (Cr)
Eur. Or. 1448b ἐν del. Charles Willink 1986 Ambros. C 44 sup. (Aa)
Eur. Or. 1459a δίνασεν δίνησεν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vat. gr. 1824 (Zv)
Eur. Or. 1461 ἀντίοι -ίον Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. B3s et CrXa
Eur. Or. 1462 κατθανῆι κατθανῆι κατθανῆ F. H. Bothe 1803 Palat. gr. 98 (Va)
Eur. Or. 1473 δῆτ' δ' ἦτ' F. H. Bothe 1825 F2AtRf
Eur. Or. 1479 ἦλθεν F. H. Bothe 1803 OZ
Eur. Or. 1501 ἀνασχ- ἀνσχόμενος F. H. Bothe 1803 Athous Dion. 334 (Ad)
Eur. Or. 1539n ἡμ. del. Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. OCZ
Eur. Or. 1541n ἡμ. del. Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. MZ
Eur. Or. 1549n Χο. del. Adolf Kirchhoff n.d. PrZ
Eur. Or. 1629 Ἑλένην Brunck n.d. JSaZm
Eur. Or. 1656 -τῶι αὐτὸν F. A. Paley n.d. V2/3s
Eur. Or. arg. 19 -ην ὀρέστη(ι) Brunck n.d. BOAGZc
Eur. Or. arg. 21 -ῆσαι συνοικίσαι Brunck n.d. RfSa
Eur. Or. arg. 34 καὶ κ. ὑπὸ μ. ὑπὸ μανίας καὶ κείμενος Nauck n.d. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 66 (K)
Eur. Or. arg. 38 om. οὕτω Wecklein n.d. Athous Dion. 334 (Ad)
Eur. Ph. 21 -χεῖον βακχείαν Hans von Arnim 1882 Marc. gr. 468 (F)
Eur. Ph. 26 -σον μέσων Reiske 1754 P.Oxy. XLVII 3321 etc. p. 9
Eur. Ph. 52 habent del. Bergk 1835 P.Oxy. XLVII 3322 ZfA col. 965
Eur. Ph. 61 εἰς ε̣ς Valckenaer 1755 P.Oxy. XLVII 3322
Eur. Ph. 76 -ην πολυνείκη Elmsley 1812 Athous Vatop. 671 (At) QuRev ('that noble contempt, which men of cultivated understandings so frequently feel for literary and scientific pursuits different from their own')
Eur. Ph. 86–7 βροτὸν τὸν βροτῶν τ. Valckenaer 1755 Ambros. F 74 sup. (Ab) coll. Rh. 106
Eur. Ph. 103 νῦν νυν F. H. Bothe 1823 Vat. gr. 51 (Zb)
Eur. Ph. 115 -νέοις λαϊνέοισιν F. H. Bothe 1803 Σ Thom. S. Ai. 596
Eur. Ph. 134 schol. εἰμὶ εἶμι Bentley 1693 Taur. B IV 13
Eur. Ph. 136 -τας αὐτοκασιγνήτᾳ Reiske 1754 P.Lond.Lit. 75 p. 9
Eur. Ph. 188 Ἀμυμωνίοις τ᾽ ἀμυμ- F. A. Paley 1879 RfP2
Eur. Ph. 207 -θην κατενάσθη Styan Thirlby 1726 Athous Dion. 334 (Ad) ad 237 ap. King
Eur. Ph. 226 ἰὼ ω Willem Canter 1571 P.Oxy. IX 1177
Eur. Ph. 228 -είων κτλ. βακχεῖον Adolf Kirchhoff 1855 Vindob. phil. gr. 119 (Rw)
Eur. Ph. 252 σχῆμα σῆμα Friedrich Heimsoeth 1865 G et Aaγρ p. 256
Eur. Ph. 297 ἀναπ- ἀμπέτασον August Seidler 1812 Vat. gr. 909 (V) p. 253
Eur. Ph. 308-9 χαίτας -ταις Jean Brodeau 1551 P.Vindob. inv. G 29769 ed. Hervag. tertia
Eur. Ph. 325 δ' τ' Gilbert Wakefield 1801 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 172 (P) Crit. Rev. (Wakefield on Porson)
Eur. Ph. 341 τάδε τᾶιδε Valckenaer 1755 manus Triclinii
Eur. Ph. 361 δὲ τάρβους δ᾽ ἐτάρβης᾽ Hermann 1840 Vindob. phil. gr. 119 (Rw)
Eur. Ph. 363 -εος ἄστεως L. Dindorf 1825 Favor. de exil. 7.2
Eur. Ph. 378 -νες τλήμονος Markland 1758 manus Triclinii s.l. apud Burton p. LXVII
Eur. Ph. 381 φῦναί -σαί Hermann 1840 fere FcRwZu
Eur. Ph. 386 ταῦτ᾽ ταὔτ᾽ F. H. Bothe 1825 fere AS
Eur. Ph. 403 τις δυστυχῆι τι δυστυχῆις Elmsley 1811 Σ anon. Edinb. Rev.
Eur. Ph. 420 θηρσὶ θηρσὶν Valckenaer 1755 AC
Eur. Ph. 436 habent del. Nauck 1871 P.Oxy. LX 4012
Eur. Ph. 437 με καὶ σὲ σ]ε κὰμε̣[ Elmsley 1821 P.Oxy. LX 4012 ad Soph. ΟΤ 376
Eur. Ph. 483 ἐμῶν ἐμὸν Grotius 1630 Arund. 540 (Za)
Eur. Ph. 487 αὖθις αὖθις αὖ Willem Canter 1571 TzZb
Eur. Ph. 499 ταὐτὸ ταὐτὸν Elmsley 1813 Sa et Sext. Emp. hyp. Pyrrh. 1. 86 'the bilious system of the Class. Journ.' (Monk)
Eur. Ph. 548 ἀπονεῖμαι -νέμων Markland 1758 Paris. gr. 2712 (A) apud Burton p. LXVIII
Eur. Ph. 563/616 ὄψει ο]ψη Gilbert Murray 1909 P.Oxy. XLIV 3153
Eur. Ph. 572 δή/δορός διί Adolf Kirchhoff 1855 Rw s.l. et Σs
Eur. Ph. 578 ὑπεκδ- ὑπερδράμηι Willem Canter 1571 P et Aa
Eur. Ph. 584 δυοῖν δύο Carl Conradt 1895 Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE) NJPP p. 315
Eur. Ph. 596 -κας βέβηκεν Benjamin Heath 1762 P.Berol. inv. 17018 + 21218
Eur. Ph. 600 κομπὸς κτλ. κομψὸς Markland 1822 γρΣv CJ
Eur. Ph. 636 -ην πολυνείκη Elmsley 1812 Ambros. C 44 sup. (Aa) QuRev
Eur. Ph. 663 ὤλεσε(ν) ὄλεσε Bergk 1836 Salam. 31 (S) ZfA
Eur. Ph. 701 -ῶι πολλῶν George Burges 1809 AdHl
Eur. Ph. 714 μαχουμένους -νοις Porson 1799 O et Rf1c
Eur. Ph. 778 habent del. Adolf Kirchhoff 1855 P.Mert. II 54
Eur. Ph. 786 οὐκ ἐπὶ οὐκέτι F. A. Paley 1879 Vindob. phil. gr. 119 (Rw)
Eur. Ph. 793 τ' δ' Jacob Geel 1846 Cremon. 130 (Cr)
Eur. Ph. 800 habent del. Nauck 1857 P.Mert. II 54
Eur. Ph. 833 ἕστακ' -ακεν Hermann 1840 manus Triclinii
Eur. Ph. 865 κληί- κλήισας Joshua Barnes 1694 Gs
Eur. Ph. 873 ὑπεκδ- ὑπερδραμούμενοι A. J. Zakas 1891 RAa
Eur. Ph. 907 νῦν νυν Porson 1799 TzZb
Eur. Ph. 927 δή με δῆτα Wecklein 1881 ZbZc
Eur. Ph. 1014 ἀπαλλάξω -ξων Scaliger 1694 Laur. 32.33 (Rf) apud Barnes
Eur. Ph. 1021 -γᾷ ἁρπαγά Samuel Musgrave 1778 Cremon. 130 (Cr) III suppl.
Eur. Ph. 1023a μειξοπάρθενος -πάρθενον Valckenaer 1755 Ambros. C 44 sup. (Aa) haud male = 悪くない = Valckenaer
Eur. Ph. 1040 ἰαχά ἀχά Samuel Musgrave 1778 P.Oxy. II 224 αχαι
Eur. Ph. 1041 πόλεως πόλεος Samuel Musgrave 1778 P.Oxy. II 224
Eur. Ph. 1043b -αις πυθίοις Wecklein 1901 Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z)
Eur. Ph. 1065 ἐπέϲϲ- ἐπέϲυτο Samuel Musgrave 1778 AtMtZmZu
Eur. Ph. 1077 τόδ' τοῦδ' Markland 1822 Laur. 32.33 (Rf) CJ
Eur. Ph. 1086 ἀργείων αργειον Théobald Fix 1843 P.Berol. inv. 11868
Eur. Ph. 1086 σεσωσμ- σεσωμενης Wecklein 1881 P.Berol. inv. 11868
Eur. Ph. 1104 -ίταις νηίσταις Robert Unger 1839 T.Vindob. inv. G HT 6
Eur. Ph. 1130 σιδηρονώτοις -του Valckenaer 1755 T.Vindob. inv. G HT 6
Eur. Ph. 1132 βίαι βάθρων Adolf Kirchhoff 1855 T.Vindob. inv. G HT 6
Eur. Ph. 1147 τ' del. Valckenaer 1755 VG
Eur. Ph. 1149 schol. -ϲτρέψαι ἀναϲτέψαι Joshua Barnes 1694 Vat. 909 (V)
Eur. Ph. 1170 δ' (prius) τ' Johannes Lenting 1821 F1c p. 21
Eur. Ph. 1186 ἑλ- εἱλίσσετ᾽ Benjamin Heath 1762 Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z)
Eur. Ph. 1194 τ' (prius) δ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes 1901 ZSa
Eur. Ph. 1211 σεσωσμ- σεσωμένους Wecklein 1881 Ambros. C 44 sup. (Aa)
Eur. Ph. 1215 γε τι Porson 1799 Ambros. C 44 sup. (Aa)
Eur. Ph. 1223 δ᾽ ὑπῆρξ᾽ ὑπῆρξ᾽ E. Fraenkel 1963 Vat. Palat. gr. 343 (Vr)
Eur. Ph. 1226 -ῇς/-εῖς ἀριστῆς Dindorf 1830 Matrit. 4677 (Mt)
Eur. Ph. 1279 Antigonae Iocastae John Jackson 1941 Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z) CQ
Eur. Ph. 1322 κρέον ἔ. δ. κρέων ἔ. δ. Brunck 1780 Ambros. L 39 sup. (G)
Eur. Ph. 1338 -οις ἄλλο Valckenaer 1755 B3/4Sa
Eur. Ph. 1344 nota om. Ἄγγ. J. A. Hartung 1849 Cantab. Nn. 3.14 (Z)
Eur. Ph. 1363 -μαχοῦντ᾽ μονομάχου τ᾽ Johannes Pierson 1752 ΣRfγρ
Eur. Ph. 1369 -ῶ αἰτῶν Willem Canter 1571 ZcZuc
Eur. Ph. 1383 -θαίνοι ἐξολισθάνοι Porson 1799 RS
Eur. Ph. 1384 -σχόντ' ὑπερσχὸν Scaliger 1974 Marc. gr. 468 (F) CQ
Eur. Ph. 1388 ἐϲτάλαϲϲ' -λαζ' F. H. Bothe 1825 RWZ
Eur. Ph. 1402 δ' (prius) τ' Valckenaer 1755 Athous Ivir. 209 (W)
Eur. Ph. 1424 κοὐ καὶ Denniston 1936 Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE) CR ('and divided up the sovereignty')
Eur. Ph. 1425 -πους ὅσον/-που σὸς ὤν οἰδίπου σ' ὅσον Hermann 1840 B2Xd
Eur. Ph. 1501 ἀνακαλέσομαι ἀγκαλέσωμαι Henrik van Herwerden 1903 Thessal. (Tp) Mnem. ('Modulatius est')
Eur. Ph. 1502 τάδε σώματα τάδ᾽ αἵματα Samuel Musgrave 1788 Wc p. 230
Eur. Ph. 1508 πάτερ del. Hermann 1840 P.Strasb. inv. WG 307
Eur. Ph. 1520–1 ἀεὶ αἰεὶ August Seidler 1812 Cremon. 130 (Cr) p. 337
Eur. Ph. 1522–3 -οισι(ν) λειβομένοισιν F. H. Bothe 1803 P.Strasb. inv. WG 307
Eur. Ph. 1522–3 ἰαχήσω del. George Burges 1807 P.Strasb. inv. WG 307 ad Tr. p. 144
Eur. Ph. 1524 -οῖσιν σπαραγμοῖς Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 WZ
Eur. Ph. 1537–8 δ. δύστανον δεμνίοις δύστανος Valckenaer 1755 Laur. 32.2 (L)
Eur. Ph. 1562 γ' δ' John Jackson 1955 Laur. 32.33 (Rf)
Eur. Ph. 1608 δ' τ' Elmsley 1811–13 Laur. 32.33 (Rf)
Eur. Ph. 1626 δὲ τε Valckenaer 1755 Haun. 3549 (Zc)
Eur. Ph. 1682 λίπε λεῖπε Valckenaer 1755 OV
Eur. Ph. 1694 γεραιᾶς -ᾶι Valckenaer 1755 Athous Vatop. 671 (At) -ᾶ At
Eur. Ph. 1710 χεῖρα χέρα Hermann 1816 manus Triclinii p. 761
Eur. Ph. 1722 ἔχων del. Hermann 1816 P.Strasb. inv. WG 307 p. 762
Eur. Ph. 1723 -ᾶς φυγὰς Hermann 1816 RZ p. 762
Eur. Ph. 1753 ὧι ἐν ὧι Scaliger 1974 Ambros. L 39 sup. (G) CQ
Eur. Ph. 1759 ἔγνων Samuel Musgrave 1788 VG p. 237
Eur. Ph. (a) 7 ὑπὸ ὑπὲρ Wecklein 1894 Cremon. 130 (Cr)
Eur. Ph. (a) 8 -ξάμ- παραταξόμενος G. H. Schaefer 1824 P.Oxy. XXXI 2544 apud Porson
Eur. Ph. (a) 10-11 ἐβούλετο ἐβουλεύετο Adolf Kirchhoff 1855 Marc. gr. 468 (F)
Eur. Ph. (a) 10-11 ἀπέσφαξε(ν) ἀποσφάξαι Valckenaer 1755 PrRf
Eur. Ph. (a) 20 λογοποιήσας λόγον ποιήσας F. H. Bothe 1825 Ambros. L 39 sup. (G)
Eur. Rh. 63 ἦν η Cobet n.d. P.Achm. 4 VL p. 593
Eur. Rh. 78 πῦρ αἴθειν/πυραίθειν πύρ᾽ αἴθειν Reiske 1753 P.Achm. 4
Eur. Rh. 108 σὲ … τοὺς δὲ σοὶ … τοῖς δὲ Henri Estienne 1602 fere Chr. Pat. 2370
Eur. Rh. 131 μετατιθ- μεταθέμενος Samuel Musgrave 1778 Haun. 417 (Hn)
Eur. Rh. 325 -ταις κυνηγέτης Elmsley 1813 Escor. gr. X.1.13 (gE) ad Heracl. 694
Eur. Rh. 398 -ων πολεμίωι F. H. Bothe 1826 Va1s
Eur. Rh. 429 πορθμεύσων/-εύσας -εῦσαι Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Harl. 5743 (Q)
Eur. Rh. 482 νῦν νυν Scaliger 1694 Athous Vatop. 36 (gV) apud Barnes
Eur. Rh. 685 ἴστω ἵστω Aemilius Portus 1599 Σl
Eur. Rh. 694 χεῖρα χέρα Samuel Musgrave 1778 Haun. 417 (Hn)
Eur. Rh. 855 -ᾶ(ι) μηχαναὶ Samuel Musgrave 1778 Et.Gen. B
Eur. Rh. 883 ἄγει/ἄγοι ἀνάγει Benjamin Heath 1762 Ambros. F 205 inf. (Af) p. 97
Eur. Rh. (a) 8 ἀπ- ὑπέστρεφον Eduard Schwartz 1891 Palat. gr. 98 (Va)
Eur. Supp. 1150 -ῶν δαναϊδᾶν Elmsley n.d. Triclinii emendatio 1
Eur. T 1.IA.2–3 ἑταῖρος δὲ δοκεῖ ἑταῖρος. δοκεῖ δὲ Elmsley 1821 RwZc
Eur. Tr. 578 ἰώ μοι μοὶ οἴμοι George Burges 1807–37 Σ
Eur. Tr. 633 τ. δ' τῶι μὲν George Burges 1807–37 Stob. Spc
Eur. Tr. 802 -νας ᾿Αθάνα Johannes Gregoropulos 1503 Σi
Eur. Tr. 930 ὑπεκδ- ὑπερδράμοι Willem Canter 1571 Tzetzae cod. Lips.
Eur. Tr. 931 ἐνθένδ᾽ ἔνθεν δ᾽ Tyrrell n.d. Harl. 5743 (q)
Eur. Tr. 1053 δ' γ' Johannes Livineius 1581–2 Haun. 417 (Wecklein)
Eur. Tr. 1076 σὺν δ' συνδώδεκα Joshua Barnes n.d. Palat. gr. 98 (Va)
Eur. Tr. 1234 -ίσει φροντιεῖ August Matthiae 1821 Chr. Pat. 1383
Eur. Tr. 1277 ἀμ- ἐμπνέουϲ᾽ Gilbert Wakefield 1790 q et Chr. Pat. 1704
Eur. Tr. 1306 κρύπτουσα κτυποῦσα Samuel Musgrave n.d. Σ
Eur. fr. 119 + 120.6 πατρος πάτρας Heinrich Düntzer 1850 P.Oxy. XXXII 2628 Philologus 5 (1850) 186
Eur. fr. 495.42 τῶν τέχνων τω]ν κενων Conrad Gessner 1543 BKT V/II 5514
Eur. fr. 588.3 οὐδὲν οὐδέν᾽ Grotius 1623 Diog. Laert. Bc
Eur. fr. 653.4 ἄρα καί χρῆν Nauck 1855 P.Oxy. XLV 3214 Obs. 45 sq.
Eur. fr. 752k.20 οὖϲι(ν) θύειν Cobet s.xix med. P.Oxy. VI 852
Eur. fr. 757.843 -φερον ἔφερβον Gilbert Murray 1906 P.Petr. II 49(c)
Eur. fr. 820b.4 θεοῦ θεῶν Wilamowitz s.xix/xx PSI XV 1476
Eur. fr. 870 αἷμα ὄμμα J. F. Boissonade 1826 Phot. z
Eur. fr. 911.2 ἐρόεντα πτερ- Grotius 1626 P.Oxy. IX 1176 Satyr. Vit.Eur.; πτε[...]τα
Eur. fr. 912.1 χοήν χλόην Bergk 1839–41 P.Oxy. IX 1176 ap. Welcker 1602
Eur. fr. 912.2 φέρων φέρω Grotius 1626 P.Oxy. IX 1176 φερ[.]
Eur. fr. 1063.2 ἄνδρ᾽ ἢ κτλ. ἄνδρα χρὴ Conrad Gessner 1543 Chor. 32.52
Eust. Il. 353.33 -ὸς αἰσχρῶς Guarinus Camers s.xv/xvi Laur. 59.2 et 3 (L)
Eust. Il. 1291.44 οὔ τοι οὗτοι Guarinus Camers s.xv/xvi Laur. 59.2 et 3 (L)
Fronto p. 252.10 om. τις Philipp Buttmann 1816 Mai a. 1817 et Naber apud Niebuhr
Fronto p. 252.11 μηδέπως ἐσωρακότων μηδέπω σε ἑωρακότων Philipp Buttmann 1816 Mai a. 1817 et Naber apud Niebuhr
Fronto p. 255.2 ταισο ιλισον Philipp Buttmann 1816 teste Brakman apud Niebuhr
Gorg. Hel. 13 ὡς ε. εὐμετάβολον Reiske 1773 HW
Gorg. Hel. 20 ἔπραξε ἔπραξεν ἃ ἔ. Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
Gorg. Hel. 21 ἐπ' ἀ. ἐν ἀρχῇ Reiske 1773 Lond. Burn. 95 (A)
Gorg. Pal. 29 καὶ δ. μ. καὶ δεύτερον καὶ μέγιστον Reiske 1773 AB
Gorg. Pal. 30 -ήματα πλεονέκτημα Reiske 1773 cod. Vratisl. (Z)
Gr.Naz. Ep. 234.1 πυκ- πτυκτίον Emil Heitz 1865 ARΠMF
Harp. Α 19 -θίας πυθέας Ph. J. de Maussac 1614 Mediol. 26 (H)
Harp. Ε 103 ἐχει- χειροτονεῖ Bekker 1833 Arist. Ath.
Harp. Κ 5 ἢ ἐν ὁ. ἣν ὁδῷ P. J. de Maussac 1614 pl
Harp. Κ 26 om. καὶ Hermann Sauppe 1850 P.Ryl. III 532
Harp. Κ 63 -ει(ν) βλιμάζῃ Nicolaas Blancard 1683 Marc. 444 (K)
Harp. Ν 19 ἱμερ- ἡμεραίου Ph. J. de Maussac 1614 Cantab. Trin. Coll. 0.1.5 (P) teste Conomis
Harp. Σ 19 ιε ι,ε J. T. Voemel 1850 Matrit. 95 (U) apud Baiter-Sauppe?
Hdn. Fig. Walz p. 601.10 Τυδεὺς ὁ Τυδεὺς Brunck 1786 Hav
Hdt. 1.76.3 ἐπειρῶντο -ρέοντο Dindorf P.Oxy. I 19
Hdt. 1.90.3 ἐπαρ- ἐπαερθεὶς Heinrich Stein 1869–71 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 1.105.4 ὁ θέος η θε[ος Hude P.Oxy. X 1244
Hdt. 1.107.1 ὑπο- ῡπερθεμενος Henri Estienne P.Oxy. X 1244
Hdt. 1.116.1 ἐσή(ι)ει ἐσήιε Bekker 1833 P.Münch. II 40 = Pap. graec. mon. 89
Hdt. 1.116.1 ἐσή(ι)ει ἐσήιε Portus n.d. P.Münch. II 40 = Pap. graec. mon. 89
Hdt. 1.132.2 om. τε Hermann Kallenberg 1894 P.Oxy. XVII 2096
Hdt. 1.184 ἐπεκ- ἐκόσμησαν Enoch Powell 1949 SV
Hdt. 1.196.1 ὧδε οἵδε Eltz n.d. P.Ross.Georg. I 15
Hdt. 1.196.3 οἱ ἐξέλθοι διεξέλθοι Stephan Bergler 1715 P.Ross.Georg. I 15 B. apud Gronovium
Hdt. 1.196.3 ἀνάγεϑαι ἀγαγέσθαι Heinrich Stein 1869–71 Vac ἀγάγεσθαι Vac
Hdt. 1.207.2 ἐμὲ σοὶ ἐμέ σοι Johannes Schweighäuser 1816 UX
Hdt. 2.79.1 ἅπαξ ἅ ἁπαξὰ Hoffmann n.d. P.Oxy. inv. 85/40a
Hdt. 2.175.1 οἱ οἷα F. L. Abresch s.xviii med. P.Oxy. VIII 1092
Hdt. 3.108.4 μήτρῃ μητρὶ Bekker 1833 D1
Hdt. 3.119.5 -ώτατος ἀλλοτριώτερος Reiske n.d. Athous Dion. 90 (𝕬)
Hdt. 4.43.5 -λιπόντες/λείποντες καταλείποντες Hermann Kallenberg 1894 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 4.192.1 ὄρυες ὄρυγες Ph.-E. Legrand 1949 Estensis gr. 221 (M)
Hdt. 5.52.4 -ον ὕστερος Heinrich Stein 1869–71 ex corr. D1M
Hdt. 6.44.3 οἱ δ. α. οἳ δὲ αὐτῶν Reiske Palat. gr. 176 (Y)
Hdt. 6.57.1 πρῶτον πρώτων Reiske Vindob. hist.gr. 85 (V)
Hdt. 6.105.2 σφίσι ἤ. σφι ἤδη Heinrich Stein 1869–71 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 6.105.3 σφίσι σφι Heinrich Stein 1869–71 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 7.61.3 δὲ δὴ Heinrich Stein 1869–71 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 7.134.2 τῷ τῶν Reiske Const. Porph.
Hdt. 7.165 -όνων Σαρδονίων Valckenaer Cac
Hdt. 7.196 ναυτικὸς ὁ τῶν ν. τ. G. H. Schaefer n.d. Estensis gr. 221 (M)
Hdt. 7.226.1 ἀφί- κτλ. ἀπίωσι Dindorf n.d. Athous Dion. 90 (𝕬)
Hdt. 8.75.3 οὐτέτι οὔτ' ἔτι G. H. Schaefer n.d. Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 8.112.2 λέγων λ. δὲ Reiske Estensis gr. 221 (M)
Hdt. 9.43.2 -ων Μουσαίου Bekker 1833 Vat. gr. 2369 (D)
Hdt. 9.66.2 -μένως κατηρτισμένους Henrik van Herwerden Vac
Herm. Sim. 8.54 λοιπόν αὐτόν Adolf Hilgenfeld 1866 P.Oxy. XIII 1599
Hes. Op. 66 -κόρους γυιοβόρους François Guyet 1667 Laur. Plut. 32.16 apud Graevium; m. sec.
Hes. Op. 146 -ιες ὕβριος M. L. West 1964 P.Berol. 21107 Philol.
Hes. Op. 263 -λῆες βασιλῆς G. H. Schaefer 1817 P.Oxy. VIII 1090 apud Brunck
Hes. Op. 264 δικῶν δικέων Adolf Kirchhoff 1889 P.Oxy. VIII 1090
Hes. Op. 268 ἐθέληισ' ἐθέληι K. F. Heinrich 1815 P.Oxy. VIII 1090 apud Twesten
Hes. Op. 295 κἀκεῖνος καικειν[ος G. H. Schaefer 1817 P.Oxy. XLV 3230 apud Brunck
Hes. Op. 378 θάνοις θανοι Hermann 1837 P.Mich. 6828 Jb. f. Ph. 21
Hes. Op. 518 βορέου βορεω Alois Rzach 1884 P.Oxy. XLV 3228
Hes. Op. 549 -ος πυροφόροις Hermann 1831 Paris. gr. 2707 Wien. Jb.
Hes. Sc. 15 οὐ γάρ οἱ οὐδέ οἱ Hermann 1874 Stud.Pal. I
Hes. Sc. 146 λευκὰ θ. λευκαθεόντων Wackernagel 1925 Ambros. C 222 inf. (J) Glotta ; p.c.
Hes. Sc. 432 ἐλθεῖν ἐλθέμεν Nauck 1889 Stud.Pal. I
Hes. Th. 87 αἶψα τε αἶψά κε Rudolf Peppmüller 1896 P.Achm. 3
Hes. Th. 93 οἷά τε τοίη François Guyet 1667 P.Achm. 3 apud Graevium
Hes. Th. 466 γ' γ' αρ' Rudolf Peppmüller 1896 P.Oxy. XXXII 2644
Hes. Th. 481 μὲν μιν Hermann 1831 k
Hes. Th. 656 ὅτι ὅ τοι Hermann 1831 P.Ryl. 54 et P.Oxy. XXXII 2646 'ist es wunderbar, dass niemand noch gesehen hat'
Hes. Th. 682 π. αἰπεῖά τ᾽ ἰωὴ ποδων τ᾽ αιπεῖα ϊ[ωη Hermann 1831 P.Oxy. XXXII 2648
Hes. Th. 768 habent del. F. A. Wolf 1783 P.Oxy. XXXII 2648 = Od. 10.534; 11.47
Hippon. fr. 103.11 πασπάλιν φαγὼν γ. πασ]πα[λ]ηφάγον γρομφίν Johannes Pierson 1759 P.Oxy. XVIII 2175 Lexicon Atticum s.v. πασπάλη ('scrofam polline pastam')
Hom. Il. 1.107 τα κάκ' ἐστὶ φίλα φ[ιλ]ο̣ν̣ εστι κακ[α Naber 1877 P.Ryl. III 539
Hom. Il. 2.3 φρένας Heyne 1802 2s V
Hom. Il. 2.210 -ωι μεγάλα Bentley 1885 D.H. Comp. 16.1 (cod. F) J. Phil.
Hom. Il. 5.667 ἀμφιέποντες αμ]φις έποιτ[ες T. S. Brandreth 1841 P.Oxy. IV 759
Hom. Il. 6.90 ὅς ο Bentley 1885 P.Tebt. 899 J. Phil.
Hom. Il. 6.493 πᾶσιν ἐμοὶ δὲ μάλιστα τοὶ Ἰλίῳ πασι μαλιστα δ εμοι τοι Ιλιωι C. A. J. Hoffmann s.xix med. P.Oxy. III 445
Hom. Il. 9.570 πρόχ- πρόγνυ Albert Thumb 1913 Bodl. Auct. T.2.7 (R) apud Brugmann-Thumb; s.l.
Hom. Il. 12.449 εἰσ'· ὃ δέ μιν ῥέα ει[σιν ο δε]ρρεα Nauck 1877 P.Lond.Lit. 251 + P.Harr. I 36
Hom. Il. 13.742 ἤ κεν ἐνὶ ηε κεν εν H. L. Ahrens 1843 P.Amh. inv. G 202 Rh. Mus. 2 (1843) 170
Hom. Il. 16.145 -ύμεν ζευγνῦμεν Joshua Barnes 1711 P.Oxy. XLVII 3323
Hom. Il. 16.389 τῶν τοῦ Walter Leaf 1888 recc.
Hom. Il. 17.89 ἀσβέστωι ἀσβέτωι A. Ludwich 1916 P.Berol. inv. 16007 Rh. Mus. 71 (1916) 211
Hom. Il. 17.435 -κει ἑστήκηι Hermann 1813 P.Ross.Georg. I 4 Serm. Hom. diss. II
Hom. Il. 18.144 υἱεῖ υἱέ ̓ Alois Rzach 1887 recc.
Hom. Il. 23.198 ὠκέα δ' ὦκα δὲ Bentley 1885 P.Grenf. II 4 J. Phil.
Hom. Il. 23.535 δ᾽ ἐν ᾿Αργείοις δ]᾽ εν Αχαιοισιν Nauck 1877 BKT V/I 5
Hom. Il. 24.192 κεχάνδει κεχ]όνδει August Fick 1886 P.Lond.Lit. 27
Hom. Od. 1.23 -ας Αἰθίοπες Bentley 1894 Str. 6.30 etc. J. Phil. 22
Hom. Od. 1.70 ὅου ὅο Philipp Buttmann n.d. Heidelb. Palat. gr. 45 (P) a.c.
Hom. Od. 1.112 προτίθεντο, ἰδὲ τ', ἠδὲ Bentley 1894 CR10 (Leaf)
Hom. Od. 2.247 ἑὸν (δώμαθ’) ἑὰ Bentley 1894 Vat. 1627 (R7)
Hom. Od. 4.775 -ας πάντες Bentley 1894 Vindob. phil. gr. 56 (Y)
Hom. Od. 5.8 καὶ μηδ’ Nauck 1874 P.Tebt. III/I 697
Hom. Od. 5.243 -υτο ἤνετο Nauck 1874 Laur. 32.24 (G) s.l. et m. sec.
Hom. Od. 5.281 ῥινὸν ῥίον J. U. Faesi 1849 Vat. Ottob. 57 (R10) γρ
Hom. Od. 5.356 -ον ἄλλος Bentley 1894 q s
Hom. Od. 5.426 -φθη δρύφη W. C. Kayser 1878 L7 U7 1874?
Hom. Od. 7.156 -έστερος προγ]ενεστ̣α̣τος Bekker 1858 P.Oxy. inv. 103/56 (b)
Hom. Od. 8.74 -ης οἴμη Bentley 1894 Palat. 45
Hom. Od. 8.106 schol. εὐφύ- ἐν φύλλοισιν Joshua Barnes 1711 Marc. 613 Homeri Odyssea p. 171
Hom. Od. 8.312 ὄφελλ- ὄφειλον Nauck 1874 C L7 R4 (a)
Hom. Od. 8.435 τ. ἵστασαν στῆσαν τρίποδ’ Karl Grashof 1846–52 Ho N
Hom. Od. 9.138 εἰσόκε ναυτέων -κεν αὖτε Bentley 1894 d q
Hom. Od. 9.393 -ρου γε κ. σιδήροιο κράτος Nauck 1874 Venet. cl. ix num. 29 (U8)
Hom. Od. 10.10 αὐλῆ(ι) αὐδῆι G. W. Nitzsch 1826–40 P.Oxy. XLIX 3441 αυδη[]
Hom. Od. 10.19 δῶκε δέ μοι ἐκδ- δῶκέ μοι ἐκδείρας J. H. Voß 1838 P. Oxy. XLIX 3441
Hom. Od. 10.385 λύσασθ’ λῦσαί θ’ Philipp Buttmann n.d. Sext. Math. 1.295
Hom. Od. 11.393 ἔτ’ ἦν εην Nauck 1874 P. CtYBR inv. 5128
Hom. Od. 11.580 ἥλκησε ἕλκυσσε Nauck 1874 d
Hom. Od. 15.206 ἐν(ὶ) επι Heinrich Düntzer 1863 P.Amh. II 23 et P.S.I. XIII 1299
Hom. Od. 20.6 -όων ἐγρηγορέων F. H. Bothe 1835 Gal. De plac. Hipp. et Plat. 3.3.8
Hom. Od. 22.258 -κει βεβλήκειν Bekker 1843 P.Ryl. I 53
Hom. Od. 23.188 -κται τέτυκτο Karl Grashof 1846–52 P.Ryl. I 53
Hom. Od. 23.192 ὄφρ’ ἐτέλεσσα οφρα τελεσ[σα Bekker 1858 P.Oxy. III 448
Hom. Od. 23.259 ἐϋκτίμενον ες υψοροφον Bekker 1858 P.Ryl. I 53 et P.Oxy. inv. 203B.35/H(1–3)
Hom. Od. 23.276 -ευσεν ἐκέλευεν Joshua Barnes 1711 P.Ryl. I 53 et Monac. gr. 519 B (U)
Hom. Od. 24.137 κεῖτ- κῆται F. A. Wolf 1807 P.Ryl. I 53
Hom. Od. 24.207 πόλλ’ ἐμόγησεν πόλλὰ μογη[σεν Bekker 1858 P.Ryl. I 53
Hom. Od. 24.209 ἠδὲ ἴαυον ἠδ’ ενϊαυον Nauck 1874 P.Ryl. I 53
Hsch. α 2737 παλαιός μάταιος F. W. Schmidt 1886 Cyrill. ph Krit. St. 1,112
Hsch. α 2737 ἀλαιός ἀλεός Gottfried Sopingius s.xvi/xvii Cyrill. ph apud Schrevelius/Alberti
Hsch. κ 4905 καμίκην Καμικοῖς Johann Alberti 1766 Cyrill.
Isoc. 1.12 -οίης δοκεῖς Bekker 1822 Paris. 2010 (Y)
Isoc. 2.2 διοικοίης διοικῇς Blass 1891 pap. Massil. = CPF I.2 17
Isoc. 2.8 ταῖς μοναρχίαις τὰς μοναρχίας Cobet 1783 pap. Massil. = CPF I.2 17
Isoc. 2.20 τὰ μὲν πρὸς/τὰ περί τὰ πρὸς Bekker 1822 P.Köln VI 253
Isoc. 2.25 -νείκει φιλονίκει Blass 1891 P.Kellis III Gr. 95.3
Isoc. 2.40 θαύμαζε θαυμάσῃς J. G. Baiter 1839 P.Kellis III Gr. 95.3
Isoc. 4.68 γε ελαττω γε Cobet 1783 P.Oxy. V 844
Isoc. 8.81 -οντα λυπήσαντα Cobet 1783 P.Lond.Lit 132
Isoc. 8.84 ἐμβ- εἰσβεβληκότων J. G. Baiter 1839 P.Lond.Lit 132
Isoc. 8.125 -στέρους εὐδαιμονεστάτους Hermann Sauppe 1839 P.Lond.Lit 132
Joseph. AJ 7.235 ἡσθ- πεισθεὶς Naber epit. (E) Mnem.
Just. Edict. 13.24 p. 792.11 ἐπιβάλλοντα τὸν ἐ. Zachariae von Lingenthal 1892 P.Oxy. LXIII 4400 ZRG 13
Luc. Dom. 21 γράψωμαι -ομαι François Guyet 1743 LN apud Reitzium
Luc. JTr. 37 ἀνε- αὐτεπαγγέλτοις François Guyet 1743 jTjUjV apud Reitzium
Luc. Ocyp. 57 ἔστειλα ἔτεινα Karl Jacobitz 1841 P.Oxy. XXXI 2532 'vir doctus'
Luc. VH 1.17 καὶ ὁ Φ./καὶ Φ. ὁ Φαέθων Eduard Schwartz 1906 Vat. gr. 76 (P) apud Nilén; p.c.
Luc. VH 1.35 Ψιττ- Ψηττόποδες Graevius 1687 SΩpcZP
Luc. VH 2.2 προσ- προελθόντες Moïse Du Soul 1743 ΓΩS
Luc. VH 2.20 κατὰ μετὰ Moïse Du Soul 1743 ΓΩSA
Luc. VH 2.46 -β- Καββαλοῦσα Moïse Du Soul 1743 Guelf. 86.7 (F) p.c.
Lyc. 136 -ῃ/-η δίκην Isaac Tzetzes s.xii ex. CDE
Lyc. 158 γυίας γύας H. G. Reichard 1788 P.Oxy. LXIV 4428
Lyc. 395 στόβους στόμ- Isaac Tzetzes s.xii ex. D1E
Lyc. 987 -ος Ξουθίδας Jean Dorat 1566 A2BC2 apud Canterum p. 207
Lycurg. 20 -σωμεν κλητεύσομεν John Taylor 1743 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 21 ἐκ γ. ἐν γειτόνων Hermann Sauppe 1834 N2
Lycurg. 28 -ὸν αὐτοὺς P. P. Dobree 1831 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 30 -ὸν ἑαυτῷ Henri Estienne 1575 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 77 κριν- κραινόντων Cobet tit. Acharn.
Lycurg. 84 ἐπιλ- λήψονται C. F. Heinrich 1821 Sud.
Lycurg. 107 -ία ἀτιμίη Hermann Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 107 ἀρετ- ἐρατῆς Valckenaer MZ
Lycurg. 116 οὕτω οὔτοι Scaliger n.d. Npc apud Conomis
Lycurg. 128 ἐστιν ἐστιν ἐκ Conrad Bursian 1870 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 140 ἡμ- ὑμῶν Hermann Sauppe 1834 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 140 πρῶτον πρώτου Reiske 1771 Bodl. Auct. T.2.8 (N)
Lycurg. 142 -αν ἔθαψεν John Taylor 1743 Ambros. A. 99 sup. (P)
Lycurg. 143 αὐτὸν τίνων αὐτὸν˙ τίνων John Taylor 1743 PMZ
Lys. 1.2 καὶ ἐν δημοκρατίᾳ καὶ ὀλιγαρχίᾳ καὶ ἐν δ. καὶ ἐν ὀ. Antoine Leconte pre-1586 Palat. gr. 117 (P)
Lys. 1.15 αὐτ- δὲ αὕτη δὲ John Taylor 1739 Tolet. Bibl. Cap. 101.16 (To)
Lys. 1.20 προσθ- πεισθείη Reiske 1759 Marc. 422 (H)
Lys. 2.47 π. β. πρὸς τοὺς βαρβάρους Reiske 1759 Bodl. Barocci 139 (Ob) m. rec.
Lys. 6.29 ἐνθένδε ἐνθάδε Scaliger 2007 Laur. Plut. 57.4 (C) apud Carey
Lys. Fr. 234 ἑταίρας ἀπίας ἑτέρας αἰτίας Adolf Emperius 1833 Vat. gr. 66 (M) p. 47
Lys. Fr. 279.3 -ων/ἀπιόντα παριόντα Karl Scheibe 1841 Coisl. 249 (V) Neue Jahrb.
Marcellin. Vit. Thuc. 1 ἀνὴρ ὁ ἀνὴρ Casaubon 1588 Turon. 980 (T)
Marcellin. Vit. Thuc. 7 πρόσκ- πρόκλησιν Hude 1898 Vat. gr. 1302 (Vg)
Marcellin. Vit. Thuc. 38 εἰσαγό- εἰσαγαγόντων E. F. Poppo 1843 Ambros. I 25 sup. (Ab)
Marcellin. Vit. Thuc. 44 ὀλίγον καὶ ὀ. Thomas Arnold 1848 Paris. suppl. gr. 256 (Pl)
Marcellin. Vit. Thuc. 52 τῇ παλαιᾷ del. E. F. Poppo 1843 Ck Vm
Men. Asp. 173 τ’ εμου τ̣ι̣ μ̣[ου E. W. Handley 1969 P.Oxy. LXI 4094 ZPE 4 (1969) 162
Men. Asp. 194 δ’ ειμαι vel δειμαι δει με Parsons 1969 P.Oxy. LXI 4094 ZPE 4 (1969) 163
Men. Asp. 194 δ’ ειμαι vel δειμαι δ’ ει με Kassel 1969 P.Oxy. LXI 4094 ZPE 4 (1969) 163
Men. Asp. 394 -ως ασμενος M. L. West 1966 B Philologus 110 (1966) 157
Men. Epit. 227 δέ δή Wilamowitz 1925 P.Oxy. XXXVIII 2829
Men. Epit. 385 ϲτριφνοϲ ϲτιφ[ρο]ϲ̣[ Sandbach 1972 P.Oxy. LX 4022
Men. Epit. 432 deest προϲεδόκων Edward Capps 1910 P.Oxy. LX 4022 προϲ̣[]ο̣κω[
Men. Epit. 440 ἡμ[]ην ἡμ[έραν τρίτ]ην Maurice Croiset 1908 P.Oxy. LX 4022
Men. Epit. 795 πλείονα οἶδεν˙ πλείονα κακουργεῖ˙ αἰσχύνεται πλείονα πανουργεῖ˙ πλείον’ οἶδ’˙ αἰσχύνεται P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. L 3532 + 3533 Adv. II p. 284
Men. Epit. 897 συγγν[..]ης [..]ρος συγγν[ώμ]ης [μέ]ρος Jan van Leeuwen 1908 P.Oxy. X 1236
Men. Her. fr. 2.2 δὲ δεῖ δεῖ Guillaume Morel 1553 P.Bour. 1
Men. Kol. 50 νῦν νυνί Grotius s.xvii in. P.Oxy. III 409 Eust.1833.58.; G. apud Clericum
Men. Kon. fr. 1.2 ἴδηις ειδηις Meineke 1839–51 P.Berol. inv. 21312 b. c + P.Schub. 27 Men. et Phil. p. 103
Men. Mis. 51–2 ὕοντα πολλῶι ϋοντα πολλω Porson s.xviii/xix P.Oxy. XLVIII 3368 ap. Dobree Adv. II p. 285
Men. Mis. 804 ον[]ιδος ηαυτη τουτο κ̣α̣τ̣[]λ̣ε[]π̣ειν []ε δ̣ει ον[ε]ιδος ηαυτη τουτο κ̣α̣τ̣[α]λ̣ε[ι]π̣ειν [σ]ε δ̣ει Austin 1966 P.Oxy. LIX 3967 καταλιπειν
Men. Mon. 518 -ρίοις ἐγχώροις Grotius 1623 Marc. gr. 481 (Γ)
Men. Phasm. 73 -ϲθαι ἀν ε]π̣ιϲημ̣[αιν]εϲθεαν Bentley post-1710 P.Oxy. XXXVIII 2825 Meineke Men. et Phil. p. 498
Men. Pk. 46 θ’ εαυτων θ αυτων W. G. Headlam 1908 P.Heid. G 219 + 239 h
Men. Pk. 46 θ’ εαυτων θ αυτων W. G. Headlam 1908 P.Heid. G 219 + 239 h
Men. Pk. 46 θ’ εαυτων θ αυτων Jan van Leeuwen 1908 P.Heid. G 219 + 239 h
Men. Pk. 290 αλλ’ εις οικον τιν εἰς δ’ οἶκόν τιν’ Eduard Schwartz 1929 P.Oxy. LXXIX 5200 Herm.
Men. Sam. 280 τουτον τουτονϊ Jan van Leeuwen 1908 P.Bodm. XXV et Pap. Barcin. inv. 45
Men. Sam. 588 μικρο̄ μικρα Leo 1907 P.Bodm. XXV et Pap. Barcin. inv. 45 NGG (1907) 315–41
Men. fr. 158.2 ἀρπάγην ἀρπαγήν Valckenaer 1739 Ph.Bybl. 28 Animad. p. 23
Men. fr. 167.3 -άϲαϲαν ἐπιπολάϲαν Wilamowitz 1870 Phot. (z) α 2806 Obs. (diss. Berol.)
Men. fr. 248 τε δὲ Meineke 1839–51 Schol. R Soph. OC 1375 FCG
Men. fr. 412.2 εἰς τὴν ἕκτην (ἐπὶ δέκα) ἕκτην ἐπὶ δέκα Porson s.xviii/xix Ph.Bybl. 87 Misc. p. 253
Men. fr. 602.2 γε τε G. H. Schaefer 1817 P.Oxy. XLIX 3433 ad Brunck ΗΘΙΚΗ ΠΟΙΗϹΙϹ (1817) p. 264
Men. fr. 602.5 ἐψευϲμένοϲ ϲ' ἐψευϲμένοϲ Grotius 1626 P.Oxy. XLIX 3433 Exc. p. 755
Men. fr. 602.11 οἶκτον ὄγκον Friedrich Dübner 1860 P.Oxy. XLIX 3433 Men. et Phil. Fragm. p. 54
Men. fr. 602.18 λοιπόν λυπηρόν Wilamowitz 1876 P.Oxy. XLIX 3433 Herm. 11 (1876) 504
Men. fr. 644 ἀπολόμ- ἀπωλλύμεϲθα Theodor Kock 1880–8 Schol. V Ar. Av. 374 CAF
Men.Rh. 343.18 οἳ οἷον Conrad Bursian 1882 Paris. gr. 2423 (Z)
Mosch. 4.89 αὐτόν αυτις Iunta 1516 P.Oxy. XLVII 3325
Nic. Al. 33 ἐπὶ σ. ἐπισφαλεροῖσι Bentley 1722 Marc. 477 (v) apud O. Schneider
Nic. Al. 37 -ήδην παμπήγην Scaliger 1856 x apud O. Schneider
Nic. Al. 51 σιδηρήε- σιδηρείεσσαν Scaliger 1856 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) apud O. Schneider
Nic. Al. 59/136 ἠέ τι ἢ ἔτι Bentley 1722 MR apud O. Schneider
Nic. Al. 81 ἐπιλλίζ- ἐπιλλύζων Bentley 1722 Marc. gr. 480 (V) apud O. Schneider
Nic. Al. 135 κερά- κερόεντα J. G. Schneider 1792 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) p. 344
Nic. Al. 184 ἐπιρρ- ἐπὶ ῥαγέεσσι J. G. Schneider 1792 Laur. gr. 91.10 (O)
Nic. Al. 221 -ον νόου Otto Schneider 1856 Vat. gr. 2291 (L)
Nic. Al. 277 μίγδ- μιγάδην J. G. Schneider 1792 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π)
Nic. Al. 288 δὲ/δ᾽ ἐν δὴ Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) apud Jacques
Nic. Al. 370 κονίλ- κονίην Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) apud Jacques
Nic. Al. 460 χλοερ- χλιαρῷ J. G. Schneider 1792 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) p. 323
Nic. Al. 475 -στολ- περισταλάδην Bentley 1722 Ricc. gr. 56 (R) apud O. Schneider; s.l.
Nic. Al. 499 χείλεσι/-λεϊ χήτεϊ Otto Schneider 1856 Vat. gr. 2291 (L)
Nic. Al. 561 ἀπουνόσφισε ἀπ' οὖν νόσφισσε Meineke 1843 Goetting. philol. 29 (G) p. 232
Nic. Th. 3 κυδίσ- κηδέστατε David Ruhnken 1782 Kv Duae epist. p. 289
Nic. Th. 3 κυδ- κηδίστατε Bentley 1722 Ambros. D 529 (a) Mus. crit. (1826) p. 372
Nic. Th. 24 αὐαλέος θέρεος -ου θ. Bentley 1722 ΠKVv Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 35 θιμβ- θιβρὴν Bentley 1722 GKRVvHsch Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 40 περι- πυριθαλπέα Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 72 τε δὲ Otto Schneider 1856 Vat. gr. 2291 (L)
Nic. Th. 88 ἐπιχλωριΐδα ἐπὶ χλωρηΐδα Salmasius 1619 Vv p. 76
Nic. Th. 164 αὐδ- αὐγὴν Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 173 μειλ- μηλινόεσσα Salmasius 1689 ΠG Plin. exer. p. 242
Nic. Th. 207 ἔβρωξ- ἔβρυξεν Bentley 1722 GKRVv Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 277 -ον οὐλόμενος Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 277 -ει ἐνιχραύσῃ Bentley 1722 GM Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 279 ἐνιτρέφ- ἐνιστρέφεται Bentley 1722 Marc. 477 (v) Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 283 ἐ. αὔει ἐνδυκὲς αἰεὶ Valckenaer 1773 Rv ad Theoc. p. 248
Nic. Th. 329 -ψυχ- καταψηχθέντος Bentley 1722 GKMp Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 332 τροχύεντες Bentley 1722 ΠMR -ος?
Nic. Th. 381 -οὶ ἀεργοῖς Bentley 1722 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π) Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 386 πάσσ- μάσσον᾽ J. G. Schneider 1792 Paris. suppl. 247 (Π)
Nic. Th. 421 -ον ἐϊσκόμενος Bentley 1722 Eut.
Nic. Th. 442 τρίστιχ- τρίστοιχοι Edward Maltby 1815 Goetting. philol. 29 (G) Morell-Maltby s.v. περιστιχαω
Nic. Th. 490 -στεφ- πολυστρεφέας Otto Schneider 1856 Laur. gr. 91.10 (O)
Nic. Th. 543 -στρέφ- περιστέφει Bentley 1722 Kv Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 605 -οῦ ἀποσυλ- ποταμῶν ἀπὸ συλ- Bentley 1722 Goetting. philol. 29 (G) ἄπο G
Nic. Th. 850 ἀπανήνῃ ἀπαρίνη Bentley 1722 ΠMVp Mus. crit.
Nic. Th. 946 νεαρ- φιαρῆς Bentley 1722 MRVp Mus. crit.
Nonn. Dion. 2.565 -εύς Τυφωεῦ Petrus Cunaeus 1610 Palat. Heidelb. gr. 85 (P)
Nonn. Dion. 3.397 -ας πίονος Gerard Falkenburg 1569 Laur. Plut. 32.16 (L)
Nonn. Dion. 14.393 ἀκωκήν κολώνην Friedrich Graefe 1819 P.Berol. inv. 10567 κορώνην
Nonn. Dion. 14.398 πολυσταφύλῳ φιλοσταφύλῳ Friedrich Graefe 1819 P.Berol. inv. 10567
Nonn. Dion. 15.87 οἰνηθέντες οἰνωθεντες Friedrich Graefe 1819 P.Berol. inv. 10567
Nonn. Dion. 15.112 ἐλαίης Ἀθήνης Hermann Köchly 1857 P.Berol. inv. 10567
Nonn. Dion. 15.165 Βάκχοιο Γλαύκοιο Gerard Falkenburg 1569 P.Berol. inv. 10567
Nonn. Dion. 15.165 μαχητάς μαχηταῖς Hermann Köchly 1857 P.Berol. inv. 10567
Novell. Iust. 117.15 συμ- ἐμπαῖξαι W. O. Reitz 1765 Epanagoge Zachariae
Opp. C. 1.147 καὶ ναὶ F. S. Lehrs 1846 A2δ
Opp. C. 2.217–8 περόωσι … πατέουσι πατέουσι … περόωσι Brunck 1776 Laur. 32.16 (K) apud Schneider
Opp. C. 2.430 δα- κτλ. λατυσσομένοις J. Ph. d’Orville 1732–51 Vindob. phil. gr. 135 (L)
Opp. C. 2.552 πολλὸν πολλῷ J. G. Schneider 1776 Laur. 31.3 (M)
Opp. C. 2.625 μελέεσσιν μελέοισι George d'Arnaud 1730 L2
Opp. C. 3.76 -ον ἄλκιμος J. G. Schneider 1776 K1
Opp. C. 3.214 ἀ- ἁπαλὴν Guietus post-1597 A2MF
Opp. C. 3.247–8 καὶ … τε τε … καὶ Hermann 1805 Laur. 32.16 (K) Orphica p. 712
Opp. C. 3.360 γὰρ μὲν Brunck 1776 Laur. 32.16 (K) apud Schneider
Opp. C. 4.199 ἴκ- εἴκελος André Schott P.Oxy. LXXXI 5278
Opp. C. 4.208 ἐρυϲϲάμενοι ερειϲάμεν[οι Johannes Pierson 1752 P.Oxy. LXXXI 5278 Verisimilium libri duo (1752) 174
Opp. C. 4.322 δε- λεξάμενοι J. G. Schneider 1776 Vindob. phil. gr. 135 (L)
Orac. Sib. 516–517 516, 517 517, 516 Geffcken P.Flor. 398
Orac.Chald. app. 6 p. 216.30 χαῖται Max Treu 1895 Bodl. Barocci 131 (B)
Orac.Chald. app. 6 p. 217.2 ο. δὲ οὕτω καὶ Wilhelm Kroll 1894 Bodl. Barocci 131 (B)
Orac.Chald. app. 6 p. 217.5 παραγωδ- τερατωδεστέρας Max Treu 1895 Bodl. Barocci 131 (B)
Orac.Chald. fr. 44.2 νεύ- πνεύματι Wilhelm Kroll 1894 Paris. gr. 1853
Orph. A. 271 ὑποτρόπι/ὑπὸ τρόπιϊ ὑπὸ τρόπιν Hermann 1805 Escor. Σ-III-3 (E)
Orph. A. 308 τοι δὴ J. H. Voß 1805 Estensis gr. 39 (T)
Orph. A. 845 -ειν ἀποφθίσει Hermann 1805 Paris. gr. 2763 (P)
Orph. A. 1245 γὰρ ἐδεύετο/δ' ἐδ- δ' ἐπεδ- Rudolf Keydell 1911 Placent. Bibl. Comm. 10 (c) p. 64
Paus. 1.6.3 -τιᾶς στρατείας Friedrich Sylburg 1583 Matrit. 4564 (Ma)
Paus. 1.13.2 φέρ- φερῶν Musurus 1516 Matrit. 4564 (Ma)
Paus. 1.23.4 ὀποντ- ὀπουντίους Friedrich Sylburg 1583 Matrit. 4564 (Ma)
Paus. 2.31.4 ἂν ὅτι ἄν τι Hermann Hitzig 1896 Neap. II. C. 32 (Na)
Paus. 3.26.3 -οι λευκότερον Friedrich Sylburg 1583 Neap. II. C. 32 (Na)
Paus. 4.14.4 ἀπ- ἐπέκειτο Friedrich Sylburg 1583 Neap. II. C. 32 (Na) 'non abs re malet quispiam'
Paus. 7.16.8 θαύματα ἀ. θαῦμα ἀνήγετο Porson 1820 Neap. II. C. 32 (Na) apud Gaisford
Paus. 9.10.2 οἶδεν εἶδε Friedrich Sylburg 1583 Neap. II. C. 32 (Na)
Pherecr. fr. 80 ὁ βλὰξ ὀκλὰξ Bekker 1814 Phot. α 387
Pherecr. fr. 166 ἅ σε Martin Runkel 1829 Phot. α 816 p. 70
Pherecr. fr. 181 -ίαν Ἀδώνι' Scaliger s.xvi/xvii Phot. α 400 apud Cant. ms. ΙΙ p. 23
Philo Abr. 35 εὖ νενικ- ἐκνενικηκότα Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Abr. 60 πραγμ- γραμμάτων Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Abr. 60 -ῷ αὐτὸ Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Abr. 62 πληχθ- πεισθεὶς Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Abr. 70 τις τοι Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Abr. 78 ἀντι- ἀναβλέψασα Thomas Mangey 1742 BEK Armen.
Philo Abr. 91 ἀπορ- ἀφορίας Thomas Mangey 1742 BEK Armen.
Philo Abr. 179 φασὶ φήσουσι Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Aet. 2 -ῥιψ- ἀπεῤῥυψάμεθα Thomas Mangey 1742 Petropol. XX Aa 1 (P)
Philo Aet. 5 -εῖσθαι ἐξαπολέσθαι Diels 1903 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Aet. 41 χέρει- χερείον' Meineke 1839 Vat. gr. 381 (U) p. 68
Philo Aet. 64 ὑπερορίας/ὑπορίου ὑπορείου Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Aet. 90 οὐκ ἐκ. οὐδ' ἐκπυρώσεως Franz Bücheler 1877 Vat. gr. 381 (U) RhM
Philo Aet. 134 τῶν -ένων τὸ λεγόμενον Thomas Mangey 1742 Oxon. Lincoln. 34 (E)
Philo Contempl. 53 περιϊχ- περιλιχνεύουσι Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Contempl. 82 τῶν ἱερῶν τῶν ἱερέων Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Decal. 39 ἑνί, ὅτε ἐνίοτε Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Decal. 123 -ει διδάσκειν Thomas Mangey 1742 Palat. gr. 248 (G)
Philo Decal. 126 κ. τῆς γ. καὶ τὸν τῆς γυναικός Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Decal. 129 ἐπ- ὑποικουρημένων Thomas Mangey 1742 F Armen.
Philo Decal. 133 ἀνώ- ἁγιώτερον Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Decal. 162 προσ- προκαλούμενοι Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Decal. 174 -ην ἐνδεχομένων Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Det. 158 ἀρρήτ- ἀρρήκτων Markland 1742 UF apud Mangey
Philo Ebr. 11 τῆς τὴν Turnebus 1552 P.Oxy. IX 1173
Philo Ebr. 11 om. τοῦ C. E. Richter 1828 P.Oxy. IX 1173 [τ]ο̣υ
Philo Ebr. 177 διὰ γραμμάτων διαφέρειν Thomas Mangey 1742 Sacr. Parall. (D)
Philo Ebr. 221 ἐπειδάν ἐπειδάν δ' Paul Wendland 1897 P.Oxy. IX 1173
Philo Ebr. 221 οἰνηρεύσεις οινηρυσει[ς Turnebus 1552 P.Oxy. IX 1173
Philo Ebr. 222 μαρμάζει μαιμᾷ Thomas Mangey 1742 P.Oxy. IX 1173 μαιμαῑ
Philo Flacc. 16 προανηρ- προσανηρημένον Thomas Mangey 1742 Palat. gr. 248 (G)
Philo Flacc. 81 τόλμ- τιμᾶν Thomas Mangey 1742 Palat. gr. 248 (G)
Philo Flacc. 88 που ποῦ Thomas Mangey 1742 codd.
Philo Flacc. 88 -αι ταμιεύεσθε Thomas Mangey 1742 MH
Philo Flacc. 100 ἐπανεγ-/παρεγ- παρανεγνωσμένου Thomas Mangey 1742 Palat. gr. 248 (G)
Philo Flacc. 102 -έχει ἐμπαρέσχε Thomas Mangey 1742 GAH
Philo Flacc. 114 γεν- γινόμενα Thomas Mangey 1742 MG
Philo Flacc. 157 εὐτυχ- ἀτυχῆ Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Gig. 17 τούτῳ τοῦτο Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Her. 11 ἀκοῆς ἄκος Thomas Mangey 1742 Paris. suppl. gr. 1120
Philo Her. 118 ἀνωμολογῆσθαι ἀνομολογεῖσθαι Thomas Mangey 1742 AB
Philo Her. 185 -αις νουθεσίας Turnebus 1552 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Her. 254 -μεν ἀπολαύσομαι Thomas Mangey 1742 ABP2
Philo Her. 283 -ρητική κυκλοφορική Thomas Mangey 1742 ABG
Philo Jos. 10 συναντ- συνδιαιτήσεως Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Jos. 28 γράμμ- πράγματι Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Jos. 32 προξένων πράξεων Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Jos. 66 ἅπαντα/ἄραντα/ἔρωτα δρᾶν τὰ Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Jos. 102 -ους εὐρώστως Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Jos. 120 περι- προερχομένου Thomas Mangey 1742 V2O
Philo Jos. 128 ἀλλ' οὐ ἀλλὰ ποῦ Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 59 (K)
Philo Jos. 131 ἐκτὸς τῶν ἐκτὸς Thomas Mangey 1742 V2O
Philo Leg. 1.65 -ηται πεποίωται Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 1.104 -ος σώματι Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 2.6 -εως τρόπις Diels 1896 vers. Armen. apud Cohn
Philo Leg. 2.11 καὶ ὡς καὶ Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 2.30 νοῦ τοῦ νοῦ Diels 1896 vers. Armen. apud Cohn
Philo Leg. 2.30 -ὸς αὐτὰς Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 2.38 δὴ δὲ Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 2.47 θνητῷ θ. γένει Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Leg. 2.57 καιν- κενῆς Thomas Mangey 1742 M Armen.
Philo Legat. 2 ἀφαν- ἀπλανοῦς Thomas Mangey 1742 Bonon. gr. 3568 (O)
Philo Legat. 8 συμφων- συμφρονήσαντος Thomas Mangey 1742 CGOMAH
Philo Legat. 28 -ων συγκληρονόμῳ Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Legat. 28 -ῳ δικαίων Thomas Mangey 1742 MA
Philo Legat. 48 -σεισι πρόεισι Thomas Mangey 1742 MA
Philo Legat. 124 σορ- σωρούς Thomas Mangey 1742 GA
Philo Legat. 136 κατ ̓ αὐτ- καθ ̓ αὑτὸν Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Legat. 156 ἀναξ- ἀναγόντων Thomas Mangey 1742 Bonon. gr. 3568 (O)
Philo Legat. 189 προελθ- προσελθεῖν Thomas Mangey 1742 codd.
Philo Legat. 190 -αις παρανομίας Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Legat. 217 -ος κύκλῳ Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Legat. 263 δ ̓ οὖν γοῦν Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Legat. 311 ἀπ- ἐπέστειλε Thomas Mangey 1742 Bonon. gr. 3568 (O)
Philo Mos. 1.30 μ. κατα. μεγάλα καὶ καταλαζονευόμενοι Thomas Mangey 1742 Gac
Philo Mos. 1.55 -δοκήσαντα προσδοκηθέντα Thomas Mangey 1742 V2OK2
Philo Mos. 1.68 om. τις Thomas Mangey 1742 Venet. gr. 40 (H)
Philo Mos. 1.95 -εργείας ἐναργείας Thomas Mangey 1742 Paris. gr. 435 (C) m. sec.
Philo Mos. 2.153 αἱ ταῖς Thomas Mangey 1742 V2OK
Philo Mos. 2.184 -ασθαι μετανίσταται Thomas Mangey 1742 Barber. IV 56
Philo Mos. 2.204 ὑπείληφας ὑπειληφώς Thomas Mangey 1742 V2K
Philo Mos. 2.257 ὁ. ὁμογνωμονῆσαι καὶ Thomas Mangey 1742 VOK
Philo Mos. 2.263 -ασι ὕδατι Thomas Mangey 1742 Venet. gr. 40 (H)
Philo Mos. 2.268 δηλονότι δηλοῦντα ὅτι Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Mos. 2.272 -άλλεται ἐξαλλάττεται Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Mos. 2.280 μανθάνοντ- μαθόντες Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Opif. 139 τοῦτον τούτου Markland 1742 Sacr. Parall. (D) apud Mangey
Philo Post. 37 ἔστι ἔτι Constantin von Tischendorf 1868 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Post. 37 εἰ δὲ εἴ γε Constantin von Tischendorf 1868 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Post. 45 οἶκος οἰκεῖος Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Post. 46 μὲν μὴν Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 381 (U)
Philo Post. 84 ἂν ἀπεῖναι ἀναπτῆναι Thomas Mangey 1742 Paris. gr. 1630 (R)
Philo Praem. 92 -εῖν ἀσπονδεὶ Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Praem. 107 εὐδοκ- εὐδικίας Thomas Mangey 1742 Venet. gr. 40 (H)
Philo Praem. 128 ἡσυχάζ- ἡσυχάσουσιν Thomas Mangey 1742 HP
Philo Praem. 157 αὐτοῦ τ. ἀ. αὐτῆς τὰς ἀγορὰς Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Prob. 36 τῆς τις Thomas Mangey 1742 GHQT
Philo Prob. 49 λόγ- νόμος Richard Ausfeld 1887 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Prob. 49 ὁ γεωμετρικὸς ὁ γεωμέτρης Thomas Mangey 1742 QT
Philo Prob. 63 -ξήθησαν συνηύξησαν Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Prob. 103 λάμβανε καὶ λάμβαν ̓ εἰ Thomas Mangey 1742 Palat. gr. 248 (G)
Philo Prob. 143 -ὸς παῖδας Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Sacr. 77 -ος εἰωθότες Thomas Mangey 1742 Petropol. XX Aa 1 (P)
Philo Sacr. 125 ἐνδειξ- ἐνδεξαμένοις Thomas Mangey 1742 Paris. suppl. gr. 1120
Philo Somn. 1.82 ὧν Thomas Mangey 1742 G ante ras.
Philo Somn. 1.104 -ον ὅλου Thomas Mangey 1742 FP
Philo Somn. 1.107 αἰσχρ- γλισχρολογίας Thomas Mangey 1742 MAP2
Philo Somn. 1.125 -ὴν κεφαλῆς Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Somn. 1.131 ἐφ- ἀφικομένη Thomas Mangey 1742 MA p. 735
Philo Somn. 1.167 φασί φησί Thomas Mangey 1742 MAG
Philo Somn. 1.202 -κρι- ἀνακραθεῖσαι Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 379 m. sec.
Philo Somn. 2.88 ἀπ- ἐπάγουσιν Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Spec. 1.52 ἐρω- ἑνωτικῆς Thomas Mangey 1742 RMF
Philo Spec. 1.57 -ου ἐπαγγελλομένη Thomas Mangey 1742 RMF
Philo Spec. 1.64 ἀληθ-/ἀκένως ἀκλινῶς Thomas Mangey 1742 RAH
Philo Spec. 1.67 ἱ. εἶν. μ. ἱερὸν ἓν εἶναι μόνον Thomas Mangey 1742 RF
Philo Spec. 1.105 δὲ γὰρ Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.107 -ου γάμων Thomas Mangey 1742 RF
Philo Spec. 1.127 ἑτέραν ἕτερον Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Spec. 1.167 ὑπαιτ- ἀνυπαιτίου Thomas Mangey 1742 RF
Philo Spec. 1.228 τοῦ εἴδους τὸ εἶδος Thomas Mangey 1742 RA
Philo Spec. 1.243 τούτους τοὺς Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Spec. 1.295 τῆς ἀρετῆς τῆς ἄλλης ἀ. Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.304 ἀποσχοινίζ- ἀπαυχενίζοντες Thomas Mangey 1742 R Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.314 -ῆς σπουδὴν Thomas Mangey 1742 Vat. gr. 316 (R)
Philo Spec. 1.318 ἐπιβουλευόμ- ἐπιμελούμενος Thomas Mangey 1742 R Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.319 ἐργάζ- ὀργιάζεσθαι Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.319 μυστικῶν πραγμάτων μυθικών πλασμάτων Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.322 -ων ἀμυθήτους Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.329 ἴδμ- εὐδαίμονα Thomas Mangey 1742 R Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.332 -αῖον ἀναγκαιότατον Thomas Mangey 1742 vers. Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.341 -εύειν ἐπαληθεύοντες Thomas Mangey 1742 R Armen.
Philo Spec. 1.345 ἄθλι- ἄθεοι Thomas Mangey 1742 R Armen.
Philo Spec. 2.44 μήτ ̓ ἀνδικεῖν μήτε ἀνταδικεῖν David Hoeschel 1742 Vat. gr. 316 (R) apud Mangey
Philo Spec. 2.158 -α … -εως ἐλπίδος … ὑπομνήσιν Thomas Mangey 1742 Nicet.Heracl.
Philo Spec. 2.175 -βεβιωκ- ὑποβεβηκότων Thomas Mangey 1742 Coisl. 201 (Nicet.Heracl.)
Philo Spec. 3.5 -εύοντα συνημερεύσοντα Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Spec. 3.14 τοὺς μ. τοῦ μὲν Thomas Mangey 1742 F Armen.
Philo Spec. 3.28 -ὰ ἀδελφαὶ Thomas Mangey 1742 Barber. IV 56
Philo Spec. 3.43 καὶ καὶ τῶν Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F)
Philo Spec. 3.47 ἀνομοίοις γένεσι ἀνομοιογενέσι Thomas Mangey 1742 SF
Philo Spec. 3.68 σε γ' Thomas Mangey 1742 Bodl. Arch. Seld. B. 19 (S)
Philo Spec. 3.69 -ᾳ δυναστείαν Thomas Mangey 1742 Bodl. Arch. Seld. B. 19 (S)
Philo Spec. 3.102 om. κατὰ Thomas Mangey 1742 SF
Philo Spec. 3.198 μείζ- μείονα Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 85.10 (F) p. 686 ('Minutiora')
Philo Spec. 4.17 ἀνδράποδα καπ- ἀνδραποδοκαπήλοις Thomas Mangey 1742 Nicet.Heracl.
Philo Spec. 4.33 ἄψευ- ἄψαυστον Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.121 πρῶνας προαγῶνας Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.134 συνέχῃ συνηχῆ Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.136 -ληφ- παραλειφθῆναι Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.140 καὶ κἂν Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.142 προσθέντας πρόσθεν τῶν Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.142 ἀλλήλ- ἄλλων Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.147 ἦς ἣν Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Spec. 4.169 -ίδα ἡγεμονίαν Thomas Mangey 1742 SMF2
Philo Spec. 4.208 συμφυό- συγχεόμενα Thomas Mangey 1742 Laur. Plut. 10.20 (M)
Philo Virt. 15 -ούμεναι ἡγουμένους Thomas Mangey 1742 B2KMV2OF
Philo Virt. 56 τὸ -ον/τῶν -ων τοῦ ἀναγκαιοτάτου Thomas Mangey 1742 Monac. gr. 459 (A)
Philo Virt. 76 -τέου ὀστρέου Thomas Mangey 1742 SG2
Philo Virt. 208 ὄντ- οὕτως Thomas Mangey 1742 FG2HP
Philostr. Her. 8.3 δ. ὃν διῄειν ἂν J. F. Boissonade 1806 Vindob. phil. gr. 331 (V)
Philostr. Her. 25.16 Χρύσου Βρισέως Lars Norrman 1687 Guelf. 25 Gud. gr. (Γ) ad Aristid. p. 51
Philostr. Her. 30.2 καὶ ὡς ὡς Herbert Richards 1909 Vindob. phil. gr. 331 (V) CQ
Philostr. Her. 33.30 -τιᾶς στρατείας Reiske 1893 KVεOT Wien. Stud.
Philostr. Her. 33.33 -πεσε διεξέπαισε J. F. Boissonade 1806 Laur. Plut. 69.30 (Φ) m. rec.
Philostr. Her. 54.5 Ἰλίῳ ἡλίῳ Reiske 1893 AK Wien. Stud.
Philostr. Her. 56.10 -οῖς αὐτοὺς C. L. Kayser 1871 Ambros. T 122 sup. (Y)
Philostr. Her. 57.7 ὁ. τι ὁποῖόν τε Reiske 1893 HKY Wien. Stud.
Philostr. Her. 58.2 βεβ- ἀβεβήλῳ Henri de Valois 1806 ΓS apud Boissonade
Philostr. Im. 25.3 -αίους ληνὰς Gottfried Olearius 1709 Paris. gr. 1761
Philostr. VA 1.1.2 δ ̓ ἂν δ ̓ αὖ Bentley 2022 Suda π3121GVM apud Boter
Philostr. VA 1.2.3 π. οἷς παρ ̓ οὓς Salmasius 2022 Paris. suppl. gr. 607 (C) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 1.15.3 παθόντι παθών τι Bentley 2022 Paris. gr. 1696 apud Boter; m. sec.
Philostr. VA 1.19.1 νῖνος νίνιος Salmasius 2022 SudaMsl apud Boter
Philostr. VA 1.20.1 -γράψαι ἀπόγραψαι Reiske 1756 A E F
Philostr. VA 1.21.2 ποτ ̓ τότ ̓ Reiske 1770 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F)
Philostr. VA 1.24.2 ταῦτα ἰδεῖν φασι· καὶ ταῦτα. ἰδεῖν φασι καὶ John Jackson 2022 A E apud Boter
Philostr. VA 1.25.2 ὀρφέως Ὀρφεὺς Bentley 2022 Paris. gr. 1696 apud Boter; p.c.
Philostr. VA 1.27 -τῶ φοιτῴη Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 1.28.1 διάγειν δὴ ἄγειν Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 1.29 -έλλη ἀνηγγέλθη Cobet 1859 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) p.c.
Philostr. VA 2.2.1 -ώμεθα ποιούμεθα Scaliger 2022 Phot. apud Boter
Philostr. VA 2.7.2 ἀχθέσεται ἀχθεσθήσεται Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec. s.l.
Philostr. VA 2.7.3 -ον μόνων C. L. Kayser 1844 Paris. gr. 1696 p.c.
Philostr. VA 2.22.4 τοῖς -οῖς τοὺς ὀφθαλμοὺς Reiske 1756 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E)
Philostr. VA 2.23 ἀτάκ- εὐτάκτως Ludwig Preller 1846 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 2.27.2 ἐνω- ἐνορώρυκτο Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1696
Philostr. VA 2.27.2 ἐς τ. β. ἐν τοῦ βασιλέως Herbert Richards 1909 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) s.l.
Philostr. VA 2.31.3 πρὸς ὥραν πρὸς ὥραι Salmasius 2022 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 2.32.1 -ες βαδίσαντα Friedrich Jacobs 1829–32 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec.
Philostr. VA 2.43 -ῳ Ἀλέξανδρον Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 3.4.1 ἰδέ- ἴδαις Valckenaer 1892 codd. praeter F Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 3.8.2 ὑπο- ὑπερβαλὼν Valckenaer 1892 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 3.18 ἐ., τ. ξ. ἐπιχειρεῖ τούτῳ, ξυνεχώρησε Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 3.22.2 ἀπο- ὑποβλέπει Frédéric Morel 1608 Laur. CS 155 (S) s.l.
Philostr. VA 3.25.3 -ῃ πεντηκοντούτει John Jackson 2022 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 3.26.1 μετὰ κατὰ Valckenaer 1892 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F) Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 3.26.2 παχεῖά τε καὶ π. γε κ. Reiske 1756 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F)
Philostr. VA 3.31.3 -ου Ξέρξην Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec.
Philostr. VA 3.34.3 αὐτ- ἑαυτὸν Reiske 1770 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F)
Philostr. VA 3.34.3 κυομ- κυουμένοις Cobet 1859 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F)
Philostr. VA 3.35.2 πρώρ- πρῷραν Cobet 1859 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E)
Philostr. VA 4.1 τοῦ Κ. τοῦ ἐν κολοφῶνι Gottfried Olearius 1709 Marc. XI.29 s.l.
Philostr. VA 4.3.2 ἐπὶ τούτῳ ἐπὶ τοῦτο Reiske 1756 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E)
Philostr. VA 4.10.3 εἶδ- ἕδος Bentley 2022 Crac. VIII.16.2 apud Boter
Philostr. VA 4.13.3 ἐν τ. Ἀ. τοῖς Ἀχαιοῖς John Jackson 2022 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 4.15.2 -εις δίει Cobet 1859 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec.
Philostr. VA 4.21.1 -ος ἀκροασομένους Reiske 1770 Laur. Plut. 69.33 (F)
Philostr. VA 4.22.1 ἐπὶ ὑπὸ Valckenaer 1892 codd. praeter F Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 4.25.4 δὲ μ. δὲ καὶ μάλιστα Valckenaer 1763 Lugd. 73D et S
Philostr. VA 4.27 σπονδ- σπουδαὶ Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 4.32.1 παρ- περίεις Reiske 1770 Lugd. 73D
Philostr. VA 4.40.3 α. ἀ. αὕτη ἡ ἀρχή Arthur Platt 1911 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 4.46.4 οὐ π. παρῆλθε H. A. Hamaker 1816 Ap.Ty. Ep.
Philostr. VA 5.6 -ῶσαι ἀναπλεῦσαι C. M. Lucarini 2004 FQ Phot. 'mira quadam neglegentia'
Philostr. VA 5.7.2 ἐναντίαν Valckenaer 1892 codd. praeter F Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 5.7.4 ἢ οὐ καὶ οὐ Salmasius 2022 Paris. gr. 1696 apud Boter; m. sec. inf. lin.
Philostr. VA 5.7.4 -ῆσαι ἀναχωρήσειν Arthur Platt 1911 FQ
Philostr. VA 5.11 ἤχθ- ἤνθησαν Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) s.l.
Philostr. VA 5.26.1 ἄλλως ἀλλ ̓ ὡς Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 5.27.3 -άμενος ἐργασόμενος Reiske 1770 FQ
Philostr. VA 5.35.2 ὀ. καὶ β. Ὀλυμπίαν βαδίζοντα Valckenaer 1892 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 5.35.3 -ῆσθαι ἐκπεπολεμῶσθαι C. L. Kayser 1844 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 5.39 -ὸν/-ῷ αὐτὸ Valckenaer 1892 A E Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 5.42.1 ἦγεν ἦττεν Frédéric Morel 1608 FQ
Philostr. VA 6.1.1 ξυντεθεῖσαι Scaliger 2022 Phot.A apud Boter
Philostr. VA 6.1.2 βούλονται βουλεύονται Reiske 1756 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E)
Philostr. VA 6.2.2 ἥττων ἧττον Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 6.2.2 ἰ. τε ἰσότης δὲ Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1696
Philostr. VA 6.11.13 -ῆσθαι διαβέβλησθε Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec.
Philostr. VA 6.11.18 καίπερ ἱστας καὶ περιιστᾷς Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.; περιιστὰς codd.
Philostr. VA 6.13.4 -οῖς σοφούς Reiske 1756 FQ
Philostr. VA 6.16.1 ἐ. ἑ. ἐγὼ μὴ ἑλόμενοι Reiske 1770 Vat. gr. 1016 et Crac. VIII.16.2
Philostr. VA 6.22.2 -ὼν ἐξελῶν Valckenaer 1892 A E Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 6.26.2 (ἐκ)κτυπηθῆναι ἐγκτυπηθῆναι Reiske 1756 Phot.
Philostr. VA 6.31.2 -ειν ξυμπέμπει Bentley 2022 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 6.31.2 τῆς τε τῆς Reiske 1770 Marc. XI.29 et Paris. gr. 1696
Philostr. VA 6.34.1 μεμνῆσθαι μεμνήσεσθαι Valckenaer 1892 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 6.36.1 -ίους χαραδριούς G. A. Papabasileiou 1897 A E
Philostr. VA 7.2.2 ἀνίω Αἰνίω Valckenaer 1892 Paris. gr. 1696 Wien. Stud.; m. sec. in marg.
Philostr. VA 7.8.1 -οῖς χρηστοὺς Scaliger 2022 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 7.11.1 -οὺς αὐτοῖς Valckenaer 1892 Phot. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 7.12.1 ὃ μηδ ̓ ὁ μηδ ̓ Herbert Richards 1909 Laur. CS 155 (S) p.c.
Philostr. VA 7.14.1 παιδικῶν παίδων Cobet 1859 Marc. XI.29 et Paris. gr. 1696
Philostr. VA 7.14.11 ἐπισκώπτ- ἐπικόπτει Salmasius 2022 Paris. gr. 1696 apud Boter; m. sec.
Philostr. VA 7.22.2 τοῦ -ους τὸ πέλαγος Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1696 p.c.
Philostr. VA 7.29 -αγγέλλ- παραγγελῶν Reiske 1756 A Q
Philostr. VA 7.31.1 ἐπ- ἀπεβλέπετο Valckenaer 1892 codd. Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 7.32.3 τι ἢ τι ἢ μή Bentley 2022 Α Ε apud Boter
Philostr. VA 7.32.3 -ασθαι ἀκροάσεσθαι Herbert Richards 1909 FQ
Philostr. VA 7.36.2 λειπ- λιποθυμῆσαι C. L. Kayser 1870 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) s.l.
Philostr. VA 7.37 τὸ καταπείθειν τοῦ κακὰ πείθειν Valckenaer 2022 Phot. apud Boter
Philostr. VA 7.42.1 μὴ/ἢ del. Bentley 2022 Paris. gr. 1696 apud Boter; p.c.
Philostr. VA 7.42.5 πω που C. L. Kayser 1870 Marc. XI.29
Philostr. VA 8.2.2 οὐδὲν οὐδ ̓ Reiske 1770 Paris. gr. 1801 (A)
Philostr. VA 8.4 ἀπάγξ- ἀπάξει Bentley 2022 E FQ apud Boter
Philostr. VA 8.5.3 ἀλιτηρί- ἀλίτρους Salmasius 2022 Palat. gr. 329 (Q) apud Boter
Philostr. VA 8.7.11 προσήκ- προσῄειν Valckenaer 1892 AS E Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 8.7.17 κ. χ. κατὰ τοὺς χρόνους Cobet 1859 Marc. 391
Philostr. VA 8.7.19 μύ- μυεῖν Reiske 1756 AS E FQ
Philostr. VA 8.7.21 ἐπ ̓ αὐτῷ/αὐτὸ ἐπ ̓ αὐτὸν Reiske 1756 AS s.l.
Philostr. VA 8.7.28 ἢ καὶ Reiske 1756 E FQ
Philostr. VA 8.7.28 μὲν μὲν γὰρ Reiske 1770 Escor. Φ.III.8 (E)
Philostr. VA 8.7.39 ταῦτ- ταὐτὰ Ludwig Radermacher 1895 E FQ
Philostr. VA 8.7.47 τὰ τ. τὰ αὑτῶν τοιαῦτα Gottfried Olearius 1709 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 155 (S)
Philostr. VA 8.8 -ασθαι ποιήσεσθαι Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1696 m. sec.
Philostr. VA 8.15.2 -ασθαι ἀκροάσεσθαι Reiske 1770 FQ
Philostr. VA 8.21 -νίους Ἀπολλωνιείους Valckenaer 1892 Paris. gr. 1801 (A) Wien. Stud.
Philostr. VA 8.22 -ει ἀπάγοι Reiske 1756 Paris. gr. 1696 p.c.
Philostr. VA 8.31.3 μαστ- ματεύεις Scaliger 2022 App.Anth. Orac. 258 apud Boter
Philox.Gramm. 129.6 Νικόχαρις Νικοχάρης Hemsterhuis 1744 D R ad schol. Ar. Plut. 179 ('ego Bentleium audire malui')
Philox.Gramm. 505.3 ἴσθι εἰς θι Friedrich Sylburg s.xvi ex. Marc. 304 (B)
Phot. α 151 ἀγενὲς ἀγεννὲς Jan van Leeuwen 1907 cod. Zavord. 95 (z) Mnem.
Phot. α 163 οἵους ἰοῦσ' David Ruhnken n.d. schol. Eur.
Phot. α 448 ἄμπελον ἄπεπλον Leo 1907 Zavord. 95 (z) Hermes 42, 1907, 153/4 = Kl. Schr. 2,409
Phot. α 448 ἄμπελον ἄπεπλον Wilamowitz 1907 Zavord. 95 (z) SBAk. Berlin 1907,3 = Kl. Schr. 4,529
Phot. α 532 τῆς τοῖς H. Erbse 1950 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. α 673 αἰτμ- ἀτμίζοντος Richard Reitzenstein 1907 cZavord. 95 (z)
Phot. α 1172 ἐ. ᾧ ἐφ' ὧν Richard Reitzenstein 1907 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. α 1210 Ἀμμών Ἄμμων Boeckh 1886 Berol. graec.oct. 22 (b) Die Staatshaushaltung der Athener II p. 121
Phot. α 1425 ὀλιγοστοὺς ὀλίγους τοὺς Richard Reitzenstein 1907 Eust. 1894.38
Phot. α 2032 -κήτως ἀπροσδόκητοι Wilamowitz 1907 Zavord. suppl. 95 (Sz) SBAk. Berlin 1907,13 = Kl. Sehr. 4,541
Phot. α 2096 -δε Θουγενίδης Blass 1907 Zavord. suppl. 95 (Sz) Rhein. Mus. 62 (1907) 271
Phot. α 2096 -δε Θουγενίδης J. Stroux 1907 Zavord. suppl. 95 (Sz) Hermes 42 (1907) 643
Phot. α 2124 -τλία ἀντία Richard Reitzenstein 1907 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. α 2252 -ων σπεύδω Wilamowitz 1907 Zavord. 95 (z) SBAk. Berlin 1907,13 = Kl. Sehr. 4,541
Phot. ε 336 -ξασθαι εἰσδέξεσθαι Hermann Sauppe 1850 Harp. pl. codd. QP ad Antiph. fr. 167
Phot. ε 1110 ἐξάρξ- κτλ. ἐξαράξαντες L. Dindorf 1835 Cyr. cod. Α fol. 76r ThGL. vol. III p. 1256Β
Phot. ε 1818 -θεύθηοαν ἐπλίνθευοαν Wilamowitz n.d. Zavord. 95 (z) ms. ad Hsch.
Phot. ε 2006 φ. ἐ. κόρας φεῦγ' ἐς κόρακας Porson 1822 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. ε 2239 εὐλ-/εὔλ- εὐλάχα Naber 1864 schol. Thuc. cod. Gpc
Phot. η 37 παλλάθη(ν) παλάθη Porson 1822 Eust. 1399.29
Phot. η 37 βρώμ-/ἀρτύμ- ἀρώματα Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σa et Gal.
Phot. η 51 ἔ. ἐ. ἔφην δ' ἐγώ Porson 1822 Boethus et Sud. cod. F
Phot. θ 47 παρεγειρον παρ' αἴγειρον Porson 1822 Et.Gen. ΑΒ
Phot. ι 49 πυρὸν πυρρὸν Porson 1822 Sud. ι 165
Phot. ι 49 -γελλεν ἀπήγγειλεν Meineke 1822 Sud. ι 165 Anal. Alex. p. 356
Phot. ι 181 -ος χρήοιμον Porson 1822 Phot. Bibl. 528a.41
Phot. ι 198 γεννῶνται γένωνται Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Sud. ι 623
Phot. κ 671 κήπουρεύμα (dublici acc.) κήπου ῥεῦμα Dindorf 1835 Zavord. 95 (z) ThGL. vol. IV p. 1521B
Phot. κ 784 δὴ δεῖ Porson 1822 Epit. Harp. et Sud. κ 1802
Phot. κ 1250 -κέναι/-κεν ἀναβεβηκὸς Porson 1822 Sud. κ 2749
Phot. κ 1288 -τας ψοφοῦντες Porson 1822 Et.Gen. Α
Phot. λ 92 λαπήττ- λαπίττειν Johann Alberti 1766 zpc Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 427, 7
Phot. λ 92 λαμπιστὴν λαπιοτὴν Johann Alberti 1766 zpc Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 427, 7
Phot. λ 173 -ία τρύβλια L. Dindorf 1835 Zavord. 95 (z) ThGL. vol. V p. 179B
Phot. λ 204 -ον κακῶν Porson 1822 zpc
Phot. λ 232 ἀρτίτ- ἀρτιτόκος Schleusner 1812 Σbpc Cur. nov. p. 188
Phot. λ 319 τὸν τὸ Schleusner 1812 AB I 277.7 Cur. nov. p. 195
Phot. λ 382 κατὰ ὑπὲρ Maussacus 1822 Harp. pl. cod. Κ apud Dindorf ad Harp.
Phot. λ 420 -λημ- κεκλιμένος L. Dindorf 1835 zpc ThGL. vol. V p. 403B
Phot. μ 71 μεμαγ- μεμαλαγμένος Schleusner 1812 zpc Cur. nov. p. 213
Phot. μ 135 τίς τί Porson 1822 Epit. Harp. et Sud. cod. G
Phot. μ 521 -ορή- μυχορρήμων L. Dindorf 1835 zpc ThGL. vol. V p. 1321D
Phot. ν 77 νεάσαι νεᾶσαι Cobet 1859 Zavord. 95 (z) Mnem. 8 (1859) 38
Phot. ν 191 νηνί- νηλίποδες P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix zpc Advers. vol. III p. 46
Phot. ν 209 ποίησον ποιήσω Cobet 1859 Sud. codd. GM Mnem. 8 (1859) 33–4
Phot. ο 21 -ύλε- ὀγκύλλεσθαι Schleusner 1812 Zavord. 95 (z) Cur. nov. p. 266
Phot. ο 119 δῆμος τῆς δημότης Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Epit. Harp. et Harp. pl. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 293
Phot. ο 119 δῆμος τῆς δημότης Schleusner 1810 Epit. Harp. et Harp. pl. Libell. p. 58
Phot. ο 254 ̓Oλύμπιον ̓Oλυμπιεῖον Johann Alberti 1766 zpc Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 747, 7
Phot. ο 716 -φεῖν ῥόφειν L. Dindorf 1835 z et Eust. ThGL. vol. V p. 2458C
Phot. π 105 κινεῖ κινεῖται Dindorf 1835 Cyr. cod. A et Hsch. π 237 ThGL. vol. VI p. 106C
Phot. π 192 παρὰ αὐλίδην παραβλήδην Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc et Sud. π 270 Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 252 -μοῦντες παρορμῶντες Porson 1822 zpc Σa+b Sud.
Phot. π 317 -απενθεῖς παρατενεῖς Schleusner 1810 Tim. et Hsch. Libell. p. 71
Phot. π 322 ἐπιστρέψαι/ἐπιτρέψαι ἐπιτρῖψαι Cobet 1859 Sud. codd. GMpc Mnem. 8 (1859) 48–9
Phot. π 328 -ων λόγῳ Porson 1822 Harp. pl. et Sud. codd. GM
Phot. π 344 -ως ὁμοίους Schleusner 1812 Harp. pl. et Sud. codd. GMV Cur. nov. p. 315
Phot. π 403 παρ ̓ ἡμῖν παρήμην Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σa+b Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 521 -τατα προθυμότατοι Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Harp. pl. et Sud. cod. Mpc Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 541 τυράννων Tυρρηνῶν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Λεξ. ῥητ. cod. Coisl. 345 et EM Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 541 δόντες ἰδόντες Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Zpc Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 543 -λαθ- πέλεθρα Cobet 1858 Zpc Σa Sud. Mnem. 7 (1858) 479
Phot. π 588 -κοντεύ- πεντηκοστεύεσθαι Schleusner 1812 Harp. pl. et Sud. Cur. nov. p. 329
Phot. π 662 -ριέχ- περιέρχεσθαι Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σb Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 699 περιφαρμ- πεφαρμακευμένον Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σa+b Sud. Hsch. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 294
Phot. π 706 -κον- περικωνῆσαι Cobet 1859 g z Mnem. 8 (1859) 52
Phot. π 800 κάταγμα κατάμαγμα Ludolf Küster s.xviii in. Cyr. cod. Brem. ThGL. vol. VI p. 986C
Phot. π 802 -νίαν ἀλγηδόνα Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Zpc Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 295
Phot. π 1079 τεσσάρων δʹ Porson 1822 Sud. π 2026
Phot. π 1079 προάρξ- προάξαντες Demetrius Chalcondyles 1499 Et.Gud.
Phot. π 1157 -ριών πρηγορεών Schleusner 1810 zpc Libell. p. 84
Phot. π 1234 πρωθῆβας/πρόθ- πρωθήβας Cobet 1859 zpc Mnem. 8 (1859) 59
Phot. π 1247 -σελθ- εἰσενεχθῆναι Schleusner 1810 zpc Sud. Libell. p. 85
Phot. π 1255 πυρὶ πυροὶ Porson 1822 AB
Phot. π 1282 μεταβ- καταβολῆς Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc et Epit. Harp. et Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 295
Phot. π 1286 προσπ- προπίνειν Porson 1822 Σa+b et Sud. et schol. Pi.
Phot. π 1374 -σαν φάσαι Porson 1822 Amm. Ptol. Et.Gud. Eust.
Phot. π 1374 -σαν φάσαι Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Amm. Ptol. Et.Gud. Eust. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 295
Phot. π 1394 βδελλύσσ- βδελύσσομαι Porson 1822 Σa+b Sud.
Phot. π 1421 -φθείρ- παραφέρειν Schleusner 1812 zpc et schol. Ar. et Sud. Cur. nov. p. 374
Phot. π 1539 -φθορὰ διαφορὰ Dindorf 1835 Sud. π 3173 ThGL. vol. VI p. 2237C
Phot. π 1550 -ραιν- πύραυνος Porson 1822 Eust. 1548.1
Phot. π 1580 -ρώνων πυρῶν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Sud. π 3240 Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. ρ 4 -ναιμ- ἄνεμος Johann Alberti 1766 Zavord. 95 (z) Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 1094, 25
Phot. ρ 80 -τρεία ῥελατορία Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Σa+b Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. ρ 108 τῶν -ῶν τὸ παλαιὸν P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix zpc Advers. vol. III p. 49
Phot. ρ 116 ἀπὸ ὑπὸ Naber 1865 Σb
Phot. ρ 129 -νόμ- ῥινώμενος Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. ρ 147 -ειν ῥοίβδην Dindorf 1835 Σa+b ThGL. vol. VI p. 2415B
Phot. ρ 190 -υστ- ῥυτῆρας Cobet 1859 zpc Mnem. 8 (1859) 66
Phot. σ 28 -ροτον ἀσάρωτον Porson 1822 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. σ 44 -νῆσαι σαλακωνίσαι Porson 1822 zpc
Phot. σ 61 εἴσω πολιτείαν ἰσοπολιτείαν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Sud. σ 77 Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 61 εἴσω πολιτείαν ἰσοπολιτείαν Porson 1822 Sud. σ 77
Phot. σ 89 Tρυζ- Tροιζῆνι Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 125 -σαντες προσκαλέσασθαι Porson 1822 Sud. cod. Eac teste Dobree, Phot. Lex. vol. II p. 787
Phot. σ 160 ἀντεσεβ- ἀντὶ τοῦ ἐσεβάσθησαν Johann Alberti 1766 zpc Hesych. Lex. vol. I p. 1456, 22
Phot. σ 167 μὴ μὲν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Harp. pl. et Sud. codd. GVM Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 182 -ων ὑποτρέχον Porson 1822 Σa+b Sud. etc.
Phot. σ 198 οἷς οἷς οἱ Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix z Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 253 ἄριστοι ἄρτοι Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc et Epit. Harp. et Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 300 σκέρβορε· λοίδορε σκέρβολλε· λοιδόρει Schleusner 1810 zpc Libell. p. 95
Phot. σ 324 τοῦτον τούτων Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc et Epit. Harp. et Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 346 -μίοις πολέμοις Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Tim. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 348 -ῆ- σκληφρόν David Ruhnken 1828 zpc Tim. p. 233
Phot. σ 367 ὡς τυχ- ᾧ στοιχοῦσιν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Σa Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 390 -εῖλον περιείλουν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σa+b Sud. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 441 σπαρνον sine acc. σπαρνόν L. Dindorf 1835 Hsch. cod. Marc. ThGL. vol. VII p. 556A
Phot. σ 489 -ει σημαίνοι Porson 1822 Sud. cod. A
Phot. σ 509 τῷ ληνῷ τῇ ληνῷ L. Dindorf 1835 AB ThGL. vol. VII p. 675A
Phot. σ 535 πικρ- πυκνοῖς Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Sud. codd. GVM Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 296
Phot. σ 551 -ιγμα στήριγγα Johann Alberti 1766 Poll. cod. C Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 1268, 30
Phot. σ 586 τὸν τῶν Porson 1822 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. σ 603 ὡς γρ- προσγράφουσιν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Harp. pl. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. σ 606 -ίδος στρατηγίας Johann Alberti 1766 Sud. codd. GMpc Hesych. Lex. vol. II p. 1276, 31
Phot. σ 628 -βηλος στρόβιλος Porson 1822 Hsch. σ 2012
Phot. σ 724 -φέρ- συμφύρεται Schleusner 1810 Σa+b Sud. Libell. p. 101
Phot. σ 724 -φέρ- συμφύρεται Porson 1822 Σa+b Sud.
Phot. σ 746 συνδεδεμένος συνδεσμούμενος Meineke 1857 Cyr. σ 310 Philol. 12 (1857) 623
Phot. σ 793 σύνθυμοι συνθυμεῖν Schleusner 1810 Hsch. σ 2629 Libell. p. 102
Phot. σ 799 ἔξωθεν ἐξ ἔθους Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Harp. pl. et Epit. Harp. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. σ 914 κ. κατὰ καὶ τὰ Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Sud. Et.Gen. AB Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. σ 918 -ρίβειν διατριβὴν Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Σa+b Sud. etc. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. σ 925 τοῦ τὸ Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix z etc. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. σ 931 πονή- ποιήματα Porson 1822 Sud. σ 868
Phot. τ 140 κατέ- ἀπέχοντες Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix zpc Sud. Et.Gen. AB Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 297
Phot. τ 200 καυ- αὐλίσκον Naber 1865 AB
Phot. τ 219 -γ- στραγγεύεσθαι David Ruhnken 1828 Phot. Amphil. cod. Γ Tim. p. 254
Phot. τ 271 ἐπέτος ἐπ ̓ ἔτος Porson 1822 Zavord. 95 (z)
Phot. τ 276 φράτερσεσιν Φράτερσιν Dindorf 1835 Zavord. 95 (z) ThGL. vol. VIII p.1036C
Phot. τ 464 οἷον οἱ P. P. Dobree n.d. Et.Gen. B et EM Advers. vol. III p. 53
Phot. τ 568 -ρ- Tυρρηνικὰ P. P. Dobree n.d. zpc Advers. vol. III p. 53
Phot. υ 28 παραρέη κτλ. παραρρέῃ O. Crusius 1910 zpc Paroemiographica p. 90
Phot. υ 47 ἐνόλωι ἐν λόγῳ Schleusner 1810 zpc Sud. Libell. p. 120
Phot. υ 137 μύ- μισθοὺς Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Zen. Ath. et vulg. Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 298
Phot. υ 163 ὑπ ̓ ἠοῖ ὑπηοίη Naber 1865 Hsch. υ 542
Phot. υ 164 ὑφ ̓ ἐφ ̓ Porson 1822 Sud. cod. A
Phot. υ 241 ὑπὸ ἀπὸ Konstantinos Kontos 1877 Sud. codd. GM Παρνασσός 1 (1877) 736
Phot. υ 299 ἐραντίθην ἐρραντίσθην Naber 1865 zpc
Phot. φ 29 τῆινεῶι ἐπὶ τῆς νεὼς Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix z Sud. Et.Gen. AB Eἰς μνήμην ̓Aμάντου p. 298
Phot. φ 69 ἀποστ- ἀπατήσας Dindorf 1835 Cyr. φ 28 ThGL. vol. VIII p.656D
Phot. φ 143 -θεῖν- φθῆναι Cobet 1858 Σa Sud. codd. AGFM etc. Mnem. 7 (1858) 478
Phot. φ 144 φθείσ- φθήσεται Cobet 1858 Σa+b Sud. etc. Mnem. 7 (1858) 478
Pi. I. 6.87a schol. -ειν/-ων συντέμνει Petros N. Papageorgiu 1880 codd.
Pi. N. 6.27 ἄντα σκοποῦ σκοποῦ ἄντα Giovanni Luigi Mingarelli pre-1772 P.Berol. inv. 16367
Pi. N. 6.51 -βὰς -βαὶς Turyn n.d. P.Oxy. LXXV 5043
Pi. N. 9.42 ἡ- ἁμέραις Triclinius n.d. P.Oxy. LXXV 5043
Pi. N. 10.42 θάλησεν Triclinius n.d. P.Oxy. LXXV 5043
Pi. N. 10.48 π. τε χειρῶν (τε) ποδῶν χειρῶν τε E. Schmid n.d. P.Oxy. LXXV 5043
Pi. N. 10.60 αἰχμᾷ ἀκμᾷ J. C. de Pauw 1747 P.Oxy. LXXV 5043
Pi. O. 1 schol. Inscr. a ογ΄ οϛ΄ Bergk 1878 P.Oxy. II 222 Poet. Lyr. i. p.4
Pi. O. 2.76 γᾶς μέγας J. C. de Pauw 1747 P.Oxy. XVII 2092
Pi. O. 6.77 ὄροις ὄρος Zacharias Callierges 1515 P.Oxy. XIII 1614
Pi. P. 3.166 schol. ἐν κῷ ἐν Ἴκῳ Jean Brodeau 1549 DEGQ Epigr. Gr. p. 372
Pi. P. 6.14 -οι/-ος τυπτόμενον Dawes n.d. P.Oxy. LXXV 5039
Pi. Pae. 9.4 ἰσχὺν πτανὸν (ἀν)δράσιν ἰσχύν τ'ἀνδράσι(ν) Blass n.d. P.Oxy. V 841
Pl. Chrm. 173b (μὴ) ὑγιέσιν η υ̣γιεϲ̣[ιν L. F. Heindorf 1802–10 P.Oxy. LXXVI 5082
Pl. Crit. 48e πείσαι κτλ. πείσας Philipp Buttmann 1830 Vat. gr. 225 (V)
Pl. Grg. 473b Polo ἴσως Socrati tribuunt Van Prinsterer BF
Pl. Grg. 486a διαπρέπ- διατρέπεις Grotius Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Grg. 498b -ον μόνοι R. B. Hirschig 1856 Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Grg. 514a θῶ- φῶμεν Madvig Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Grg. 520e -εύειν συμβουλεύσειν Cobet Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Grg. 522c ἐν ἓν Adamantios Korais Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Hp.Ma. 304a κνίσματα κνήσματά Cobet Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. La. 197e δὲ δὴ Martin Schanz 1883 P.Oxy. II 228
Pl. Lg. 832a om. Otto Apelt 1916 Laur. Plut. 80.17 (L)
Pl. Lg. 894c τήν τε τὴν δὲ Henri Estienne 1578 Ricc. 67
Pl. Men. 81b -ὰν ψυχὰς Böckh Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W) 'August Boeckh unterschrieb selbst mit »Böckh«, die Familie und die Fachtradition bevorzugen »Boeckh«.'
Pl. Men. 82c ἐν ἦν F. A. Wolf 1802 Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Men. 86a οὖν οὐ Gottfried Stallbaum 1836 Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Men. 95b ε. ἢ εἶναι καὶ F. A. Wolf 1802 Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Men. 96e -ειν διαφεύγει Madvig Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Men. 99a ἐπιγίγ. ἔτι γίγνεται Schleiermacher 1856
Pl. Men. 99d θεῖ- σεῖος Casaubon Aristipp.
Pl. Mx. 244d ο. πολλῶν οὐδὲ παλαιῶν Gottleber Vindob. 55. suppl. phil. gr. 39 (F)
Pl. Phd. 82e τῳ δεδέσθαι τοῦ δεδέσθαι L. F. Heindorf 1810 P.Lond.Lit. 145 (inv. 488)
Pl. Phdr. 228b πάνυ τις πάνυ τι Martin Schanz 1875 P.Oxy. VII 1016
Pl. Phdr. 229d δὲ δὴ J. C. Vollgraff 1909 Ath. 5.220F (Marc. 447) Mnem.
Pl. Phdr. 239a τῶν τοῖς L. F. Heindorf 1802 P.Oxy. VII 1017
Pl. Phdr. 251a μὴ δεδιείη μὴ ἐδεδίει Cobet 1858 P.Oxy. VII 1017 p. 467
Pl. Phdr. 251e ὠδίν- ὀδυνῶν Charles Badham 1851 Marc. gr. 186 Wadham 3rd class
Pl. Phdr. 257e γράφουσι γράψωσι L. F. Heindorf 1798 Herm. in Phdr. Spec. coni. p. 13
Pl. Phdr. 264a διανεῖν διανύειν Henri Estienne 1578 Bodl. Clark. 39 (b) m. rec.
Pl. Phdr. 274a οἷός (γε) οἷός τε L. F. Heindorf 1802 Paris. gr. 1813
Pl. Phlb. 26d -ων ἀπειργασμένην Henry Jackson 1897 Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W) Journ. of Phil.
Pl. Phlb. 33c -ψώ- ἐπισκεψόμεθα Bekker 1826 Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W)
Pl. Phlb. 47d γενο- γιγνομένη Charles Badham 1855–78 Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W)
Pl. Phlb. 51c μου που Charles Badham 1855–78 W2
Pl. Phlb. 52a -θεισῶν ΠΛΗΡΩΘΕΙΣΙΝ C. G. Schütz 1830 W2 p. 144
Pl. Phlb. 64e -πεφορη- ξυμπεφυρμένη K. J. Liebhold 1880 Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W) Fleck. Jahrb.
Pl. Prm. 145a κ. τοῦ ἓ. ὁ. κᾄν του ἓν ὁτιοῦν Schleiermacher 1805 Vindob. 21 (Y)
Pl. Prt. 356c ἴσαι αἱ ἴσαι L. F. Heindorf 1802–10 P.Oxy. XIII 1624
Pl. R. 547c τό [τω]ι Burnet n.d. P.Oxy. XV 1808
Pl. Smp. 202a καὶ del. Gottfried Stallbaum 1827 P.Oxy. VI 843
Pl. Smp. 206c τῷ del. Charles Badham 1866 P.Oxy. VI 843
Pl. Smp. 208b μετέχειν μετέχει Henri Estienne 1578 P.Oxy. VI 843
Pl. Smp. 209a κυεῖν τεκεῖν Arnold Hug 1876 P.Oxy. VI 843 '=γεννῆσαι zu 206B'
Pl. Smp. 209b ἐπιθυμεῖ επιθυμη Henri Estienne 1578 P.Oxy. V 843
Pl. Sph. 237d τοῦτο ῥ. τοῦτο τὸ ῥῆμα L. F. Heindorf 1809 Vindob. 21 (Y)
Pl. Tht. 152b αἰσθάνεσθαί ἐστιν αἰσθάνεταί Gottfried Faehse BKT II
Pl. Tht. 205e -θόμεθα πεισόμεθα Herbert Richards 1911 YW p. 177 ('if we are to follow')
Pl. Ti. 60d -μενῷ ἀπομονουμένω C. E. Ch. Schneider 1846 Vindob. 54. suppl. phil. gr. 7 (W)
Pl.Com. fr. 30 μόγις/μόσις μόλις Ottomar Bachmann 1878 Ar. Αν. 798 schol. Lh
Plb. 11.14.2 ἐμπειρίαν τὴν τῶν ἡγουμένων ἐ. Gronovius P.Ryl. 60
Plb. 11.14.3 προθεῖναι προσθ- Scaliger P.Ryl. 60
Plb. 11.15.5 ὡρακίτας θωρ- Fulvio Orsini 1582 P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95
Plb. 11.15.7 τέλος θέρος Causabon 1609 P.Ryl. 60
Plb. 11.16.1 ὑπάγειν ἐπάγ- Sixtus Arcerius 1613 P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95 ad Aelian. Tact. 32 p. 152
Plb. 11.16.2 πρὸς τ. τοὺς Johannes Schweighäuser 1795 P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95
Plb. 11.16.5 προειρημένον τὸ π. Causabon 1609 P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95
Plb. 11.16.6 τὴν δυσχρήστην τὸ -τον Causabon 1609 P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95
Plb. 11.16.6 διαβάλλει -βαλεῖ Scaliger P.Berol. inv. 9570 = APF 1:388–95
Plb. 11.16.7 ἐμπορεία ἐν πορείᾳ Johannes Schweighäuser 1795 P.Ryl. 60
Plb. 11.18.8 τῆς δεχομένης ταῖς δ᾽ ἐχομέναις Fulvio Orsini 1582 Tubing. Gr. Mb. 9
Plb. 11.23.2 -βαλο- ἐπιβαλλόντων Johannes Schweighäuser 1795 Paris. gr. 2967 (K)
Plb. 11.34.9 κ. τ. ἔ. π. κατὰ τὴν ἔντευξιν καὶ προστασίαν Fulvio Orsini 1582 Laur. Plut. 69.9 (G)
Plb. 11.42.7 ἅτε τὸ Leonhard Spengel Vat. gr. 73 (M)
Plb. 28.2.4 om. ϲυνεχωρηϲεν F. O. Hultsch 1889 P.Oxy. LXXXI 5267 ϲ]υνεχωρηϲ[ε
Plu. 21A ἦ/ἐῆ/εἴη ἴῃ Brunck 1786 Vat. Palat. gr. 178 (p)
Plu. 21B -οῖ φρονεῖ Cobet 1877 G1X1vZWCh Mnem.
Plu. 75B περιθεμένη περικει̣μ̣ενη F. C. Babbitt 1927 P.Oxy. LXXVIII 5153
Plu. 88D εἴπῃ σε εἴπῃς J. F. Boissonade 1872 vers. Syr. apud Hercher
Plu. 140B τὸ τοῦ Georgios Hatzidakis 1901 OJ2
Plu. 146D ἧς ἦν καὶ θυσία ἧ. ἦ. κ. ἡ θ. Reiske 1757 Patav. 560 + Palat. Heidelb. 153 (P) p.c.
Plu. 147C ἄ. τε ν. ἄχρι γε νῦν Reiske 1757 PQ p. 177 ('at hoc quidem temporis')
Plu. 149A μετὰ τίνας κατακείμεθα μ. τ. κ. δεῖ ζητεῖ Reiske 1757 Paris. gr. 1675 (B) 'Reiskes … der auch in dieser Schrift sich als der unvergleichliche zeigt' (Wilamowitz)
Plu. 149E χειπὸς˙ Ἐφ' ἃ μὲν Δ. χειπὸς, ἔφη˙ Ἃ μὲν Δ. Reiske 1757 PpcQhn2B
Plu. 154F β. μὲν καὶ β. μὲν γὰρ καὶ Reiske 1757 JB
Plu. 155A ε. χ. ἁ. εἶναι χρῆσθαι δ' ἁμάξῃ Reiske 1757 PQB 'non uti domo, sed uti carrho'
Plu. 155C καὶ π. καὶ παῖδας καὶ Reiske 1757 codd.
Plu. 155C ὑπαρχόντων -ῶν ο. ὑ. χρηστὸν οἶκον Reiske 1757 Paris. gr. 1672 (E)
Plu. 155D -ναι καταστῆσαι Reiske 1757 codd.
Plu. 156C ε. -ομεν εἰ νομίζοιμεν Reiske 1757 codd.
Plu. 156F μ. ἔχ- μετρητὸν ἐνέχει Reiske 1757 codd. 'infundebat'
Plu. 157A ἀ. εἴτε π. ἀλλ' ἐπεὶ πάλιν Reiske 1757 codd. praeter OnvΠ
Plu. 157B ὃ. οὑτωσί φασιν ὃν οὑτοσί φησιν Reiske 1757 codd. 'quem hic Æsopus ait'
Plu. 157D ἣν ἡδονὴν ἣν Reiske 1757 codd. praeter n2vΠ
Plu. 158D -ῇ αὐτῆς Paul Pétau 1778 E (teste Defradas) apud Reiske
Plu. 159 schol. ὅσοις δὲ/ὅσοι τε κτλ. ὅσοις τε Bergk 1841 Gac
Plu. 159A -ὸ αὐτὸν Reiske 1757 JOn
Plu. 159C τρυφ- τροφὴν Reiske 1757 codd. praeter vαAβγB
Plu. 159D δεῖ ἀεὶ Reiske 1757 codd.
Plu. 163E εὐπρ- εὐτρεπέστατον Reiske 1757 codd. praeter JΠ 'habillimum, maxime versatile, aptissimum'
Plu. 191F αὐτὸς αὕτη Hertlein P.Oxy. LXXVIII 5155
Plu. 323E προσχ- προχωροῦσαν Reiske 1757 ΦZ
Plu. 324C δ. -ο διὰ τοῦτον Reiske 1757 Ψ 'redit enim ad τὸν δαίμονα'
Plu. 325A τῷ τε γὰρ τῷ τε Reiske 1757 codd. praeter kJ2y2ΠεBRehd.
Plu. 325D καὶ τὴν καὶ τὴν νῦν Reiske 1757 Pg
Plu. 327C -ροῦσι νεωτερίζουσι Reiske 1757 Φ
Plu. 329B -ον χρώμενος … ἐπιμελούμενος … προσφερόμενος Reiske 1757 Φα2
Plu. 355F πανύγροις παρύγ- Samuel Squire 1744 vβ2
Plu. 359F τὸ ... τὸ τὸν ... τὸν Reiske 1757 Ricc. 45 (R)
Plu. 363F Σάι Σάει Georgios Hatzidakis 1901
Plu. 374B ὃ ἄπιστον ὁ Ἆπις. τὸν Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Ambros. 859 (α) m. sec. in marg.
Plu. 439B μ. δ' ἐ. μυρία ἐστίν Daniel Wyttenbach 1796 Ambros. 881 (J) m. pr.
Plu. 441A ἐν δὲ διαιρετέοις ἐ. δ. αἱρ- Daniel Wyttenbach 1796 Gt2
Plu. 445B ὃ … ὅ ᾧ … ᾧ Daniel Wyttenbach 1796 codd. praeter cΠtX2
Plu. 446B -ρει ὑποσύρεται Reiske 1757 GJc
Plu. 446E ὑπὸ πληγῆς κυνὸς ἢ γαλῆς ὑ. π. κύνες ἢ γαλαῖ Gregorios Bernardakis 1891 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 446E στερρό- ἑτερότητος Daniel Wyttenbach 1796 G1
Plu. 447A -ες συνορῶντας Giannozzo Manetti 1796 O2J1α1A1 apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 447E διὰ λ. λόγων Gregorios Bernardakis 1891 G1Zpc
Plu. 448C παθῶν πιθανῶν Daniel Wyttenbach 1796 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 450A λήξ- δήξεις Jacques Amyot 1572 Gt2
Plu. 450A λόγ- ἀλόγῳ C.-G. de Méziriac 1796 Gt2 apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 450A ὑγεί- ὑγίεια Gregorios Bernardakis 1891 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 451B μαθηματικοῦ παθητικοῦ μὴ Reiske 1757 codd.
Plu. 451F νικῶν/οἶκον ἠθικὸν Joachim Camerarius 1796 Barb. 182 (G) apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 452A -ῶντι οἰδοῦντι Gregorios Bernardakis 1891 J1cO2
Plu. 455E τὴν -αν τῆς ἰατρείας Reiske 1757 GJ1KX3
Plu. 456A σχολὴν σχέδην Willem Canter 1571 GS2
Plu. 456B κᾷθ' ὅπλα καὶ θὦπλα Meineke 1867 Paris. gr. 1955 (C) p. 295
Plu. 457D ἡ μὲν ἡ γὰρ Reiske 1757
Plu. 458A -ῃ στρατιώτην Carl Stegmann 1886 codd. praeter NΠ p. 23
Plu. 460C κολάζοντας κ. κολάσαντας δὲ Reiske 1757 vers. Syr.
Plu. 460E ἢ πλημμέλειαν del. Carl Stegmann 1886 a et Syr.
Plu. 465E παρετ- παρτίθει Cobet 1878 Vindob. 129 (W) p. 527
Plu. 466B προσελθ- προσδιελθών Reiske 1757 WX 'praeterea enarrans'
Plu. 466D μεταποι- ποιεῖ Carl Stegmann 1886 Stob.
Plu. 467E ἐ. ε. μ. ἐβούλου μᾶλλον εἶναι G. E. Benseler 1841 codd. praeter Π
Plu. 468A ἀποτεύγματα ἀτυχήματα ἀ. καὶ ἀ. Carl Stegmann 1886 Dh
Plu. 468D κ. ἤδη κακίαν ἧ δεῖ C.-G. de Méziriac 1796 Δ apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 469F δόξαν ἐ. π. -ην δ. ἐν πόλει τηλικαύτῃ Reiske 1757 JMNVΘ 'in urbe tanta'
Plu. 474B Θ. τ. Δειν- τ. Θόωσά τε Δηναίη τε Bentley 1691 Δ 'ut contraria inter se comparentur'
Plu. 475A -ον ἐκεῖνο Reiske 1757 Θ
Plu. 475E θ. καὶ π. θαρραλέους πρὸς Madvig 1871 Δ p. 642
Plu. 477A τῶν ἄ. τῶνδ᾽ ἄλλος Otto Schneider 1873 Teles
Plu. 483C ἑτέρων ἑτέρως ἑταίρ- ἑ. Reiske 1757 GpcCpcJK
Plu. 483E -λλ- ὑπερβαλόμενοι Edward Capps 1939 LC1 apud Helmbold
Plu. 483E -ὴν τιμῇ Herbert Richards 1915 Barb. 182 (G) CR ('by the price')
Plu. 483E ἀποδεδωκ- ἀπολωλεκότες Cobet 1858 C2 p. 195 ('miror neminem vidisse emendandum esse')
Plu. 484D τ. ἀ. … -ου τοῖς ἀδελφοῖς … ἐκείνων Henrik van Herwerden 1909 Θ Mnem.
Plu. 486A -τερον ῥωμαλεώτατον Reiske 1757
Plu. 486E φαίη τις φ. τ. ἂν Reiske 1757 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 490E -ήλους ἄλλους Reiske 1757 Δ
Plu. 500C -ῇ αὐτῆς Reiske 1757 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 500C ἄφ- ἄσφυκτον Salmasius cod. unus
Plu. 501B ἐπὶ ἐπεὶ Wilhelm Xylander 1592 X2S II p. 659
Plu. 511D εἴποι ἐπίοι Carl Stegmann 1886 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 512B προδρ- προσδραμόντα Reiske 1757 ΓS
Plu. 512F ἐξαίρεσθ- ἐξερᾶσθαι Adolph Emperius 1847 Barb. 182 (G)
Plu. 514B τῷ σ. τὸ σιωπῆσαι Adolph Emperius 1847 LCGΔS
Plu. 514E -οντα πιέζον Reiske 1757 Barb. 182 (G) 'ut ad βάρος redeat'
Plu. 519A νῦν π. πολυπραγμονῶν νῦν Adolph Emperius 1847 XυJK
Plu. 520F τέρμ- πέλματα Adolph Emperius 1847 J1
Plu. 523A -κουσ- Συρακοσίοις Gregorios Bernardakis 1891 G1
Plu. 525C διαπεπραγμένου -πεπραμ- Reiske 1757 hi 'divenditi'
Plu. 529D -ειν βλάπτον Reiske 1757 GslD
Plu. 530B ἐ. δὴ ἐῶ δὲ Adolph Emperius 1847 Mazarin. 4458 (R) a.c.
Plu. 533E ἑ. ὁρᾷ ἑτέρους ὅρα Madvig 1871 Dpc 'alios circumspice'
Plu. 547D ὅπου κόλακι καὶ παρασίτῳ ὅ. καὶ κ. καὶ π. Reiske 1757 Paris. gr. 1956 (D)
Plu. 547F τι -άλα τι μέγα Reiske 1757 Marc. 511 (Z)
Plu. 552D τι -οῖ κύοι W. R. Paton 1929 Escor. X-I-13 (ζ)
Plu. 560A ἀνέστρε- ἐνέτρεψε Reiske 1757 Laur. Plut. 56.5 (l) m. sec.
Plu. 560D ἄ. τ. ἄχρι δὲ τοῦ C.-G. de Méziriac 1828 Vat. gr. 264 (S) m. pr.
Plu. 566E φορᾷ φθορὰν Reiske 1777 l2
Plu. 574A τὰ πρὸς τοῦ Π. τὰ τοῦ Πλάτωνος Daniel Wyttenbach 1828 Ambros. E 10 sup. (m)
Plu. 614B ἀποερέ- ἀποβρέγμασι Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Vindob. 148 (T) m. post.
Plu. 644C κ. ἥκει κἂν ἥκῃ Theodor Doehner 1864 g𝔓 p. 81
Plu. 653A ἰάσασθ- ἰᾶσθαι Reiske 1757 Tpc
Plu. 659D δ., ο. -ος δύναμιν, οὐκ ἄδηλον Turnebus 1599 Palat. 170 (g)
Plu. 661D κατάθεσις συγκ- Turnebus 1599 PSI XVI 1608
Plu. 662A -λειφ- μυραλοιφίαν Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Paris. gr. 1672 (E)
Plu. 720A τὸ μὲν … τὸ δὲ τῷ μὲν … τῷ δ' Niccolò Leonico Tomeo 1572 Tpc apud Stephanum
Plu. 721B καινῶι κενῷ Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Vindob. 148 (T) m. post.
Plu. 722B ἦς τὰ θέρος ᾖ σταθερός Niccolò Leonico Tomeo 1572 g (teste Wyttenbach) apud Stephanum
Plu. 728B φαίνεσθαι Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Tpc
Plu. 730B ληϊβότειρ- ληιβότειραν Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Tpc
Plu. 734B -οντες εἰσφέρουσαι Niccolò Leonico Tomeo 1572 g (teste Wyttenbach) apud Stephanum
Plu. 777A -τείας στρατιᾶς Adamantios Korais 1824 Vat. gr. 1009 (y)
Plu. 777A κάτ- βάτων Daniel Wyttenbach 1797
Plu. 778C ἥδιον ἦν ἥδιον Reiske 1757 Vat. gr. 1009 (y)
Plu. 778D τῷ π. ε. τῷ εὖ πάσχειν G. E. Benseler 1841 Vat. gr. 1009 (y) p. 508
Plu. 779A ὁ τ. κ. τὴν λύραν ὁ ταύτην κτησάμενος Henrik van Herwerden 1877 Vat. gr. 1009 (y) Plu. et Luc. p. 31
Plu. 779F φαίνεσθ- φανεῖσθαι Madvig 1871 Stob. A2
Plu. 782A δὲ ὡς δέον Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Vat. gr. 1009 (y)
Plu. 782A δέων δέω Madvig 1871 Ambros. 528 (O) m. sec. in marg.
Plu. 785A διδασκαλίῃ δ. δὲ Turnebus 1599 Jy
Plu. 787A ἀ. τ. τ. γ. γενομένην ἀπὸ τῶν τυχόντων Daniel Wyttenbach 1797 Vat. gr. 1009 (y)
Plu. 787C διὰ τὸ φλέγ- διαφλέγεσθαι Madvig 1871 Vat. gr. 1009 (y)
Plu. 794D -ην ἡττημένων Daniel Wyttenbach 1830 X1y
Plu. 796A -είας παιδιὰς Wilhelm Xylander 1570 J1
Plu. 798E -τρέφ- ἀνατρέπεται Hadrianus Junius 1830 Rypcβ2 apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 806E ἐξέπτη/γὰρ ἐ. παρεξέπτη Gregorios Bernardakis 1893 d1zυ2
Plu. 808B ἀναφέρει ἀνέφερε Reiske 1757 ΦJΣ
Plu. 829C μηδέ τ' ὄντος μηδ' ἔτ' ὄντος Reiske 1757 Harl. 5612 (h)
Plu. 829D -ας πλεονεξίαν Reiske 1757 Xpcz
Plu. 841D -κίῳ Λυκείῳ Wilhelm Xylander 1574 Paris. gr. 1672 (E)
Plu. 956D βλέπ- βλίττομεν Daniel Wyttenbach 1797 G4
Plu. 957A ὁ τ. θ. τῆς θαλάσσης Wilhelm Xylander 1797 ba (Θ) apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 960D οὕτως οὗτος C.-G. de Méziriac 1797 Palat. 170 (g) apud Wyttenbach
Plu. 960D ἀνδρεί- ἀνανδρ(ε)ίαν C.-G. de Méziriac 1800 Ambros. 881 (J) apud Wyttenbach; m. sec.
Plu. 970F -ῷ ταπεινῶν Reiske 1757 Paris. gr. 1957 (F)
Plu. 979D ἡ τῆς λ. περίδραξις ἡ τοῦ λίθου π. Reiske 1757 Athous 268 (Q)
Plu. 982C περὶ παρὰ Gregorios Bernardakis 1895 Laur. Plut. 56.4 (i)
Plu. 986E πρὸς ὑμᾶς πρόθυμος Reiske 1757 Patav. 560 + Palat. Heidelb. 153 (P) m. sec.
Plu. 986F ἀπ' αὐτῆς ἀφ' αὑτῆς Gregorios Bernardakis 1895 Paris. gr. 1675 (B)
Plu. 989D κτημάτων ἄ. κτῆμα τῶν ἄλλων Reiske 1757 codd. praeter P1k2ΠZυ
Plu. 989E -ας τρρείαις Reiske 1757 codd. praeter QJΠZBihk
Plu. 990D Ἀργαῖον Ἄργυννον Paulus Leopardus 1568 Paris. gr. 2955 p. 94; marg.
Plu. 991B ἀπ- ἐπαντλούμενα Daniel Wyttenbach 1800 Paris. gr. 1957 (F)
Plu. 996E ἐκτέμν- ἐκτεμόντας Henrik van Herwerden 1877 Palat. 170 (g) Plu. et Luc. p. 38
Plu. 1000A λ. μ. μὲν λαβεῖν Adolph Emperius 1847 Paris. gr. 1675 (B) p. 340
Plu. 1007F ἐν μὲν τ. μὲν ἐν τοῖς Richard Heinze 1892 XJ1E p. 165
Plu. 1013B -τικῆς νοητῆς Daniel Wyttenbach 1800 Laur. Ashb. 1444 (f)
Plu. 1017B ὁμοίως ὅμως Daniel Wyttenbach 1800 Paris. gr. 1042 (m)
Plu. 1018B ἐφ' ἀφ' Wilhelm Xylander 1592 Paris. gr. 1675 (B)
Plu. 1022D σχέσ- σχίσει Turnebus 1599 Paris. gr. 1042 (m)
Plu. 1023E λέγειν Daniel Wyttenbach 1800 Laur. Plut. 70.5 (e)
Plu. 1087B ψυχῆς ἀναπεμπομένης ψ. -η Reiske 1757 Paris. gr. 1671 (A) m. ter.
Plu. 1088C οὐκ ἐν ἐν Jacques Amyot 1572 Vat. gr. 139 (γ) a.c.
Plu. 1089D εὐπάθ- εὐστάθειαν Wilhelm Xylander 1592 Escor. R-I-5 (K) II p. 618
Plu. 1133B -ωνα φιλάμμονα Georgios Hatzidakis 1901 J s
Plu. 1135D τ. πρῶτον ε. τῶν πρώτων εὑρόντων Gregorios Bernardakis 1895 e Reg. sac
Plu. Caes. 45.8 ταιc αις Moïse Du Soul 1729 P.Oxy. LXXXI 5270
Plu. Caes. 45.8 τοῖς del. Adolph Emperius 1935 P.Oxy. LXXXI 5270 apud Ziegler
Plu. Cat.Ma. 23.5 κ. τοῖς π. καὶ πρὸς Reiske 1775 Paris. gr. 1672 (B)
Plu. Cim. 16.6 -ευε ἐκέλευσε G. H. Schaefer 1830 Paris. gr. 1673 (C)
Plu. Cim. 18.8 ἀνάγοντ- ἀναγαγόντες G. H. Schaefer 1830 Paris. gr. 1673 (C)
Plu. Comp. Lyc. Num. 3.5 ἀν- συνερραμμέναι Henrik van Herwerden 1887 S1 Lucubr. p. 83
Plu. Flam. 14.1 -λλίω καλὴν G. H. Schaefer 1830 Marc. 386 (K) 'Vellem liber daret positivum.'
Poll. 10.63 κατάχυτλον/-χύτου -χύτλου Salmasius s.xvii in. Laur. 56.1 (L)
Poll. 10.74 δανείζειν διανίζειν Henrik van Herwerden 1882 Paris. gr. 2646 (F) Mnem.
Polyzel. fr. 2 ἔν- εὔυδρον Meineke 1839–57 Phot. ε 986
Porph. Antr. 8 ἔρχετ᾽ ἔρχεταί τ᾽ Rudolf Hercher 1858 Vat. gr. 325 (V)
Priscian. Inst. 18.197 ὅσοι γὰρ/θεοῖς ἄρ' θεοὶ γὰρ Madvig 1846 VR Philol. 1 (1846) 672
ProdRhod 1.38 ξυνεδέθ- ξυνεσχέθησαν Isidor Hilberg 1877 UL
Ps.-Phoc. 23 ἔλεον/-ους ἐλέου Bergk 1866 Vat. gr. 1388 (P)
Ps.-Phoc. 150 χεῖρα χειρὶ Bergk 1843 Laur. Plut. 31.20 (L)
Ptol. Geog. 2.7.11 μδ′ Lδ″/μδ′ δ″ με′ δ″ Karl Grashof 1839 Venet. 383 (P)
Ptol. Geog. 2.8.11 κβ′/κδ′ κ′ δ″ Karl Grashof 1839 S. Gregorii in monte Cœlio (Π)
Ptol. Geog. 2.11.3 μϛ′ γ″ μϛ′ Lγ″ Karl Grashof 1839 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 2.11.10 Λοῦτοι ο. Β. et sim. Λοῦγοι οἱ Βοῦροι F. W. Wilberg 1839 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 2.13.3 με′ δ″ μϛ′ δ″ F. W. Wilberg 1839 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 2.16.5 ὑπὲρ δὲ τ. Ν. ὑπὸ δὲ τούτους Ναρήνσιοι Wilberg-Grashof 1839 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 3.1.6 Λ. … μα′ L″ Λίτερνον … μα′ ϛ″ F. W. Wilberg 1842 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 3.1.6 Κ. … μα′ L″ Κοῦμαι … μα′ ϛ″ F. W. Wilberg 1842 XΞΦ1
Ptol. Geog. 3.1.10 μβ′ L″ μα′ L″ Karl Grashof 1842 cod. Barocc.
Ptol. Geog. 3.1.43 Λ. … μγ′ γ″/μγ′ L″ Λούκα … μγ′ ϛ″ Karl Grashof 1842 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 3.1.47 ult. μβ′ L″ μβ′ ϛ″ Karl Grashof 1842
Ptol. Geog. 3.3.4 ult. λθ′ L″ λθ′ ϛ″ Karl Grashof 1842 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 3.3.7 Γ. ν. … λζ′ γ″ Γουρουλὶς νέα … λζ′ Lγ″ Karl Grashof 1842 cod. Barocc.
Ptol. Geog. 3.9.4 Ο. … μβ′ L″ Οὐενδενίς … μβ′ Lγ″ F. W. Wilberg 1842 Laur. Plut. 28.38 (B) m. sec.
Ptol. Geog. 3.12.13 ult. να′ L″ να′ ϛ″ Karl Grashof 1842 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 3.12.16 ult. λη′ γ″/λη′ L″ λη′ γο″ F. W. Wilberg 1842 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 4.1.4 τοῖς ἐ. τῆς ἐντὸς Karl Grashof 1843 SXΩ
Ptol. Geog. 4.1.7 Πισκίανα/Πτισκιάνα Πισκιάνα Karl Grashof 1843 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 4.2.7 Σίτιφα/Σίτικι Σίτιφι F. W. Wilberg 1843 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 4.3.2 Μισσούα/Μίσουρα Μισούα F. W. Wilberg 1843 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 4.6.8 κ′ δ″ κδ′ Karl Grashof 1843 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 4.7.10 Φάζακαν/Ἀζανίαν Φαζανίαν Karl Grashof 1843 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 5.1.3 Ὑππ- Ὑπίου F. W. Wilberg 1844 UKV
Ptol. Geog. 5.2.6 ult. λζ′ δ″ λζ′ Lδ″ Karl Grashof 1844 codd. prim.
Ptol. Geog. 5.2.14 Σ. … λη′ δ″ Σάρδεις … λη′ Lδ″ Karl Grashof 1844 codd. prim.
Ptol. Geog. 5.2.15 Ἴ. νη′ Ἴδυμος νθ′ Karl Grashof 1844 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 5.4.5 Τολιστοβόγ-/Τολιβωστοί Τολιστοβῶγοι F. W. Wilberg 1844 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 5.4.6 ult. μ′ δ″ μ′ Lδ″ Karl Grashof 1844 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Ptol. Geog. 5.6.16 ult. ξδ′ ϛ″/ξδ′ Lϛ″ ξδ′ Lγ″ Karl Grashof 1844 Vat. gr. 191 (X)
Q.S. 1.33 om. ἕποντο Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.71 πόλ- πτόλεμον Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.77 ἠὲ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.143 -είας χρυσέας Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.169 -υίαισιν ἁρπυίῃσι(ν) Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R) Ἀρπυίῃσι?
Q.S. 1.192 πολλὰ κακὰ κακὰ πολλὰ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Lpr
Q.S. 1.205 -θε ἀπάνευθεν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.227 μολίωνά τε μολίονα Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 1.261 -οις ὤμους Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 UQ
Q.S. 1.282 -αλίην Μυκάλην Scaliger n.d. MR
Q.S. 1.333 ἔναντι ἐναντία Scaliger n.d. Y ἠριάασθαι
Q.S. 1.345 θε- θοοῖς Scaliger n.d. YUQ
Q.S. 1.406 φρεσὶ μεμαυῖα φρεσὶν ἐμμεμαυῖα Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 1.406 σιφόνην τισιφόνην Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.457 πέλ- πένονται Hermann Köchly 1850 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 1.469 πολ- πτολέμοιο Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.536 δὲ καὶ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.540 om. λυγρὴ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.541 om. ἔχουσα Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.551 φρεσὶ χερσὶ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Nr
Q.S. 1.552 -ροις ἀμφοτέροισιν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.558 ἵκεσθ ̓ ἵκεσθε Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R) ἱκέσθε?
Q.S. 1.592 κρατερῇ κραταιῇ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 1.630 εἴδοντο ἐσίδοντο J. C. de Pauw 1734 Rsl
Q.S. 1.637 -υγμένοι τετρυμένοι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II E 24 (L)
Q.S. 1.711 διὸς Ζηνὸς Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.723 om. Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 1.779 ἐριδαί- ἐριδμαίνειν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.804 πὰρ κ. παρκατέθαψαν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.806 ἀμφὶ σφὶ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 1.827 σκίδν- ἐκίδνατο Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.1 -χεόντων ὑπερηχηέντων Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Cantab. Corp. Chr. coll. 81 (C)
Q.S. 2.30 πω που Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.34 νυ ἦ νύ οἱ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.51 μὴ δέ τι πάτρην μήδ’ ἐπὶ πάτρης Scaliger n.d. Marc. gr. Z 456 (V)
Q.S. 2.71 πάντων Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.115 μητρὸς μητέρος Scaliger n.d. BslR
Q.S. 2.130 ἅπαντας ἅμα πάντας Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.154 μάχεσθ- μαχέσασθαι Scaliger n.d. Rpc
Q.S. 2.157 θέλ- ἐθέλεις Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Y
Q.S. 2.168 -έμω πολέων Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.175 μηδὲν μηδὲ Scaliger n.d. Y μὴ δὲ Y
Q.S. 2.299 -τε βεβαῶτα Hermann Köchly 1850 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 2.314 -γου μόθου Hermann Köchly 1850 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.331 διήρη- δίηται Scaliger n.d. YHc
Q.S. 2.373 ἰλη- ἰλαδὸν Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Y
Q.S. 2.408 ὃς Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.408 om. περ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 BR
Q.S. 2.426 μεθ- καθημένη Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Marc. gr. Z 456 (V)
Q.S. 2.436 -ρηΐδ- Νηρεΐδας Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.439 δὴ μαί- δειμαίνεσκε Scaliger n.d. YUQ
Q.S. 2.441 -που Οὐλύμποιο Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.464 om. δὲ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.495 ὑπ- ἐπέβραχεν Franz Spitzner 1839 Neap. gr. II E 24 (L) Pforte
Q.S. 2.509 δ. δ ̓ ἄρ’ δοιαὶ ἄρ’ Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.535 τρε- χρεμέθοντες Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.545 -χε βράχεν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.562 -τώδης αἱματόεις Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.566 τυπο- πυθομένους Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.573 ὑπ ̓ ἠερίοιο φέρεσθαι ὑπηέριοι φορέεσθαι Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.595 δυώδεκα δυοκαίδεκα Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 2.609 -ον φίλε Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 2.658 -ουσ' εἰσανόρουσεν Scaliger n.d. CpcB
Q.S. 2.664 ἐέργει ἔχει Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.72 μοι με Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.89 ὂν ἰὸν Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.94 διάνδιχα διὰ δ ̓ ἄνδιχα Eduard Gerhard 1816 Lsl
Q.S. 3.101 -ύμενος δαινυμένοις Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.110 -τεροῖο κραταιοῦ Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 3.129 ἀμείβ- ἀπαμείβετο Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.154 κέασε -σσε Constantine Lascaris 1496 LslR
Q.S. 3.155 ἐρύσ- ἐρείσας Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Brux. gr. 11.400 (B)
Q.S. 3.165 ἐπέτον- ἐφέβοντο Scaliger n.d. Marc. gr. Z 456 (V)
Q.S. 3.213 -ἐβασαν ἀμφέβαν Scaliger n.d. LR
Q.S. 3.222 -έωνται ποτέονται Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.234 ἀντι ἀμασικ- ἀντία Μασσικύτοιο Scaliger n.d. MHcR
Q.S. 3.234 -όνης Χελιδονίης Scaliger n.d. YHc
Q.S. 3.259 -ιν δωτίνῃσι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Y
Q.S. 3.264 -νοῖσιν οὐτιδανῇσιν Scaliger n.d. MDHc
Q.S. 3.266 ἐρυ- ἐρεμνάς Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 3.275 ἀχιλῆος Ἀχιλλέος Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.297 φοβέοντο φέβοντο J. C. de Pauw 1734 Neap. gr. II E 24 (L)
Q.S. 3.299 μαίναλον μαινάλου Scaliger n.d. Y Μαίναλου Scal.?
Q.S. 3.302 -μοῦ ποταμοῖο Scaliger n.d. LR
Q.S. 3.333 κρατός κράατος Scaliger n.d. LslR
Q.S. 3.398 ἀχθ- ἐχθóμενον Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.419 θεοτεύκτ- θεοκτήτοισι Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.421 -αχέι πολυαχθέι Scaliger n.d. YHc
Q.S. 3.437 ἔκπροθεν ἔμποθεν Scaliger n.d. Y ἔκποθεν Y
Q.S. 3.467 ἀγαυούς ἀγανούς Scaliger n.d. YDUQ
Q.S. 3.473 δέ μοι δ ̓ ἐμοῖσι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Lpc
Q.S. 3.474 χείρεσι χείλεσι Scaliger n.d. YHc
Q.S. 3.495 -νοιο καταφθιμένου Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 3.496 -νέεσσιν δυσμενέσιν Scaliger n.d. YHc
Q.S. 3.499 τοι τι Hermann Köchly 1850 Lpr
Q.S. 3.499 -οις λόγοισι Scaliger n.d. YC
Q.S. 3.501 ὡς ὃς Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.527 -τες … λέοντος θέντας … λέβητας Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.531 -τες πάντα Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.582 ὀρινομένοιο ὀ. γόοιο Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 3.610 εὐρέ- εὐρυρέεθρος Scaliger n.d. PR
Q.S. 3.621 μοι με Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 3.710 πυρὶ πυρῇ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 3.714 om. ὁμῶς Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 3.783 om. δέ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 4.39 ἐγὼ ἔτι ἔτ ̓ ἐγὼ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.65 -σι δόρ- νηυσὶν ἐδόρπεον Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.98 εἰ ἔτι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.128 τοὔνεκ ̓ τοὔνεκεν Scaliger n.d. PL
Q.S. 4.140 εἰς ἐς Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 4.144 -λέος Νηλῆος Scaliger n.d. Rpc
Q.S. 4.144 ἠὺς ἐὺς Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.154 ἠδ ̓ ἰδ’ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.191 ἅμ ̓ αὐτῆ ὅσαι ὅσσαι ἅμ’ αὐτῆ Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 4.193 -του ὠκυτάτοιο Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.297 ἀέθλων ἄεθλον Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Scorial. Σ II 6
Q.S. 4.400 om. τὸ C. L. Struve 1854 Lsl
Q.S. 4.429 μ. θ ̓ ὑπ ̓ εἴ. ἑρ. μ. ἑρσήεντος θ ̓ ὑπ ̓ εἴαρος Constantine Lascaris 1464–5 UQ
Q.S. 4.465 ἐφάλματος ἐφ ̓ ἅλματι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Rpc
Q.S. 4.469 χείρεσ ̓ χερσὶν Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 4.537 om. δρόμου Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 4.558 om. ἐκέκλετο Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 5.52 -ντες πάντῃ Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 5.63 ἐφέσπ- ἐφέποντο Constantine Lascaris 1496 PR
Q.S. 5.120 -έου Ἑκτορέοιο Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 5.126 -χη τεύχε ̓ Hermann Köchly 1850 Neap. gr. II E 24 (L)
Q.S. 5.126 ἄρτια ἄρμενα Heyne 1807 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R) apud Tychsen
Q.S. 5.152 πείθ- πίθεσθε Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 5.170 δηιό- δηριόωνται Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 5.190 ἀμφὶ μέμηλε/ἀμφικάμηλε ἀμφιμέμηλε Constantine Lascaris 1496 Hc
Q.S. 5.190 σοι … θάρσος σοὶ … θράσος Scaliger n.d. Marc. gr. Z 456 (V)
Q.S. 5.217 δείδιες περιδείδιες Scaliger n.d. LslR
Q.S. 5.229 -οτε ἐριδμαίνοντε Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 5.263 τε δὲ Scaliger n.d. R et Bruxell. 2946–50
Q.S. 5.287 ἐγχείην Constantine Lascaris 1496 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 5.354 ἔντεσι ἔντεσιν Scaliger n.d. Marc. gr. Z 456 (V)
Q.S. 5.422 ἀασσάμεθα ἀασάμεσθα Scaliger n.d. HcLR
Q.S. 5.439 ἀρνεῖο ἀρνειοῖο Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 5.446 τοκῆες τοκέες Scaliger n.d. LprR
Q.S. 5.536 χεῖρ- κῆρες Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 6.31 -μου πολέμοιο Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 6.79 υἱὸν ἰόντε Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 PNr
Q.S. 6.150 ὡς ὣς Hermann Köchly 1850 DU
Q.S. 6.181 μετὰ κλειτῶν μετ’ ἀγακλυτῶν Scaliger n.d. Hc
Q.S. 6.391 μηδέ τ’ μήδετ’ Scaliger n.d. NrHc
Q.S. 6.411 μιν οἱ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 6.431 om. γε Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 6.466 ἔλασος ἔλαιον Constantine Lascaris 1496 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 6.617 ἀκτ- εὐκτέανον Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P) ἐϋκ- P
Q.S. 6.644 κε(ν) κε δὴ J. C. de Pauw 1734 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 7.15 τυκτὰ πυκνὰ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Lpr
Q.S. 7.16 σῆμ ̓ ἐβάλοντο σῆμα βάλ- Hermann Köchly 1850 Uac
Q.S. 7.61 -τῆρα ἰητήρια Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 7.69 -ντες ἐκτελέσαντας Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Bruxell. 2946
Q.S. 7.206 δῖοι Διὶ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.224 -νοιο ξείνοισι(ν) T. C. Tychsen 1807 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 7.227 om. alterum καὶ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Lsl
Q.S. 7.242 -τον ἐπήρατος T. C. Tychsen 1807 Lsl
Q.S. 7.262 σοι σοὶ Hermann Köchly 1850 Neap. gr. II F 11 (N)
Q.S. 7.306 -φέρονται συμφορέονται Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II E 24 (L)
Q.S. 7.321 om. χῶρον Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.397 om. δὴ Scaliger n.d. Y
Q.S. 7.407 om. αἶψα Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.434 om. ἑῷ Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.509 -σι ἀμύνουσιν Constantine Lascaris 1496 BLpcRsl
Q.S. 7.521 ὑπο- ὕπο T. C. Tychsen 1807 Scorial. Σ II 8 (E)
Q.S. 7.534 μενεπτ- Νεοπτόλεμον Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 7.548 οἳ οἱ Constantine Lascaris 1496 Brux. gr. 11.400 (B)
Q.S. 7.550 om. post τρομέουσι dist. Albert Zimmermann 1891 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.572 οὐδὲ οἳ δὲ Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 7.625 -λκέος δυσαλγέος J. C. de Pauw 1734 Brux. gr. 11.400 (B)
Q.S. 8.45 τε καὶ καὶ T. C. Tychsen 1807 Urb. gr. 147 (U)
Q.S. 8.57 ὑπεχρεμέτιζον ἐπ- Hermann Köchly 1850 Brux. gr. 11.400 (B)
Q.S. 8.72 συνέφεας σὺν νέφεα Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 8.88 δάμνατ ̓ δάμνατο δ ̓ Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 8.438–9 habent del. Scaliger n.d. Ambros. D 528 inf. (D)
Q.S. 8.486 -χε ̓ ἔθεντο τεύχεα θέντο Hermann Köchly 1850 Brux. gr. 11.400 (B)
Q.S. 9.56 ἴδ- εἶδον Constantine Lascaris 1496 BL
Q.S. 9.288 ἀνὴρ ἄρης Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 9.368 ἀφίκεται -κετο Arthur Platt 1901 Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 9.449 //// έσκον ἄγεσκον Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 9.499 πᾶσαν τ ̓ πᾶσαν Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 LR
Q.S. 9.519 ἐμοῖο ἐμεῖο Scaliger n.d. VNR
Q.S. 10.109 -τῆρα ἰητήρια Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 10.194 παύσοιτο πεπότητο Scaliger n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P)
Q.S. 10.481 Οἰνώνην … βελέεσσιν Εὐάδνην ... μελέεσσιν Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Cpc
Q.S. 11.194 -τῆρα ἰητήρια Scaliger n.d. PHc
Q.S. 13.26 ἂν φυτὰ ἂμ φατὰ Scaliger n.d. VLmgRpc
Q.S. 13.236 ὄμβριμον ἆορ n.d. Neap. gr. II F 10 (P) ?
Q.S. 13.462 ΛΕΙΠΕΙ Scaliger n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 5 (R)
Q.S. 14.36 περιτρ- περιγρύζουσι Scaliger n.d. Hc
Q.S. 14.60 ἐσβολ ῇσι ἐπεσβολίῃσι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 PRpc
Q.S. 14.205 ὅτε ὅτι Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 PHc ὄτι Scal.?
Q.S. 14.582 ἐγκεφάλοιο Ἐγκελάδοιο Lorenz Rhodomann 1604 Hc
S.E. Math. 1.6 μάχη καὶ μάχης R. G. Bury 1949 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 1.34 τ. τε τεχνίτης δὲ Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 5.50 ἐπαναγοραὶ αἱ ἐ. Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 9.32 (S1)
S.E. Math. 7.125 ἐφημέροι- ἐφημέριοισιν Henri Estienne 1562 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 7.300 οὐκ ἀντιλαμβ- οὐ καταλαμβάνονται Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 7.307 καὶ ναί J. A. Fabricius 1718 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.75 κ. τῆς τοῦ καὶ τοῦ Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.142 βεβ- ἀβεβαίου J. A. Fabricius 1718 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.146 -ῶς φυσικοῖς Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.149 deest οὔτε τὰ ἐναργῆ Gentien Hervet 1569 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.149 ἀλλὰ τὰ καὶ τὰ C. L. Kayser 1850 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N) RhM
S.E. Math. 8.241 φασίν πᾶσι Gentien Hervet 1569 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.306 deest εἶναι Gentien Hervet 1569 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 8.309 ὄντ- νοητῶν Gentien Hervet 1569 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 9.27 -αντῶν κατάγων Gentien Hervet 1569 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N) 'qui deducit'
S.E. Math. 9.31 διαμφοδοκ- διαμφοδοῦντες J. A. Fabricius 1718 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 9.168 εἰ δὲ οὐδὲ Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 9.294 οὔτε ο. γὰρ Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 9.294 -ες προβάντος J. A. Fabricius 1718 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 10.4 τὸν τόπον τὴν χώραν Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 10.127 ἐφ ̓ εἰ οὖν τὸ κινούμενον ὑφ ̓ Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 11.59 οἷόν τε οἴονται Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 11.150 π. τῶν παρὰ τὸν Bekker 1842 NL
S.E. Math. 11.177 κρίνουσα ἡ κ. J. A. Fabricius 1718 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 11.184 ἢ ἡ αὐτή ἢ αὐτή Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Math. 11.242 ἑαυτ- αὐτῶν Bekker 1842 Laur. Plut. 85.19 (N)
S.E. Pyr. 1.49 ἀγγεί- ὀργάνων Bekker 1842 Paris. lat. 14700 (T)
S.E. Pyr. 1.82 -αεῖς Ψύλλοι Salmasius 1718 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) apud Fabricium
S.E. Pyr. 1.83 ἄνω κάτω del. Otto Apelt 1884 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) RhM
S.E. Pyr. 1.83 ὑδάσπην Ἀστάπουν Rudolf Hercher 1854 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) Philol. 9
S.E. Pyr. 1.108 πολλοὶ π. δὲ Bekker 1842 Paris. lat. 14700 (T)
S.E. Pyr. 1.181 τρόπον del. C. L. Kayser 1849 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) Philol. 4
S.E. Pyr. 2.59 τῇ τ. δ. τῇ δὲ τοῦδε Bekker 1842 Paris. lat. 14700 (T)
S.E. Pyr. 2.113 στάσε- φάσεων Pierre/Jacques Chouet 1621 Paris. lat. 14700 (T)
S.E. Pyr. 2.227 τῶ -ω τὸ ἄνθρωπον Eugen Pappenheim 1877 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) Philol. 36
S.E. Pyr. 3.27 deest τὸ ἀποτέλεσμα C. L. Kayser 1849 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) Philol. 4
S.E. Pyr. 3.36 ἐμβλ- ἐκβληθήσεται Nauck 1849 Paris. lat. 14700 (T) Philol. 4
S.E. Pyr. 3.99 αἱρ- ἀναιρουμένων Bekker 1842 Paris. lat. 14700 (T)
Sapph. fr. 1.24 κὢ εἰ καὶ θέλεις κωὐκ ἐθέλοισα Bergk 1835 FP κωϋ κεθέλουσα F: κ’ ώυ κ’ ἐθέλοις P
Sapph. fr. 44A.5 ἀεί ἄϊ H. L. Ahrens 1839–43 P.Sapph.Obbink
Sapph. fr. 81.4 παρ- πέρθεσθ' August Seidler 1829 P.Oxy. XV 1787 ]ΕΡΘΕϹ[
Sapph. fr. 94.24 deest οὔτε τι] Blass 1874 Schubart ap. Lobel, Ϲ. μ. p. 79 ]Τ̣Ε̣ΤΙ
Simon. fr. 20.9 νηπίοισι νή]πιοι Joachim Camerarius 1551 P.Oxy. LIX 3965
Simon. fr. 20.10 βιότου βιότοι' Joachim Camerarius 1551 P.Oxy. LIX 3965
Simon. fr. 25.5 χεέτω χείτω M. L. West 1989 P.Oxy. LXXXI 5261
Soph. Aj. 98 ὥστ' ὡς Elmsley n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Aj. 135 -άλου ἀγχίαλον F. H. Bothe n.d. Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. Aj. 146 λοιπή κοινή Henrik van Herwerden 1866 Gγρ ad OT 591
Soph. Aj. 181 μαχαναῖς μη- G. Wolff 1858–65 Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. Aj. 194 ποτὲ ποτὶ Ritschl Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc)
Soph. Aj. 211 δορι-/δορυ- δουριάλωτον Brunck 1786 Livineii 'V'
Soph. Aj. 230 παραπλήκτῳ -άκτῳ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. H s.l.
Soph. Aj. 369 ἐκνεμῇ -εῖς Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. KpcD
Soph. Aj. 378 ἔχειν ἔχῃ Valckenaer pre-1775 Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. Aj. 379 πάνθ ̓ ὁ. πᾶν θ ̓ ὁρῶν Elmsley n.d. pXs
Soph. Aj. 382 ἄγεις ἔχεις Henrik van Herwerden 1868 Vat. gr. 2291 (R) p. 12
Soph. Aj. 423 -έω ἐξερῶ Porson n.d. Hac
Soph. Aj. 456 γ ̓ ἂν τἂν Elmsley n.d. QC
Soph. Aj. 457 δρᾶν δρᾶν μ' Morstadt n.d. QC
Soph. Aj. 467 μόνος μόνοις μόνος μόνῳ Mekler 1885 Cac
Soph. Aj. 477 βροτὸν -ῶν C. E. Palmer 1878 Stob. cod. Aac
Soph. Aj. 503 οἵας λατρείας οἵαν -αν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. p
Soph. Aj. 560 ὑβρίσῃ ὑβρίσει Valckenaer 1743–6 MS
Soph. Aj. 625 δὲ τε Hermann 1848 Sud. s.v. ἔντροφος ed. ter.
Soph. Aj. 687 θ' δ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Laur. 28.25 (F)
Soph. Aj. 689 ἅμα (ὑμῶν) μετὰ Naber n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K) γρ
Soph. Aj. 727 ὡς ὥς τ ̓ Samuel Musgrave 1800 KF
Soph. Aj. 742 -ρήκ- παρείκειν Reiske 1753 Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. Aj. 756 τῇδέ θ ̓ τῇδ' ἐθ’ Markland s.xviii med. MS
Soph. Aj. 773 τότ'/ὅδ' τόδ' Johannes Pierson 2009 Laur. 32.40 (H) GRBS
Soph. Aj. 836 δ' θ' Johannes Livineius 1581–2 Bos. q. 7 (J)
Soph. Aj. 842 ἐκγόνων ἐκγόνων τ’ Markland s.xviii med. MSS
Soph. Aj. 842 ἐκγόνων ἐκγόνων τ’ Samuel Musgrave 1800 MSS
Soph. Aj. 882 Ὀλυμπιάδων -αδᾶν Elmsley n.d. Matrit. gr. 4677 (N)
Soph. Aj. 956 ὁ π. πολύτλας Porson n.d. Ambros. E. 1035 sup. (Wa)
Soph. Aj. 964 τἀγαθὸν ἐ. τἀγάθ ̓ ἐν Reiske 1753 Bos. q. 7 (J)
Soph. Aj. 1051 ὑβρίσῃ οὔκουν Valckenaer 1743–6 Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc)
Soph. Aj. 1065 παραλίοις -ος Naber n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. Aj. 1098 τὸν τόνδ’ Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 32. 9 (L)
Soph. Aj. 1101 ἤγετ ̓/ἡγεῖτ ̓ ἤγαγ ̓ Elmsley n.d. Palat. gr. 40 (P)
Soph. Aj. 1117 ὡς ἔστ' Reiske 1753 Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Aj. 1205 ἀπέπαυσεν -σε μ ̓ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Aj. 1237 ἔχειν ποῖ Valckenaer pre-1775 cod. rec.
Soph. Aj. 1243 ἤρεσκεν ἤρκεσε Johannes Pierson 2009 MS GRBS
Soph. Aj. 1245 λελειμ- λελημμένοι Pearson n.d. Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. Aj. 1274 οὗτος ἐντός Markland s.xviii med. a
Soph. Aj. 1283 αὐτὸς αὑ- G. Wolff 1858–65 Vindob. suppl. gr. 71 (Xs)
Soph. Aj. 1368 σόν σόν γ' Porson n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. Aj. 1371 τῆσ- τήνδε F. H. Bothe n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. Aj. 1379 -ον ὅσων Porson n.d. Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc) s.l.
Soph. Ant. 18 -ειν ᾔδη Johannes Pierson 1759 Zcac Lexicon Atticum s.v. ᾔδη ('Quis non videt')
Soph. Ant. 57 ἐπ ̓ ἀλλήλοιν ἐπαλλήλοιν Hermann n.d. KSUZf
Soph. Ant. 70 ἐμοῦ ἐμοί Meineke 1861 Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Ant. 76 σοί σύ Valckenaer 1746 Vat. gr. 57 s.l.
Soph. Ant. 108 ὀξυτόρῳ/-τέρῳ -πόρῳ Samuel Musgrave 1800 Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Ant. 202 ἄγ- ἔχειν Alexandros Pallis 1885 Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Ant. 211 Κρέον vel Κρέων ποεῖν F. J. Martin n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K) marg.
Soph. Ant. 218 τοῦτ ̓ τοῦδ ̓ Brunck 1786 Uac
Soph. Ant. 287 νόμ- δόμους Henrik van Herwerden n.d. Vat. gr. 57 (Zh)
Soph. Ant. 314 -ωσμέ- σεσωμένους Wecklein n.d. Marc. gr. 470 (Ta)
Soph. Ant. 342 κουφονέων κουφονόων Johannes Pierson 2009 Λac et S GRBS
Soph. Ant. 365 σοφόν δεινόν Heimsoeth 1865 t
Soph. Ant. 384 om. Markland s.xviii med. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Ant. 390 ποθ ̓ γ ̓ ἂν Erfurdt 1802–25 t
Soph. Ant. 396 κλῆρος κλῆρος δ ̓ G. Müller 1967 Paris. gr. 2884 (Ζf)
Soph. Ant. 404 ἴδον ἰδὼν Brunck 1786 Paris. gr. 2886 i.e. Aristobulus Apostolides
Soph. Ant. 406 εὐρέθη ᾑρέθη Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 32. 9 (L) fort. pc legit sch. ut videtur
Soph. Ant. 410 εὖ αὖ Reiske 1753 Marc. gr. 468 (V)
Soph. Ant. 422 ἀπαλλαγέντος -έντες G. H. Schaefer n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R) S in linea
Soph. Ant. 444 οἷ Meineke 1861 Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Ant. 480 τότ ̓ τόδ ̓ Sehrwald n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Ant. 567 μέν σοι μέντοι Brunck 1786 Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Ant. 573 γε με Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Zf in linea
Soph. Ant. 592 βρέμουσι δ' βρέμουσιν Johannes Pierson 2009 Palat. gr. 287 (Zo) GRBS
Soph. Ant. 599 ὑπὲρ ὅπερ Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 31.10 (K) s.l. (ex sch.)
Soph. Ant. 687 χἀτέρῳ χἀτέρᾳ Samuel Musgrave 1800 Laur. 31.10 (K) in linea
Soph. Ant. 687 χἀτέρῳ χἀτέρως Hermann n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. Ant. 695 ἀπ’ ἐπ’ Johannes Pierson 2009 Paris. gr. 2712 (A) GRBS
Soph. Ant. 789 ἐπ’ ἀπ’ F. W. Schmidt Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Ant. 825 -ῳ Σιπύλου Alexandros Pallis 1885 Vat. gr. 57 (Zh) s.l.
Soph. Ant. 828 -ῳ ὄμβρος Gleditsch n.d. Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc) s.l.
Soph. Ant. 831 θ' … -αύστοις δ' … παγκλαύτοις F. H. Bothe n.d. KS
Soph. Ant. 836 -ῃ/-ῳ/-αν φθιμένᾳ Johannes Pierson 2009 Laur. 32. 9 (L) et a GRBS
Soph. Ant. 848 ἔργμα ἕρμα Hermann n.d. Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Ant. 851 οὔτ ̓ ἐν οὔτε Erfurdt 1802–25 Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Ant. 859 οἶκτον οἶτον Brunck 1786 Kpc
Soph. Ant. 938 πατρογενεῖς προγενεῖς Valckenaer pre-1775 Laur. 32. 9 (L)
Soph. Ant. 989 -ες βλέποντε Moriz Schmidt 1871–80 LpcKa
Soph. Ant. 1035 δ ̓ del. Brunck 1786 Laur. 31.1 a.c.
Soph. Ant. 1069 κατῴκ- κατοικίσας Henrik van Herwerden n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Ant. 1081 -γνι- καθήγισαν Burton n.d. VacZc
Soph. Ant. 1089 -ωτέραν ἡσυχαιτέραν G. H. Schaefer n.d. Zg et Laur. 31.1
Soph. Ant. 1098 λαβ-/λακ- λαχεῖν Heimsoeth 1865 Paris. gr. 2884 (Ζf)
Soph. Ant. 1196 ἑσπ- εἱπόμην Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. Ant. 1236 μέσσον/μέσον/ἐς ἐν Wecklein n.d. SZot
Soph. Ant. 1237 παρθένῳ -ον Brunck 1786–9 Paris. gr. 2884 (Ζf)
Soph. Ant. 1238 ἐκβάλλει ἐμβάλλει Markland s.xviii med. Berol. Phillips 1588
Soph. Ant. 1289 νέον λόγον νέον August Seidler n.d. codd. recc. Tricliniani (teste Dawe)
Soph. Ant. 1337 προσεύχου κατ- Benedict n.d. Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc)
Soph. Ant. 1337–8 Ἄγγελος choro trib. Philipp Buttmann 1822? Ambr. C. 24 sup. et Monac. gr. 500
Soph. Ant. 1350 μηδὲν μηδέν’ Markland s.xviii med. MSS
Soph. El. 21 ξυνάπτετον -έον Jonathan Toup s.xviii med. Paris. gr. 2884 (Ζf)
Soph. El. 35 τοιαῦθ ̓ ὁ τοιαῦτα C. J. Blomfield 1813 Voss. gr. Q. 6 (O) Mus. crit. p. 64; s.l.
Soph. El. 87 ἰσόμοιρ ̓ -μοιρος Porson n.d. p
Soph. El. 139 -οις γόοισιν Johannes Livineius 1581–2 Marc. gr. 468 (V) s.l.
Soph. El. 160 ὄλβιος -ον Brunck 1786 Hac
Soph. El. 187 τοκ- τεκέων Meineke n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 281
Soph. El. 219 τὰ δὲ τάδε John Jackson 1955 pD
Soph. El. 305 μου μοι Thomas Magister n.d. Ambros. E. 1035 sup. (Wa)
Soph. El. 436 -θα ἔνθεν Meineke n.d. t
Soph. El. 483 om. σ' Johann v. G. Fröhlich 1815 Ambros. E. 1035 sup. (Wa)
Soph. El. 492 ἐπέβα -αν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. El. 496 ἡμῖν ὑμῖν Purgold n.d. pt
Soph. El. 513 τις τι Hermann n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. El. 583 -εις τυγχάνοις Turnebus 1552–3 Vindob. suppl. gr. 71 (Xs)
Soph. El. 593 δ' γ' J. A. Hartung 1850–1 Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. El. 653 εὐημεροῦσαν -σα Erfurdt 1802–25 Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. El. 653 τέκνων -οις Benedict n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 161 (Xr) s.l.
Soph. El. 689 τοιοῦδ' τοιάδ' Brunck 1786 Marc. gr. 616 (Zr)
Soph. El. 710 κλήροις -ους Eduard Wunder 1831 Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. El. 754 -έθοντες κατασχεθόντες Elmsley Nac
Soph. El. 758 δειλαίας σποδοῦ -αν -όν Friedrich Neue 1831 p s.l.
Soph. El. 762 οἵπερ ὥσπερ J. A. Hartung 1850–1 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 41
Soph. El. 819 ἄφιλος -ον Monk n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 281
Soph. El. 859 -ᾶν εὐπατρίδων Friedrich Neue 1831 Sud. s.v. παραγάγῃς
Soph. El. 876 οὐκ οὐκέτ ̓ B. Thiersch n.d. p
Soph. El. 941 ἔσθ ̓ ὅδ ̓ ἐς τόδ ̓ Haupt n.d. CHV
Soph. El. 952 γ’ Johannes Pierson 2009 Paris. gr. 2820 GRBS
Soph. El. 957 σε … μ' με … σ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. p
Soph. El. 960 -ηι ἐστερημένην Elmsley O1pc
Soph. El. 995 ποτ' ἐμβλέψασα ποτε βλέψασα Henrik van Herwerden 1868 P.Oxy IV 693 et Marc. gr. 616 (Zr) p. 12
Soph. El. 998 ἔλαττον ἔλαϲϲον Brunck 1786 P.Oxy IV 693
Soph. El. 1029 μάθῃς πάθῃς Johannes Pierson 2009 Palat. gr. 40 (P) et a GRBS
Soph. El. 1044 ποήσεις Valckenaer pre-1775 MSS
Soph. El. 1139 om. σ’ Markland s.xviii med. p
Soph. El. 1226 ἔχεις ἔχοις Valckenaer pre-1775 Laur. 32. 9 (L)
Soph. El. 1246 ἐνέβαλες ὑπ- Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vat. gr. 40
Soph. El. 1275 -ύστον- πολύπονον Hermann n.d. Bos. q. 7 (J)
Soph. El. 1281 φίλαι φίλ ̓ Eduard Wunder n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. El. 1458 πύλας πέλας Reiske 1753 VXs
Soph. El. 1471 φίλως -ους Purgold n.d. Vat. gr. 904 (Pa)
Soph. OC 33 -ων ἀκούω Lindner n.d. QacRt
Soph. OC 48 -ῶ/-ᾶν δρᾷς L. Peters n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. OC 52 τίς δ ̓ τίς Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. rZo
Soph. OC 72 μ- σμικρὰ Elmsley n.d. UY
Soph. OC 180 προσβίβαζε προβίβαζε Valckenaer 1743–6 r
Soph. OC 205 τίνα τίν ̓ ἂν Vauvilliers 1781 P.Oxy. LXXIX 5195
Soph. OC 213 γεγωνῶ γεγώνω Reiske 1743 Laur. 32. 9 (L) et Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. OC 278 μωροὺς/μοίραις/μοῖραν π. μώρους ποιεῖσθε Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. KR
Soph. OC 320 προϲτείχουϲα προϲϲ- Dindorf n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K) s.l.
Soph. OC 383 -οι ὅπῃ Karl Halm n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. OC 386 ὥραν ὤραν Turnebus n.d. l
Soph. OC 391 ὑπ ̓ γ ̓ Eduard Wunder r
Soph. OC 392 φασ- φησὶ Bergk r
Soph. OC 395 φλαῦρον φαῦλον Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. ZoTa
Soph. OC 534 σοίτ’ ἄρ’/σαίτ’ ἄρ’ αὔτ’ ἄρ’ Markland s.xviii med. z
Soph. OC 566 σ’ del. Johannes Pierson 2009 Laur. 31.10 (K) et a GRBS
Soph. OC 702 νεαρὸς νέος Elmsley n.d. t
Soph. OC 793 schol. -λείᾳ Ἰφικλεῖ Joannes Meursius 1619 Laur. 32.9 (L)
Soph. OC 818 σοι/σε σου Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. r
Soph. OC 942 -οὺς αὐτοῖς Scaliger n.d. Kr
Soph. OC 946 -σιοι τέκνων ἀνοσιώτατοι Hense n.d. Kr
Soph. OC 1012 om. θ’ Markland s.xviii med. Paris. suppl. gr. 2886
Soph. OC 1112 -δεξιὸν/ἀμφὶ δεξιὸν ἀμφιδέξιον Mudge n.d. r
Soph. OC 1162 οὐκ οὐδ ̓ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. r
Soph. OC 1220 -κορ-/ἔπι κορος ἐπίκουρος Hermann n.d. r
Soph. OC 1262 φορεῖ φέρει Meineke n.d. Marc. gr. 616 (Zr) teste Pearson
Soph. OC 1340 -σῃς/-σεις ξυμπαραστήσῃ Reiske 1743 a
Soph. OC 1341 χρόνῳ πόνῳ P. P. Dobree n.d. a s.l.
Soph. OC 1345 σθένω θέλω Markland s.xviii med. r
Soph. OC 1492 -αν ἄκρον Vauvilliers n.d. Qγρ
Soph. OC 1515 στρέψαντα στράψαντα Reiske 1743 Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. OC 1596 κἀπὸ κἀπὶ Willem Canter 1579 Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. OC 1619 βίοτον/βίωτον τοῦ βίου Johann v. G. Fröhlich n.d. Sud. s.v. τητᾶσθαι
Soph. OC 1682 φαινόμεναι φερόμεναι Hermann n.d. t
Soph. OC 1728 ἔγωγε ἐγώ Nauck n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. OC 1735 ποῖ πῇ Karl Halm n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. OC 1736 τλάμονων τλάμον ̓ Hermann n.d. r
Soph. OC 1736 ἕξω/ἔξω ἄξω Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. OT 75 χρόνου -ον Purgold n.d. Marc. gr. 468 (V)
Soph. OT 79 προσστείχοντα προστ- Erfurdt 1802–25 Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. OT 188 ὧν τῶν B. H. Kennedy 1885 PSI XI 1192 τω]ν
Soph. OT 222 ὕστερος -ον Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Marc. gr. 616 (Zr)
Soph. OT 222 ἀστὸς αὐτὸς Elmsley n.d. pa
Soph. OT 258 ἐπικυρῶ ἐπεὶ κυρῶ Burton n.d. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 66
Soph. OT 281 ἂν ἃν Henri Estienne Vindob. phil. gr. 161 (Xr)
Soph. OT 290 παλαί ̓ μάται ̓ Halbertsma n.d. WaZg
Soph. OT 324 φών- φρόνημ ̓ Naber n.d. r
Soph. OT 360 λέγειν λόγων Brunck 1786 Laur. 32.9 (L) s.l. teste West
Soph. OT 430 οὐ αὖ G. Wolff 1858–65 P.Oxy. I 22 in linea
Soph. OT 433 ᾔδει(ν) ᾔδη Dawes s.xviii med. P.Oxy. XVIII 2180 in margine
Soph. OT 446 ἀλγύναις -οις Elmsley n.d. Matrit. gr. 4677 (N)
Soph. OT 458 αὐτὸς αὑτὸς Markland s.xviii med. Vindob. suppl. gr. 71 (Xs) pc
Soph. OT 464 εἶπε εἶδε Gitlbauer n.d. KG
Soph. OT 475 Παρνασοῦ -ασσοῦ Hermann n.d. Vindob. phil. gr. 161 (Xr)
Soph. OT 523 om. δ' Moriz Schmidt 1871–80 P.Oxy. XVIII 2180 in linea (Barrett apud OCT)
Soph. OT 525 τοῦ πρὸς τοὔπος Heimsoeth 1865 P.Oxy. XVIII 2180
Soph. OT 535 ἐναργὴς -ῶς Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. OT 570 τοσόνδε τὸ σὸν δέ Brunck 1786 LacKp
Soph. OT 630 οὐχὶ οὐ Brunck 1786 DZr
Soph. OT 658 ζητῇς χρῄζῃς Meineke n.d. r
Soph. OT 685 προπονουμένῳ/προπονουμένας προνοουμένῳ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Marc. gr. 468 (V)
Soph. OT 694 τ' γ' Turnebus 1552–3 p
Soph. OT 733 schol. κέλευθον κελεύθων Scaliger post-1568 GMR
Soph. OT 766 τοῦτ ̓ τοῦ δ ̓ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Vpc Herwerden?
Soph. OT 778 habent del. Valckenaer pre-1775 P.Oxy. XI 1369
Soph. OT 791 χρεῖ' ἦ vel sim. χρείη Dawes n.d. Pa pc
Soph. OT 822 ὧνπερ αἷνπερ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. OT 829 ἀνορθοίη ἂν ὀρθοίη G. H. Schaefer n.d. p
Soph. OT 870 μήν ποτε μήποτε Elmsley n.d. Paris. gr. 2884
Soph. OT 883 ὑπέροπτα -οπλα P. P. Dobree n.d. Cac
Soph. OT 1001 τε γε Hermann n.d. p
Soph. OT 1031 ἐν καιροῖς/κακοῖς ἐν χεροῖν Moriz Schmidt n.d. Fγρ W. W. Walker?
Soph. OT 1078 αὐτὴ αὕτη Hermann n.d. p
Soph. OT 1108 -νιάδων Ἑλικωνίδων Porson n.d. Aac
Soph. OT 1142 νῦν νυν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. t
Soph. OT 1153 μ' γ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Palat. gr. 40 (P)
Soph. OT 1172 κάλλιστ' μάλιστ' Nauck n.d. p
Soph. OT 1197 -σας τ. ἐκράτησε τοῦ Hermann n.d. Ambros. L. 39 sup.
Soph. OT 1217 om. alterum σε Eduard Wunder 1824 Voss. gr. Q. 6 (O)
Soph. OT 1232 ἤδειμεν ἤδεμεν Elmsley n.d. Vat. gr. 1333 (Zc)
Soph. OT 1245 κάλει καλεῖ Johannes Pierson 2009 Ambros. G 56 sup. GRBS
Soph. OT 1255 φοιτᾷ φοίτα Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. p
Soph. OT 1264 αἰώραις αἰώραισιν Henrik van Herwerden 1866 Ambros. G 56 sup.
Soph. OT 1294 δείξει δόξει Reiske 1753 Vindob. phil. gr. 161 (Xr)
Soph. OT 1311 ἐξήλου -ἤλλου Hermann n.d. Paris. gr. 2735 (C)
Soph. OT 1312 ἐς ὡς Henrik van Herwerden 1866 Laur. 32.40 (H)
Soph. OT 1320 φον- φρονεῖν Bergk n.d. a
Soph. OT 1453 ζῶντε -τι Johannes Pierson 2009 Vat. gr. 904 (Pa) GRBS
Soph. OT 1466 αἷν ταῖν Benjamin Heath 1762 Marc. gr. 616 (Zr)
Soph. OT 1474 ἐγγόνοιν ἐκγόνοιν Valckenaer 1743–6 Paris. gr. 2787 (Zn) et Marc. gr. 472 (Jebb)
Soph. OT 1477 ἣ σ' εἶχεν κτλ. ἥ σ' ἔχει Eduard Wunder 1831 Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Phil. 30 κυρῇ κυρεῖ G. H. Schaefer n.d. Gac
Soph. Phil. 81 κτῆμα χρῆμα Tournier n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Phil. 144 ἴ. γ. γὰρ ἴσως Henrik van Herwerden GS
Soph. Phil. 256 που πω Markland s.xviii med. Marc. gr. 468 (V)
Soph. Phil. 266 τῆσδ ̓ τῆς Jean Dorat n.d. Zopc
Soph. Phil. 272 -ῳ πέτρᾳ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Phil. 306 ἀνθρώπων -ῷ Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Paris. gr. 2712 (A) v.l.
Soph. Phil. 349 ἐπέσχον ἔπασχ- G. C. W. Schneider 1825 AUY
Soph. Phil. 361 πρὸς φίλους προσφιλῶς F. H. Bothe n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R)
Soph. Phil. 481 ὅποι Gilbert Wakefield 1794 KZo
Soph. Phil. 481 ὅπου Elmsley Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Phil. 496 πέμψαντα πλεύσαντα Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Sγρ
Soph. Phil. 496 -οις δόμους Philipp Buttmann 1822 Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q) p. 110
Soph. Phil. 510 ̓Ατρείδας ̓Ατρείδας ἔχθεις Bergk n.d. Vat. gr. 2291 (R) Hermann?
Soph. Phil. 524 γέ μ ̓ γ ̓ ἔμ ̓ Brunck 1786 Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Phil. 588 μηδέν' μηδὲν Linwood n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Phil. 597 δράσειν πράσσειν J. H. Wright n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Phil. 600 τ' γ' Benjamin Heath 1762 Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Phil. 612 πέρσοιεν πέρσωσιν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Phil. 614 ἤκουσεν ἤκουσ’ Markland s.xviii med. z
Soph. Phil. 614 ἤκουσεν ἤκουσ’ Valckenaer pre-1775 z
Soph. Phil. 728 -ει πλάθη Bergk n.d. r
Soph. Phil. 737 ἰὼ θ. Νε. τ. τ. θ. οὕτως α. κ. ὦ θ. Νε. τί τοὺς θεοὺς α. κ. Dindorf Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Phil. 760 Philoctetae trib. Lindner n.d. VTa
Soph. Phil. 830 ὦναξ ἄναξ Wilamowitz n.d. VTa
Soph. Phil. 894 μ ̓ ἔθος μέ πως Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Phil. 896 λόγῳ λόγων F. L. Abresch 1741 Harl. 5743 Miscell. Obs. Nov. III p. 23
Soph. Phil. 928 εἰργάσω εἴργασαι Elmsley n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Phil. 1007 οἷον Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Phil. 1007 ὥς ὅς Gilbert Wakefield 1794 r
Soph. Phil. 1016 ἔμ ̓ σύ μ ̓ Nauck Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Phil. 1028 ἐξέβαλον/ἔκβαλον/ἐκβάλλον ἔβαλον Johannes Pierson 2009 LaZo GRBS
Soph. Phil. 1032 ἐμοῦ ὁμοῦ Gernhard n.d. Gγρ
Soph. Phil. 1079 ὁρμώμεθον -μεθα Elmsley n.d. Urb. gr. 141 (S)
Soph. Phil. 1095 οὐκ κοὐκ Erfurdt n.d. SQ Wecklein?
Soph. Phil. 1138 ὅσ ̓ ὅς F. H. Bothe n.d. Marc. gr. 468 (V)
Soph. Phil. 1144 ἐφημοσύνᾳ/εὐφ- ὑφ- Hermann n.d. Marc. gr. 616 (Zr)
Soph. Phil. 1238 ταῦτα ταὐτὰ Markland s.xviii med. LGRS
Soph. Phil. 1243 τοῖσδ ̓ τοῖς Philipp Buttmann 1822 z
Soph. Phil. 1289 -ιστον ὑψίστου Gilbert Wakefield 1794 VTa
Soph. Phil. 1304 τοῦτ ̓ τόδ ̓ Brunck 1786 GRZo
Soph. Phil. 1330 ὡς ἕως Denys Lambin n.d. Paris. suppl. gr. 109 (Q)
Soph. Phil. 1362 δ' γ' Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. VQ
Soph. Phil. 1399 πέμπειν πέμψειν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Laur. Conv. Soppr. 152 (G)
Soph. Phil. 1429 ἐκβαλὼν ἐκλαβὼν Turnebus n.d. Zopc
Soph. T 1.9 σαφίλου/σοφίλου Ἀναίους Anton Westermann 1845 Laur. 28.25 (F)
Soph. T 1.16 (ἐν) τῇ ἐν Frederick H. M. Blaydes 1859 Vindob. phil. gr. 281 (Wc)
Soph. T 1.20 = fr. 965.2 ὀδυσσ-/ὠδυσσ- ὠδύσαντο G. H. Schaefer 1810 Paris. gr. 2712 (A)
Soph. Trach. 143 δ' τ' P. P. Dobree n.d. Harl. 5743
Soph. Trach. 159 οὕπω/οὔπω οὕτω Tournier n.d. Harl. 5743
Soph. Trach. 187 λέγ- ἔχεις Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Trach. 267 φώνει φωνεῖ Hermann Köchly 1842 Palat. gr. 287 ZA 9 (1842) 787
Soph. Trach. 286 δέ τε Turnebus n.d. P.Amh. inv. 68 s.l.
Soph. Trach. 316 τῶν του P. P. Dobree n.d. Zgt
Soph. Trach. 326 -ρόει δακρυρροεῖ Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Trach. 328 αὐτῇ αὐτή Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 31.10 (K) et Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Trach. 579 -ει(σ)μένον ἐγκεκλῃμενον Dindorf n.d. Oxy. XV 1805
Soph. Trach. 747 καὶ κοὐ Markland s.xviii med. Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Trach. 747 καὶ κοὐ Valckenaer pre-1775 Laur. 32.2 (Zg)
Soph. Trach. 772 βόησε ’βόησε Brunck 1786 Harl. 5743
Soph. Trach. 825 ἀναδοχάν ἀνακωχάν Valckenaer 1743–6 Laur. 32.2 (Zg) ἀνοκωχάν Zg
Soph. Trach. 902 ἄψορρον -ος Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Palat. gr. 287 (Zo)
Soph. Trach. 951 μέλλ- μένομεν Erfurdt n.d. rec. (Dawe)
Soph. Trach. 977 γέρων γέρον Markland s.xviii med. a
Soph. Trach. 1082 ἔθαλψεν ἔθαλψέ μ ̓ Hermann n.d. Laur. 31.10 (K)
Soph. Trach. 1123 ἐστιν ἔστ ̓ ἐν Frederick H. M. Blaydes n.d. Harl. 5743
Soph. Trach. 1136 μνωμένη μωμένη Benjamin Heath 1762 P.Oxy. XV 1805 et Laur. 31.10 (K) μωμ[
Soph. fr. 240 τὰ δ᾽ ὅσα τάδε σε Bergk 1859 Anon. Ambros. de re metr. 2.12
Soph. fr. 265 ἀντεροῦσ- ἀνταίρουσιν Isaac Vossius s.xvii Cyrill. apud Alberti
Soph. fr. 294 ἐπισχολάζεται κοὐκ ἔτι σχολάζεται Meineke n.d. P.Oxy. IX 1174
Soph. fr. 330 -ὴν -ην/-ὴ -η λευκῇ στάθμῃ T. G. Tucker 1904 Sud. A (F) CR 18 (1904) 245
Soph. fr. 339 Gaisford 1826 Phot. α 1990 Sophoclis tragoediae septem p. 40
Soph. fr. 481 δρώπα/δρωπτά δρωπά J. A. H. Tittmann 1808 Sud. δ 1538 T. apud Zonar.
Soph. fr. 591 ἐν φύλων ἕν φῦλον Bergk 1836 Favorin. Π φυγῆς ZfA 3 (1836) 78
Soph. fr. 635 σακκο- σακοδερμηστής Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Synag. Phot. ap. Hsch. σ 76
Soph. fr. 871 εὐγενεστ- εὐπρεπεστάτη Ritschl 1829 Plu. 5.517D
Soph. fr. 945.1 -πώρων ταλαίπωρον Conrad Gessner 1543 Stob. MA/Apostol. plerique codd.
Soph. fr. 945.2 εἰκ- ἐοικότες Conrad Gessner 1543 codd.
Soph. fr. 961 ὑπερπ- ὑπεκπηδᾷ Henrik van Herwerden 1855 Stob. 1.3.7 Observ. 129 (diss. Leiden)
Sor. Gyn. 2–3 Ἀθηναίων Ἀθηνίων Wellmann n.d. PSI II 117
Sor. Gyn. 2–3 τῆς αἱρέσεως τῶν περὶ τ. α. Rose n.d. PSI II 117
Sor. Gyn. 2–3 Ζήνωνα ... Ἀριστοτέλην τὸν Ἐπικούριον Ἀ. ... Ζ. τ. Ἐ. Ermerins n.d. PSI II 117
St.Byz. Δ 40 δειδείχ-/δεδείχ- δειδέχαται Bentley 1693 RVΠ
Stob. 1 coroll. 3 μούσαν/-σίαν μουσικάν A. H. L. Heeren 1792 Neap. III D 15 (F)
Stob. 1 coroll. 6 προαγεῖν/προσαγαγεῖν προαγαγεῖν Meineke 1860 Neap. III D 15 (F)
Stob. 1.3.23 τοι τι Nauck 1849 Monac. gr. 396 (Aug.) Philol.
Stob. 2.4.8 μόνον μόνος Grotius 1623 Paris. gr. 1985 (B)
Stob. 2.7.20 ὧν C. F. Sehrwald 1859 P2 apud Meurer
Stob. 2.7.20 ὅμ- ὅλως Hermann Rassow 1858 P2 in marg. p. 27
Stob. 2.31.128 -θεστέρων ἀξιομαθητοτέρων L. Dindorf 1831–56 Laur. Plut. 8.22 (L) TGL s.v.
Stob. 3.1.97 ψυχῆς τύχης Conrad Gessner 1549 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br)
Stob. 3.1.108 οὐ μετρίαν ἀμετρίαν Conrad Gessner 1549 MdA
Stob. 3.1.114 -πληθ- παμπλαθέας Meineke 1855 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 3.1.115 ἀρετὰ ἀκρότας Conrad Gessner 1549 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br)
Stob. 3.1.117 δεινα δειλία Gaisford 1850 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br)
Stob. 3.1.151 ἀπειθεῖν πείθειν Hieronymus Wolf 1563 Paris. gr. 1168 ad Epict. Fr.
Stob. 3.1.195 -τῆσαι καταρτίσαι Conrad Gessner 1549 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 3.1.206 -αν εὐπραξία Cobet 1858 Escor. LXXXX II Σ 14 (Md) Nov. lect. p. 701
Stob. 3.1.209 τῆς -ης τὴν σκέπην J. V. Peerlkamp 1822 MdABr p. xvii
Stob. 3.1.209 -ος θάλπους J. V. Peerlkamp 1822 MdABr
Stob. 3.1.209 περιττεύουσαν J. D. Lorenz 1828 Paris. gr. 1984 (A) apud Jacobs
Stob. 3.1.209 χρήσ- χρίσεις Conrad Gessner 1549 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br)
Stob. 3.2.7 -ῆ αὐτοῖς Nauck 1894 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br) apud Hense
Stob. 3.2.15 Τεννε/Τημε Τημένῳ Valckenaer 1767 duo codd. Schowiani Diatribe p. 15
Stob. 3.3.14 τοι/τε τι Grotius 1623 Escor. LXXXX II Σ 14 (Md)
Stob. 3.3.50 διδόντ- δώσοντας Nauck 1894 Gnomol.Vat apud Hense
Stob. 3.4.12 δ. φοίτασις δόμοις φοιτάσεις Conrad Gessner 1549 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 3.5.45 πολὺ πολλὴ Conrad Gessner 1549 LABr
Stob. 3.10.68 -πίῃ Αἰσωπηίῃ Meineke 1855 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br) -πείῃ Br
Stob. 3.16.15 ἀπο- ἀπεστερέαται G. H. Schaefer 1811 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S) ad Greg.Cor. p. 485
Stob. 3.17.42 τῆς τοιαύτης εἶναι τῆς μὴ τοιαύτης· εἶναι δὲ Gaisford 1850 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br)
Stob. 3.29.12 -ον ἔργου Meineke 1855 SM
Stob. 3.29.34 ὅτι πάντα ἅπαντα Meineke 1894 Paris. gr. 3012 apud Hense
Stob. 3.33.13 -αι ποιεῖσθε Meineke 1857 SM addendum ap. vol. IV
Stob. 3.33.16 τῶν τοῖς Daniel Wyttenbach 1800 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S)
Stob. 3.34.2 λέγε λέγ᾽ εὖ Valckenaer 1767 Laur. Plut. 8.22 (L) Diatr. p. 256
Stob. 3.34.2 -οι φέρει Cobet 1878 Laur. Plut. 8.22 (L) Coll. crit. p. 203
Stob. 3.40.9 κ. ἄξιός κἂν ἀξιοῖς Conrad Gessner 1543 Apc
Stob. 4.1.9 -εθα ηὐχόμεσθα Conrad Gessner 1543 S (teste Mekler)
Stob. 4.1.95 ἐπεύχ- ἐπέχεσθαι Conrad Gessner 1543 MA
Stob. 4.2.23 προσθ- προθεὶς Hans Lewenklaw 1569 Escor. LXXXX II Σ 14 (M)
Stob. 4.5.78 ἔλεγε τὸν ἄ. ἔλεγεν ἄρχοντα Nauck 1909 Brux. misc. 11360 (Br) apud Hense
Stob. 4.8.32 τῶν τὸν Conrad Gessner 1543 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 4.15.18 τούτων τοῦτον Meineke 1855 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S)
Stob. 4.20.46 χερσὶ(ν) χεροῖν Scaliger 1623 B (teste Brunck/Gaisford) ap. Grotium Dict. poet. p. 263
Stob. 4.20.46 ποτ᾽ ἐνίους ποταινίους Scaliger 1623 B (teste Brunck/Gaisford) ap. Grotium
Stob. 4.21.20 -ειν ἔχων August Matthiae 1829 Escor. X-1-13
Stob. 4.21.20 εἴην εἴη Valckenaer 1767 Escor. X-1-13 'ut Pelopis fortasse sit votum, vel alterius, de filio loquentis'
Stob. 4.22.29 om. τὰς Gaisford 1850 Escor. LXXXX II Σ 14 (M)
Stob. 4.22.108 ὁ γ. μ. γαμβροῦ ὁ μὲν Nauck 1909 Paris. gr. 1168 et Flor. Ariston apud Hense
Stob. 4.23.26 -ασά τ᾽ ἐμπλήσασ᾽ Bentley 1710 Chor.
Stob. 4.23.61 τε τᾷ Orelli 1821 Paris. gr. 1984 (A) p. 726
Stob. 4.23.65 τί δαὶ τί δὲ Meineke 1856 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 4.27.20 τῶν τοῖς Peter Needham 1709 Laur. Plut. 8.22 (L)
Stob. 4.29.11 ὅπως ὅτῳ Nauck 1912 P.Berol. 5514 apud Hense
Stob. 4.29.11 τέκνων κενῶν Conrad Gessner 1543 P.Berol. 5514
Stob. 4.31.22 νόμιζ' αὐτὸν νόμιζε σαυτὸν Conrad Gessner 1543 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. 4.31.86 -αις/κακουμένους καμουμένους Friedrich Dübner 1855 SM
Stob. 4.31.112 κρείττω κρεῖττον Meineke 1856 Macar.
Stob. 4.36.32 κινή- κνήσαις Daniel Wyttenbach 1777 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S) p. 50
Stob. 4.37.18 -ες πάντων Meineke 1856 Orib. Ec. 9.11
Stob. 4.39.15 λώϊστον δὲ ζ. λῷστον δὲ τὸ ζῆν Johannes Pierson 1759 B (teste Brunck/Gaisford)
Stob. 4.50.13 -λάβειν ἀπολαύειν Scaliger 1841 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S) apud Meineke p. 692
Stob. 4.52.21 -νημα σωφρόνισμα Meineke 1857 Macar.
Stob. 4.52.41 Διονύσιον Διόνυσον Meineke 1857 Paris. gr. 1984 (A)
Stob. gnom. Theoct. 2 ξηρ- ξυροῦ Conrad Gessner 1543 SM
Stob. gnom. Theoct. 7 -ότης ἠλιθιότητος Conrad Gessner 1543 Vindob. philos. et philol. gr. 67 (S)
Str. 1.1.4 πλοῦν πλοῦτον Casaubon 1620 Cpc
Str. 1.1.6 μὴ ἠ. ἠστροθετῆσθαι Wilhelm Xylander 1571 ApcCpc
Str. 1.1.18 -νικῶν ἡγεμονιῶν Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 1.1.23 κ. αὐτὴ κ. π. τ. α. ἄ. καὶ αὕτη καὶ πρὸς τοὺς αὐτοὺς ἄνδρας Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 1.3.4 ἐπὶ τῆς -ης ἐπὶ τῇ θαλάττῃ Henrik van Herwerden 1887 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Mnem.
Str. 1.3.4 τ. ἁλμυρίδος λ. τῆς Μοίριδος λίμνης Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 1.3.7 τ'αὐτὰ ταῦτα Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 1.3.16 καὶ τὰ μ. κατὰ μέρη Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 2.1.1 ἀπ- ε. ἐπ᾽ εὐθείας Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.1.11 ἐνέρ- ἐνάργεια Wilhelm Xylander 1571 AE
Str. 2.1.15/12.3.11 -τεια προάστια Benedikt Niese 1878 A/P
Str. 2.1.18 καυκασίῳ Καυκάσῳ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.1.29 χ. ὅσον ἦ. χιλίων ὅσων ἦν Adamantios Korais 1815 ACac
Str. 2.1.29 τοσούτων σ. ὅσον τοσούτων σταδίων ὅσων Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 2.1.35 τ. τ. χ. κράσιν τὴν τῶν χλιµάτων χρίσιν Salmasius 1629 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) s.l.
Str. 2.2.2 -αν οὖσιν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.2.3 περιοίκους περισκίους Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.3.1 ὁ μ. μ. ὁ εὔκρατος ὢ. ὁ μὲν μέσος εὔκρατος ὢν Adamantios Korais 1815 E et exc. Psell.
Str. 2.3.1 τὰ δ. μ. τὰ εὔχρατα κ. τὰ οἰκήσιμα τὰ δὲ μέσα εὔχρατα καὶ οἰκήσιμα Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.3.3 οὐδὲ δὴ οὐδὲ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.3.3 πρὸς δ᾽ ἑ. πρὸς ἃ ἑκατέρωθεν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.3.3 κ. μ. ἱ. -ῶν κατὰ μέσον ἱδρύουσιν αὐτόν Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.3.4 κατασχεθ- καταχθέντα Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) marg.
Str. 2.3.6 -ον πλέων Janus Bake 1810 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 2.3.8 ἢ ὅτι ὅτι Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.4.3 οὐκ ἄλλως οὐ καλῶς Guarino Veronese 1469 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) 'non bene'
Str. 2.4.6 ἐπὶ τὰ τοῦ ἐπὶ ταὐτοῦ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.2 ἐξ αὐτ- … κ. ἐν αὐτ- ἐξ αὑτῶν … καὶ ἐν αὑταῖς Adamantios Korais 1819 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.5 τούτων ὁποτέρων τ. -ῳ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.5 οὐ δ. οὐδὲν διαφέρει Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.7 ῥύσεως ὡς ῥύσεως Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.8 πανταχοῦ πολλαχοῦ πολλαχοῦ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.8 κἀνταῦθά που κἀνταῦθα Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.10 εὐθείας μικρὰς συννευούσας ε. μικρὸν σ. Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.11 κρεῖττον κρείττων Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.14 ἡ -ης π. ἡ ταύτῃ παραλία Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.15 τὰ ἑ. -εινται τὰ ἑσπέρια ἀντίκειται Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.18 -ου μηκυνομένη Wilhelm Xylander 1571 E et exc. Psell.
Str. 2.5.18 π. τε ποθοῦμέν δὲ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.19 περι- παραπλεύσαντι Adamantios Korais 1815 E et exc. Syn.
Str. 2.5.19 ἑπτὰ σταδίοις ἑπταστάδιος Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.20 π. δὲ τ. μὲν μ. πλάτος δὲ τὸ μέγιστον Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.20 καὶ Κ. καὶ Λ. καὶ ἡ Κ. καὶ αἱ Λ. Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv P.Oxy. LXV 4459 (Π4)
Str. 2.5.20 κηρυκ- Κυρικτικὴ Gustav Kramer 1844 P.Oxy. LXV 4459 (Π4)
Str. 2.5.20 πλεόντων τ. πλέον τῶν τετρακισχιλίων G. G. Bredow 1812 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.21 σαρδω- Σαρωνικὸν Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.23 εἰς Π. εἰς τὸν Πόντον Hermann Kallenberg 1890 Vat. gr. 482 (E) Philol.
Str. 2.5.25 ἡ … καὶ τοῦ Ν. προχοαί ἡ … καὶ αἱ τοῦ Ν. προχοαί Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.26 καὶ ἃ τὴν φύσιν ἀνήμερα κ. τ. φ. ἀ. Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.26 πολλοῖς τούς τε τούς τε Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.26 ἐξ ἀ. β. αἱ ἐξ ἀλλήλων βλάβαι Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.31 τιβαρη- Τιβαρανικῶν Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E) s.l.
Str. 2.5.32 τραχι- Τραχειῶται Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.33 -ῃ π. ταύτην ποιούντων Adamantios Korais 1815 E et exc. Syn.
Str. 2.5.33 ἐ. παρδάλη ἐοικυῖα παρδαλῇ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.33 µεσσαι- Μασαισυλίους Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 2.5.34 λ. δ. τὸ λέγω δὲ τῶν Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 3.2.5 Ἅπασα δ' ἡ ἐμπορία Ἅ. δὴ ἐ. Adamantios Korais 1815 BC
Str. 3.2.8 τἀντεῦθεν κἀν- Adamantios Korais 1815 BC
Str. 3.2.9 ὅ. … ἀνέλαβον ὅσα … ἂν ἔλαβον Adamantios Korais 1815 BC
Str. 3.3.7 ἀργύρ- ἀργυροῦ Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 3.4.3 κ. αὐτή καὶ αὕτη Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 3.4.3 τ. -ης τῶν ταύτῃ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Bpc
Str. 3.4.13 οὐδ᾽ αὐταὶ οὐδ᾽ αὗται Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 3.4.15 Ἴβηρες οἱ Ἴβηρες J. P. Siebenkees 1796 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 3.4.17 ἀλη- ἀηθείᾳ Casaubon 1620 Xpc
Str. 3.4.20 π. νοίγ- πόλις Νοῖγα Meineke 1852 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 3.5.1 καὶ Φ. τε καὶ Φιλητᾶς δὲ Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 3.5.7 ἐκχεῖ ἔχει Casaubon 1620 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 3.5.7 π. ἀ. πάλιν δ᾽ ἀναχωρεῖ Adamantios Korais 1815 Palat. gr. 398 (X) s.l.
Str. 4.1.3 καὶ τ. δ᾽ ἐ. τοῦτο δ᾽ ἐστὶν C. G. Groskurd 1831 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.1.4 αὐτῇ/αὐτὴ αὕτη C. G. Groskurd 1831 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 4.1.6 κ. δ᾽ αὐτὸ καλοῦσι δ᾽ αὐτὸν Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.1.7 -βάλλειν ἐμβαλεῖν Adamantios Korais 1815 Cac
Str. 4.1.10 τὸν ν. τὸ ναύσταθμον Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 4.1.11 -ψαν κ. ἔ. κατέκοψεν καὶ ἔστησε Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.1.12 οἱ τεκτοσάγες οἱ Τεκτόσαγες Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 482 (E) Vindiciarum
Str. 4.3.2 ῥέων ῥεῖ ῥεῖ Casaubon 1620 BE
Str. 4.4.1 -εις ἁλύσει Adamantios Korais 1815 Cac
Str. 4.4.2 ὅ. … -ονται ὅταν … ἐκβάλλωνται Adamantios Korais 1815 Cpc
Str. 4.4.3/6 λείγηρ- Λίγειρος Meineke 1852 Palat. gr. 398 (X) Vindiciarum
Str. 4.4.5 -βόροις προσβόρροις Adamantios Korais 1815 Cac
Str. 4.5.3 πλημμυρίδων πληµυ- Wolfgang Aly 1968–72 Eust. R
Str. 4.6.1 ν. ἐπὶ τὸ νῦν ἔτι τὸ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.6.2 λιγυστινοί τε Λιγυστῖνοί τε Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.6.3 οἱ δ' ὕ. κελτοὶ λίγυας οἱ δ' ὕστερον Κελτολίγυας Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 4.6.5 ὅρους τοὺς τῆς Ἰταλίας ὅ. τῆς Ἰ. Adamantios Korais 1815 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 4.6.6 ταυρινοί τε Ταυρῖνοί τε Meineke 1852 Aac
Str. 5.1.3 -λιπόντα ἀπολείποντα Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 5.1.8 οὐκετία οὐικεντία Philipp Clüver 1624 Eton. 141 (n) p.c.
Str. 5.1.9 ἀκαυστ- ἀκαυτηριάστων Casaubon 1620 Apc
Str. 5.2.4 ἕξ ἐγέν- ἐξεγένοντο Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 5.3.2 -ονται μυθεύεται Leonhard Spengel 1845 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 5.4.2 -ις πόλεις Adamantios Korais 1815 Ambros. G 93 sup. (v)
Str. 5.4.5 λῃστ- χρηστήριον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E) marg.
Str. 5.4.8 ὡς τ. ἄ. ὥστε τεκμαίροιτ᾽ ἄν Casaubon 1620 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.1.7 τ. κ. τ. ἰώ- τὸν κόλπον τὸν Ἰόνιον Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.1.7 ἐπεὶ λοκρῶν Λοκρῶν Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.1.11 μ. δ. ταῦτα μετὰ δὲ ταύτας Gustav Kramer 1844 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.1.12 -ηντο ὥρμητο Adamantios Korais 1815 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.1.12 -λειφθ- ἀποληφθέντα Hemsterhuis 1744 Palat. gr. 398 (X) in Ar. Plut.
Str. 6.2.1 τ. Κ. κ. τ. σ. καὶ τ. Ῥ. τὴν Καῖνυν καὶ τὴν στυλίδα τὴν Ῥηγίνων Philipp Clüver 1624 Epc
Str. 6.2.1 τῆς Π. τοῦ Παχύνου Casaubon 1620 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 6.2.4 οἰκῆσ- οἰκίσαι Casaubon 1620 AC
Str. 6.2.4 -μεῖναι συμμείναι Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.2.4 ἐκεῖνο ἐκεῖ Adamantios Korais 1815 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.2.6 πλάτ- πλατέσιν Meineke 1852 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 6.2.8 ἐ. ποτὲ ἐπιλειπούσης Adamantios Korais 1815 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.2.9 τιμαί- Τιμαύου Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 6.2.10 ὁ- ὀμιχλώδη F. O. Hultsch 1888 ABEX in Plb.
Str. 6.2.10 τ. ἐ. τὸν ἐσόμενον ἄνεμον Casaubon 1620 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.2.11 ἔ. δ. κ. αὐτὴ δ. ἔστι δὲ καὶ αὕτη διάπυρος Adamantios Korais 1815 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 6.3.2 παρθενεῖαι Παρθενίαι Adamantios Korais 1815 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.3.5 τ. ἰαπυγί- τῶν Ἰαπύγων Gottfried Bernhardy 1828 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 6.3.5 τ. Λ. ἀνταίρων τὸ Λακίνιον ἀνταῖρον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 6.3.6 τοῦ ἐλάφου τῆς ἐ. Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Eust.
Str. 6.3.9 εὐδιν- εὐδιεινὴ Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 7.3.8 τοὺς ᾿Α. τοῦ ᾿Αλεξάνδρου Casaubon 1620 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 7.3.13 δέδεικ- δέδεκται Casaubon 1620 Apc
Str. 7.3.17 πλεύ- ἀναπλεύσαντι Anton Miller 1874 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 7.3.18 -γορίαν Φαναγόρειαν Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 7.3.19 τάφι- Τάφριοι Casaubon 1620 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) s.l.
Str. 7.4.4 -ριανῶν Βοσπορανῶν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 7.5.2 -ος φάσκοντες Casaubon 1620 Ev
Str. 7.5.8 ῥιζικ- Ῥιζονικὸν Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv St.Byz. 243.7–10
Str. 7.5.9 παρακούσ- παρακρούσματα Johannes Schweighäuser 1795 Athous Vatop. 655 (B) ad Plb. 34.5.14
Str. 7.5.12 -ρίδων Ἰλλυριῶν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 7.6.1 φθινό- Φινόπολις Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Cpc
Str. 7.6.2 πλοῦν πλοῦτον Casaubon 1620 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 7.6.2 ἐπεὶ δ᾽ ἡ π. ἐπειδὴ πόλις Adamantios Korais 1817 Aac
Str. 7.7.1 ἐπαγομ- ἐπαγαγομένου Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 7.7.1 Δρυόπων τε καὶ Καυκώνων καὶ Πελασγῶν Δ. δὲ κ. Κ. κ. Π. Adamantios Korais 1817 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 7.7.2 σίδ- Ἴδην Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 7.7.8 ᾽Η. δ᾽ ε. κ. ᾿Α. κ. οἱ ὑ. ᾽Ηπειρῶται δ᾽ εἰσὶ καὶ οἱ ᾿Αμφίλοχοι καὶ οἱ ὑπερκείμενοι Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 7.7.8 λύγκιστ- Λύγκον Casaubon 1620 St.Byz. 420.3
Str. 7.7.9 τ. Π. π. αἱ τοῦ Πηνειοῦ πηγαί Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv EX
Str. 7.7.9 ἀλαλκο- ᾿Αλκομεναὶ Adamantios Korais 1817 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 8.1.3 ταῦτα δ. τὰ δύο Meineke 1852 Paris. gr. 1393 (C) Vindiciarum
Str. 8.3.7 ἡ ... ἧς οὐδέν ᾗ … οὐδέν A. J. Penzel 1775 Bv
Str. 8.3.32 ἐξη- ἐξελείφθη Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) a.c.
Str. 8.4.4 Θαλάμους τοὺς νῦν Β. καλουμένους -ας τ. ν. Β. κ. Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.4.5 πέλανν- Πέλλανα Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.4.5 τ. μ. -ης … ἧς τὴν μεταξὺ ᾿Ασίνην … ἧς L.-G. de Bréquigny 1763 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.4.8 ὁ φαληρεὺς ὁ Φάριος Petrus Victorius 1553 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.4.8 ὁ καὶ κ. καὶ ἀ. καὶ κατέσκαψαν Ῥωμαῖοι καὶ ἀνέστησαν Janus Lascaris s.xv/xvi Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.4.10 ἀφιδναίων ᾿Αφιδναῖον Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.5.2 -θίου Γυθείου Meineke 1853 A3
Str. 8.5.4 τῷ προδόντι Φιλονόμῳ τῷ π. Felix Jacoby 1926 Eust. 294.37–9
Str. 8.5.4 λαϊμενωι Λαῒ μὲν ὡς Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.5.5 ὑπερεβάλλοντο -βάλοντο Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 8.5.5 deest οἰκίας ἐν ᾧ καὶ Eduard Meyer 1892 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) p. 235
Str. 8.5.6 πολέμοις πολεμίοις Theodorus Agallianus 1446 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.5.6 -ϲ(ιν) ἅρμαϲι μυρίοιϲι νάμαϲι(ν) Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) μυριοιϲιν ναμαϲιν
Str. 8.5.6 ποιμέϲιν ποίμναιϲιν Valckenaer 1755 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) ad Phoen. p. 90
Str. 8.5.6 -οτάτην εὐβοτωτάτην Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.5.6 γαίης Λακαίνης -ας Λ. Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.6.8 τ. ἔ. εἰπεῖν τ. τὸ ἔπος ἐκπεσεῖν τοῦτο Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Vindiciarum
Str. 8.6.10 ἡγεμονίας οὔσας ἡγεμονευούσας Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.6.10 αἰγαλ- Αἰγιαλέων Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Apc
Str. 8.6.14 ........ον περὶ τούτων Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.6.16 Οἰνώνης Οἰνόης Alessandro Politi 1732 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) p. 604
Str. 8.6.21 Φωκίδος … Βοιωτίδος … Μεγαρίδος Φ. … -ίας … Μ. Meineke 1852 PX Vindiciarum
Str. 8.6.24 καὶ Πλαταιὰς καὶ Τανάγρας κ. Π. κ. -αν Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Eust. et exc. Urb.
Str. 8.6.24 πρασω- Παρασωπίους Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Eust. Il. 291.23–7
Str. 8.7.2 ἐκεῖ ἐκείνῳ Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.7.2 -ει ἑστήκοι Meineke 1853 Bv
Str. 8.7.3 -ους ἀξίως Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 A2
Str. 8.7.5 τ. δ. πόλιν ἔ. Α. τὴν δὲ χώραν ἔχουσιν Αἰγιεῖς Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.7.5 ὠλένη ᾽Ωλένου Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 8.7.5 Φαρ(ι)εῖς Φαραιεῖς Gustav Kramer 1847 Pac
Str. 8.7.5 στρατεί- στρατιᾶς Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Ppc
Str. 8.8.2 τ. ἀλαίας Ἀ. τῆς ᾿Αλέας Ἀθηνᾶς Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) 'Aleae'
Str. 8.8.4 περὶ Σ. παρὰ Στύμφαλον Meineke 1852 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) Vindiciarum
Str. 9.1.2 ἐπίμικτον ἐπὶ μικρόν Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.1.2 ἀθηνῶν ᾿Αθηναίων Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv PE
Str. 9.1.2 πηγ- Παγὰς Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.1.3 τὰ πρὸς πρὸς Cobet 1876 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Misc.
Str. 9.1.4 ἀττικ- ἀκτῆς C. G. Siebelis 1801 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.1.6 -δον/-μαλ κτλ. ὅμαυλον Dindorf 1832–60 AslE
Str. 9.1.14 Ψυτταλία … Ψυτταλίᾳ ψυτ]ταλ̣ε̣ια … ψ]υ̣τταλειαι Meineke 1853 P.Oxy. XLIX 3447 (Π2)
Str. 9.1.24 ἔτι δ. ἔστι δὲ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 9.2.2 ἔθ- ἐπέθεντο Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.8 χαλκίδος Χαλκιδικός Casaubon 1620 Eust. Il. 265.10–12
Str. 9.2.11 Ταναγραϊκῆς -γρικῆς C. H. Tzschucke 1801 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 9.2.20 οὐ γὰρ οὐ γὰρ ἂν Wilamowitz Eust. Il. 267.17–20 Kl. Schr. iv p. 563
Str. 9.2.26 ὠκάλαι Ὠκαλέα Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.27 ὠκάλαι Ὠκαλέα Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.29 πολε[ πολεμάδοκε Friedrich Neue 1829 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Jahrb. f. wissen. Krit. (Neue on Matthiae)
Str. 9.2.31 γ. Ἐ. αἱ γὰρ Ἐλευθεραὶ Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.31 ]ίπτει ὑποπίπτει C. G. Groskurd 1831 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.31 ὄνιον ᾿Αόνιον Gabriel de la Porte 1814 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.34 τ. μ. κ. τοῦ μαντείου τοῦ κατὰ Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.2.35 μήδ- Μίδειαν Marcus Hopper 1549 P et Eust.
Str. 9.2.35 οὔτε οὐδὲ Adamantios Korais 1817 P.Petr. I 3 et Π2 ουδ
Str. 9.2.36 γεγενῆ- γεγεννῆσθαι Adamantios Korais 1817 Bvpc
Str. 9.2.40 -χρηματί- πολυχρηματήσαντάς J. G. Schneider 1798 Bv
Str. 9.3.1 -ομεν λέγωμεν Casaubon 1620 Bv
Str. 9.3.10 τὸ ἰ. τῷ ἰαμβίζειν Johan Luzac 1825 Vat. gr. 482 (E) apud Van Santen
Str. 9.4.2 κεύθεινομ εὐθυνόμων Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 9.5.3 φαρσαλίου Φαρσάλου Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) φαρ[..]λου
Str. 9.5.5 τρα- Τρηχῖν᾽ Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.5.5 ἔσεσθ-/ἕπετ ἕπεσθαι Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.5.5 τό τε Ἄ. τό τε γὰρ Ἄργος Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.5.5 π. … -λονίκην πόλιν … Θετταλικὴν Gemistos Plethon s.xiv/xv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 9.5.8 -χινίαν Τραχῖνα Elmsley 1812 Bv ad Eur. Heracl. 194
Str. 9.5.19 -ὴν αὐτοὶ Adamantios Korais 1817 ABv W?
Str. 9.5.21 -ον τοιοῦτο Meineke 1853 Paris. gr. 1397 (A)
Str. 9.5.22 -αῖς Φεραὶ Alessandro Politi 1732 Paris. gr. 1397 (A) p. 773
Str. 10.1.4 τεθρ- ὄ. Τελεθρίῳ ὄρει Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D) s.l.
Str. 10.2.4 -κινθον ᾿Αράκυνθον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 exc. Urb. 29r I
Str. 10.2.20 ἅ. φησι(ν) ἅπαντές φασι Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 10.2.21 -κρίας Μολυκρείας Adamantios Korais 1817 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D) s.l.
Str. 10.3.5 διαδ- διδοὺς Willy Theiler 1982 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 10.3.6 -εῖσθαι καλέσαι Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.3.6 -ος μέρους Cobet 2004 DE apud Radt
Str. 10.3.7 οἱ δὲ π. οἱ παραδόντες Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.3.8 ἡ δ᾽ ἐ. ὅτι δ᾽ ἡ ἐνόπλιος Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 10.3.11 τὸ νέον … ὄ. ὑ. τὸ νέοι … ὄντες ὑπουργεῖν Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 10.3.12 -ους ὡ. ἑτέρως ὡς Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.4.11 ὀγδοήκοντα σ. ὀκτὼ σταδίους Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.4.12 πράσ- Πραίσιοι C. H. Tzschucke 1806 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.4.13 τῆς ταύτης δὲ θαλάττης τ. -ῃ δ. θ. Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D)
Str. 10.4.15 τὸ δὲ τοτὲ δὲ Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Vindiciarum
Str. 10.4.15 δ. ἀ. π. -ῶν δέκα ἀφαιρεῖσθαι πόλεις αὐτόν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.4.20 σιδηρῶν ἀσιδήρων Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.4.21 παρὰ τ. παρῇ τιμωρεῖν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.5.1 ε. ἕκαστ- ἀ. ν. εἰς ἑκατὸν ἀπέχει νησίδιον Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.5.2 οὐ φ. φορητά Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 10.5.2 οὐ φ. φορητά Porson 1821 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) ad Eur. Hec. 782
Str. 10.5.2 πρυμνῶν … χ. πρέμνων … χθονίων J. G. Schneider 1776 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Carm. Pindar.
Str. 10.5.8 Βάβι- Βάβυος Gerardus Vossius 1624 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D)
Str. 11.2.8 καλεῖται δ᾽ οὗτος ὁ στενωπὸς κ. δ᾽ οὕτως ὁ σ. Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.8 σταδίων διειργομένων/-ῳ πορθμῷ σ. -ον π. Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.11 -γιπτίας/-γιπίας Γοργιππίας Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.13 ζυγίων Ζυγῶν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.14 τοῦ Κριοῦ μετώπῳ τῷ Κ. μ.. Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Vindiciarum
Str. 11.2.17 τῶν πλησίων ὀρῶν τ. -ον ὀ. Adamantios Korais 1817 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D)
Str. 11.2.18 ῥιοχάρης/ῥεῖ ὁ χάρις ῥεῖ ὁ Χάρης Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.19 τῷ κύκλῳ τῶν κ. Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.2.19 Κ. … ε. δὲ Καυκάσια μὲν … εὐδαίμονα δὲ Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) [.]εν
Str. 11.3.1 ˙ καὶ οἰκεῖται … τε καὶ ˙ κατοικεῖται … τ. κ. Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.3.2 ᾿Αραγῶνα κάτω τοῦ ᾿Α. ἐκ τοῦ Adamantios Korais 1817 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 11.4.3 ἄ. δὲ ἄ. ἄσκαφοι δ᾽ αἱ ἄμπελοι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) δ[.]ι
Str. 11.4.4 τῆς ᾿Ιβήρων στρατιᾶς τ. ᾿Ι. -άν Lefebvre de Villebrune 1807 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) apud Falconer
Str. 11.4.5 δισμυρίους καὶ δισχιλίους μυρί- κ. δ. Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.5.5 οἱ δὲ οἵ γε Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.6.2 -βόρους προσβόρρους Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) προσβορρ[
Str. 11.6.3 σ. δι᾽ α. δὲ μ. σκοποῦντες αὐτὸ μόνον Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.7.1 κουίτ- καὶ Οὐίτιοι Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.7.1 αἰνειάν- Αἰνιᾶνας C. H. Tzschucke 1806 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.7.2 -ἰνῇ ᾿Αραξηνῇ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.8.1 ἠωδάα Ἠμωδὰ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.8.2 διαμέν- διατείνουσι Gregorio Tifernate 1469 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) 'extenduntur'
Str. 11.8.3 ἰσ- Νησαίαν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.8.4 ἀνανδ- ᾿Αναδάτου Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.8.5 -ώσας ἀνιέρωσε Felix Jacoby 1958 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) FGrHist 696.17
Str. 11.8.5 β. τῆς μ. ἡ. βακχεία τις μεθ' ἡμέραν Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.8.5 ἅμα τε καὶ τε ἅμα κ. Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.8.8 -μοισινοί Χωράσμιοι Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.8.8 Σ. μ. καὶ Σ. Σάκας μὲν Σογδιανοὺς Paul Cascorbi 1879 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.8.9 δισχίλ- δισμύρ- δισμύριοι δισχίλιοι Gustav Kramer 1847 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 11.8.9 ἐννα- ἐνακοσίους Meineke 1853 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 11.9.1 σ. δ᾽ ἔτι σχεδὸν δέ τι G. H. Schaefer 1808 Vat. gr. 482 (E) D. H. de comp. verb. lib.
Str. 11.9.3 δ’ οὖν οὖν Felix Jacoby 1958 Athous Vatop. 655 (B) FGrHist 782.3
Str. 11.9.3 -ίστησιν καθίστασθαι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.10.1 Μαρδυα- Μαργιανὴ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.10.1 -ουσι δ' ποτίζουσιν Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Vindiciarum
Str. 11.11.1 τὰ μὲν γὰρ τὰ μὲν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.11.3 ἤθ- ἔθεσι Meineke 1852 Dac Vindiciarum
Str. 11.11.4 τῆς Σισιμίθρου τὴν Σ. Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.11.5 -οντα ἔχον Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 11.11.7 ᾿Α. ἐ. τ. ᾿Α. ᾿Απολλόδωρος ὁ ἐκ τῆς ᾿Αρτεμίτας Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.11.8 ἅ. … -ανται ἅπερ … δύναται Meineke 1853 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 11.11.8 -ίων Ταπύρων Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.11.8 ἄπο- ἄπωθεν Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.12.2 -νέας Χελιδονίας Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.12.2 μικρ- μακροὺς Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.12.3 -βόρῳ προσβόρρῳ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 11.12.4 -ιες ἀπόσχιδες Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Athous Vatop. 655 (B) s.l.
Str. 11.12.4 εὐλυμέων ᾿Ελυμαίων C. H. Tzschucke 1806 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.12.5 κατὰ τὰ π. καὶ τὰ προσάρκτια Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Bpc Arnold Behr
Str. 11.13.6 ᾿Α. ᾿Α. ᾿Απολλόδωρος ὁ ᾿Αρταμιτηνός Arnold Behr 1888 codd.
Str. 11.13.6 ᾿Αρτεμιτ- ᾿Αρταμιτηνός Lucas Holste 1684 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Vatican librarian
Str. 11.13.7 πολὺ λ. οὐ πολὺ λειπόμενος Casaubon 1620 P et St.Byz.
Str. 11.14.8 θωῆτ- Θωνῖτιν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 11.14.9 -κίνοις Μιθρακάνοις Friedrich Windischmann 1857 BE p. 58
Str. 11.14.15 Ἰβηρίας Νισίβιος Gustav Kramer 1847 Paris. gr. 1393 (C) marg.
Str. 12.1.2 ἐθν- ἐθῶν Casaubon 1620 Laur. 28.15 (z)
Str. 12.2.10 -έσθαι εὑρῆσθαι Adamantios Korais 1817 DpcEP
Str. 12.2.10 -ής ἐμφεροῦς Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.2.10 -ως ἄλλος Wilhelm Xylander 1571 EP
Str. 12.2.11 κ. α. τε τ. καὶ αὐτῷ τε καὶ τῷ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.2.11 οἱ δὲ θ. οἱ δὲ θαυμάσαντες μὲν August Vogel 1880 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Philol.
Str. 12.3.3 τὰ … λ. τ. τὸ … λέγεσθαί τινας Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.3.3 Μυσ- Μοισῶν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.5 ο. καὶ ἡ. οὓς ἡμεῖς Adamantios Korais 1817 CP
Str. 12.3.5 τό δὲ τό τε Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.6 γ. … ἐ. δ᾽ γενομένη δ᾽ ... ἐδέξατο Thomas Falconer 1807 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.7 πεισι-/πισι- Πεσσινοῦντος C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.9 κ. Π. φ. καὶ Πίνδαρος δέ φησιν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.3.11 κ. φύσει καὶ κ. φυσικῇ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) φυ̣σει κα̣[
Str. 12.3.11 διὰ … εἶναι διὰ τὸ … εἶναι Casaubon 1620 EP
Str. 12.3.11 -υτον Αὐτόλυκον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Laur. 28.15 (z) s.l.
Str. 12.3.20 καλ- Χαλύβης Wilhelm Xylander 1571 E et Eust.
Str. 12.3.20 βρέγ- Βρίγες Lucas Holste 1684 Eust. Od. 1395.52sq.
Str. 12.3.22 οὐδὲ τ. … οὔτε τ. οὔτε τὴν … οὔτε τὴν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.22 -δόνης Μυγδονίης Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.22 ἀμαζό- ᾿Αλαζώνων Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Eust. Il. 363.19–21
Str. 12.3.22 ἀμαζό- ᾿Αλαζώνων Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.22 ν. δ᾽ ἐν Ζ. νῦν δὲ Ζελείᾳ Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.22 πύγελλ- Πύγελα C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Eust. Il. 363.15 sq.
Str. 12.3.22 -όνας ᾿Αμαζῶνας Gustav Kramer 1847 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.23 οὔθ᾽ οἷς οὐδ᾽ ο. Theodorus Agallianus s.xv med. Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.23 νομο- τοποθετῶν Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.24 -αντας … -αντας πολεμήσοντας … συμμαχήσοντας Theodorus Agallianus s.xv med. Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.25 τίβιρ- τίβιος Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.26 καίπερ καὶ καθάπερ κ. Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.26 ἐπιφ- εὐεπιφόρως Cobet 1876 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Misc.
Str. 12.3.27 -όμενον γνωρίζομεν Madvig 1871 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 12.3.27 τ. τὸν λόγον ταυτολογήσομεν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.3.27 ὕαλ- Ὕλλον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 PX
Str. 12.3.30 -ρία ζωγρεῖα Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.3.37 -ῆτις Ζηλῖτις C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Dac
Str. 12.4.2 -όνων Χαλκηδονίων Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.4.6 -ρία Τήρεια C. H. Tzschucke 1808 E et Eust.
Str. 12.4.7 ἐρυμο- ἐρρυμοτομημένος Paulus Leopardus 1604 DE
Str. 12.5.2 βλάϋρ- Βλαῦδον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 12.7.3 τῇ κ. τῷ κόμμει Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.7.3 καταμιχ- κατενεχθὲν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.7.3 γέφυραι γ. δ᾽ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.8.2 τ. π. … Μαγνησίαν τὴν ὑπ’ αὐτῷ -αν τῆς π. … Μ. τ. ὑ. α. χώρας C. G. Groskurd 1831 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.8.5 -ωνα Λύκον Casaubon 1620 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 12.8.13 κ. ἡ π. -ίαν κ. τ. καὶ ἡ πρὸς Πισιδίᾳ καὶ τὰ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 12.8.16 -ὶν κοραξὴν Salmasius 1622 EF
Str. 12.8.21 κειρ- Κερβήσιον Theodorus Agallianus s.xv med. Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.2 -ὸν Γράνικον C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 13.1.5 ἤδη ἡ Ἴδη Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv EF
Str. 13.1.21 π. ἀρίσβ- πόλις Ἄρισβα Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.25 καὶ ἅπερ καθάπερ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.30 -γένης ἀλιτενής Paulus Leopardus 1568 CpcE et exc. Urb.
Str. 13.1.35 ἔχ- διέχων Jacobus Palmerius 1668 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.35 -κοντο ἵκανεν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.36 εἰ εἰς τ. εἰ τοσοῦτον Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.36 εἰ … τόδε εἰ … τότε Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.36 νε- νηῶν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.42 κ. π. ἔ. κατά τι παλαιὸν ἔθος Cobet 1876 X et Eust. Misc.
Str. 13.1.46 Ἔστι δ᾽ ἡ μετὰ … ἡ … περαία Ἔ. δὴ μ. … ἡ … π. Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.46 σιγι- Σιγειάδα C. G. Siebelis 1801 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.48 τραγεσ- Τραγασαῖον Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.53 συμβῆναι δὲ τοῖς Λατίνοις σ. δ. τῆς -ης Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 BCF
Str. 13.1.56 -αι πιονία Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Xq
Str. 13.1.57 ἑρμεί- Ἑρμίαν … Ἑρμίας Walter Leaf 1923 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.59 κ. ἡ ν. χ. καὶ νῦν ἡ χώρα Gustav Kramer 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.59 σχεῖν ἴσχειν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.61 Λυδοῖς τοῖς πρότερον Λ. π. Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 13.1.62 -εος Κίλλαιος Gustav Kramer 1852 exc. Urb.
Str. 13.1.64 μῦς τις/μιστὶς μείς τις Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.1.67 χείμαῤῥ- χίμαρος Casaubon 1620 CpcDFpc
Str. 13.1.67 ἑρμίν- Ἑρμίου Walter Leaf 1923 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 13.1.67 Ἐλαΐτην Ἐλαϊτικὸν Wilhelm Dörpfeld 1928 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 13.1.69 τε καὶ … καὶ ᾿Α. δὲ καὶ τε καὶ … καὶ ᾿Αταρνέως καὶ Adamantios Korais 1817 EX
Str. 13.3.3 ἐπ- ἀπαναστάσεις Adamantios Korais 1817 Eust. Il. 357.26–8
Str. 13.3.6 τεθεῖσθαι τ. φασιν C. G. Groskurd 1831 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.4.6 -βόλος κεραυνόβολος Adamantios Korais 1817 Eust. Il. 346.33–40
Str. 13.4.6 συνῆπ- συνῆκται Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 13.4.14 πεπληρ- πεπηρωμένων Casaubon 1620 BmgDsl
Str. 14.1.8 λατομικὸς κ. Λατμικὸς κόλπος Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.1.8 φθιρ- φθειρῶν C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.1.15 -ὰς Παρθενία C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.1.20 σκολιὰ Σκόπα Hemsterhuis 2005 Athous Vatop. 655 (B) apud Radt; marg.
Str. 14.1.31 τὸ ἀ. τ. τοῦ ἀπὸ τοῦ C. G. Siebelis 1803 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 14.1.32 τήϊον Τηΐων C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 14.1.37 στορεννύ- στορνύντες Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E) s.l.
Str. 14.1.39 -τίου Πακτύου Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.1.40 οὗ τ. οὐ τὰ Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 14.1.44 ἥρ- Κόρης Ezechiel Spanheim 1707 Paris. gr. 1393 (C) apud Van Almeloveen
Str. 14.2.1 παραλί- Καρίας Gustav Kramer 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 14.2.3 διά τε κ. διά τε τὰ καύματα Adamantios Korais 1800 Vat. gr. 482 (E) Traité d'Hippocrate
Str. 14.2.5 λ. … -οι λειτουργίαι … ὀψωνιαζόμεναι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.2.8 κάμει- Κάμιρον T. J. van Almeloveen 1707 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 14.2.10 τ. -ον τὴν Ῥόδην Casaubon 1620 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D)
Str. 14.2.21 ὁ κρόν- Κρόνος Paul Cascorbi 1879 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 14.2.22 -σσ- Ἰασὸν C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 14.2.24 ἀλβ- Λαβιῆνον Gregorio Tifernate 1469 Vat. gr. 1329 (F) 'Labienum'
Str. 14.2.28 ἡ -ὴ -α κ. -ὴ τῇ πολλῇ συνηϑείᾳ καὶ ἐπιπλοκῇ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.2.29 φωκέ- Φώκαιαν C. H. Tzschucke 1808 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.3.5 φαραγγίῳ κείμενον φάραγγι ᾠκημένον Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.3.5 κράγ- ἄκρας Wilhelm Xylander 1571 E et Eust.
Str. 14.3.6 -οις σταδίους Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 14.3.7 λιρύμ- Λιμύρου Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 14.5.4 εἰς ῥώμην ἐκ Ῥώμης Gustav Kramer 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 14.5.7 τ. ὄ. τ. Ἰ. τοῦ ὄρους ὑπὸ τοῦ Ἰσαυρικοῦ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) [.]πο
Str. 14.5.17 ἀλήνιον π. ᾿Αλήϊον πεδίον Wilhelm Xylander 1571 DpcE
Str. 14.5.26 κ. τ. ὕ. ἔθν- κατὰ τὰ ὕστερα ἔθη Casaubon 1620 BCDEF
Str. 14.5.28 Κητί- Κητείους Wilhelm Xylander 1571 E et Eust.
Str. 14.6.2 ν. δ. προκ- νησία δύο προσκείμενα Casaubon 1620 Epc
Str. 14.6.2 ἑλν- Σελινοῦντα Guarino Veronese 1469 Dpc 'Selinuntem'
Str. 14.6.3 εἰς ἣν ἧς Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 14.6.3 ἡ Δῆλός Ἡδύλος Casaubon 1620 Cpc
Str. 15.1.10 -ίᾳ ἑσπέρᾳ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 15.1.17 ἀπὸ γαίας δὲ ἀπογαίας δὲ Adamantios Korais 1817 BCDpc
Str. 15.1.18 ψύχ- ὀ. τυχόντος ὀρυκτοῦ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.1.18 θερίζεσθαι … πτίζεσθαι θ. … πτίσσ- Casaubon 1620 Dpc
Str. 15.1.21 κατακαμφθέντα ἄλλην -ας ἄ. Adamantios Korais 1817 Bpc
Str. 15.1.34 πλημμυρίδας … ἀπογαίας π. … -ους Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.1.35 π. -ῶν περὶ αὐτοῦ Adamantios Korais 1817 FP
Str. 15.1.36 ἔχουσαν Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 15.1.43 ˙ τ. οὖν ˙ ταῖς γοῦν Meineke 1853 Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 15.1.57 ὡς ὅτι ὅτι C. G. Groskurd 1833 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 15.1.60 ὑγρ- ἀγραύλους Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.1.61 . κ. διδάσκ- . καρτερίαν δ᾽ ἀσκεῖν Cobet 1876 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) Misc.
Str. 15.1.61 ἔς τ. εἴς τινα Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 15.1.62 εἴρηται ε. δὲ Adamantios Korais 1817 FP
Str. 15.1.65 τάξει ᾗ Ταξίλῃ Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.1.66 π. -ήχη πλατεῖαν τρίπηχυν Adamantios Korais 1817 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D) s.l.
Str. 15.1.68 -όντι ἀποθανὼν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.1.73 -ληλειμμ- ἐπαληλιμμένον Adamantios Korais 1817 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D)
Str. 15.2.2 ἡ πλείστ φ. ἡ πλείστη πλὴν φοινίκων Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.2.2 πίττ- πτίσσουσι Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.2.5 -λίπ- κατελείπετο Adamantios Korais 1817 Dac
Str. 15.2.14 -ρ- πυκνόρρωγά … μεγαλόρρωγα Casaubon 1620 Marc. gr. XI 6 (D) s.l.
Str. 15.2.14 ὃν πέρσαι ὅνπερ Barnabé Brisson †1590 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) président du Parlement de Paris
Str. 15.3.1 ἀνεμώ- ἀμμώδης Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 15.3.2 ἐπίβουλ- ἐπήβολον Casaubon 1620 Dpc
Str. 15.3.6 -λαβε τ. μετέβαλε τοὔνομα Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.3.8 γεν- ἐγενόμην Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 15.3.10 ἀ. μ. μὲν … δ. δὲ ἀπορουμένους μὲν μακρῶν … δεομένους δὲ Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.3.15 ναΐτ- ᾿Αναΐτιδος Gregorio Tifernate 1469 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P) 'Anaitidis'
Str. 15.3.18 -νοῦντες σφενδονῶντες Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 15.3.19 Δειπνοῦσι Δ. δὲ Theodorus Agallianus s.xv med. Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 15.3.23 νείλ- Νίνῳ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 16.1.5 κ. αὐτή καὶ αὕτη Henrik van Herwerden 1887 Vat. gr. 1329 (F) Mnem.
Str. 16.1.5 μ. ἐστὶν μεγάλη ᾽στιν Maximus Planudes s.xiii/xiv Palat. gr. 398 (X)
Str. 16.1.10 γὰρ ὑπ᾽ ὑπ᾽ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 16.1.11 σταδί- ἑ. σταθμοῖς ἑπτὰ J. R. Forster 1776 Vat. gr. 1329 (F) apud Spelman, The Expedition
Str. 16.1.16 δυνάμει … Παρθικὴ πόλις δυνάμει … -ῇ π. Gustav Kramer 1852 Bac
Str. 16.2.4 -νίας ᾿Αντιγονείας Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.2.18 κατέτρεχον Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 16.2.20 τραχῶν- Τράχωνες C. H. Tzschucke 1811 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 16.2.25 τρυβλίον -οῦν π. τρυβλίον χαλκοῦ πρίασθαι Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.2.26 ἐλήφ-/desunt ἐλείφθησαν Gustav Kramer 1852 Athous Vatop. 655 (B)
Str. 16.2.29 -ύων τ᾽ κρομμυών τ᾽ Meineke 1852 Vat. gr. 482 (E) Vindiciarum
Str. 16.2.32 -ους μῆκος Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.2.41 -οὺς Ἱερικοῦς C. H. Tzschucke 1811 BCD
Str. 16.2.44 ἐκ κλεισσ- ἐκ λισσάδων Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.2.44 ζ. κ. δὲ ζέοντας κατοικίας τε Adamantios Korais 1817 DE
Str. 16.3.2 ν. ἰκάριον νῆσον Ἴκαρον Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.3.7 ἐξωγύρ- ἐξ ᾽Ωγύρου Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 16.4.2 πόλις πόλις δ' Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.5 ὅρμον ὅρμον ὃν Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.5 οὕτως δ. ἀ. ὄντως δὲ ἀκάθαρτον Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 16.4.8 τὸ σούχου ἵδρυμα Τοσούχου ἵ. Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.8 ἐλεφάντων ὁμώνυμον αὐτῶν ἐ. ὁ. -ῷ Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1393 (C) s.l.
Str. 16.4.12 -ας ἐκλειφθεῖσα Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.14 λοφώδεις ποιοῦντες ὑπορύττοντες λ. -ος ὑ. Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.14 φοίνικάς φοινικῶνας Gregorio Tifernate 1469 Palat. gr. 398 (X) 'palmeta'
Str. 16.4.14 πλέον ἀκμάζ- πλεονάζει Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F) marg.
Str. 16.4.16 ῥ. πίλ- ῥαβδωτοῖς σπίλοις Salmasius 1620 Vat. gr. 1329 (F) in Hist. Aug.
Str. 16.4.18 ἐλα- Αἰλανίτου … Αἰλανίτης Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E) s.l./in text.
Str. 16.4.20 οὔτ᾽ ἐ. ν. οὔτ᾽ ἐ. εἴτ᾽ ἐπὶ ν. εἴτ᾽ ἐπὶ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.24 κειμένην A.-J. Letronne 1819 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.24 τῶν ὠνηθῆναι τ. ὀνη- Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.26 χιτῶν- ἀχίτωνες Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.26 -ειν ἐπιχωριάζει Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.26 καθάπερ χρυσὸν καὶ ἄργυρον κ. -ὸς κ. -ος Casaubon 1620 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 16.4.27 τίνας εἴτε τινὰς Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.1.2 προσ- προπεσὼν C. G. Groskurd 1834 DE
Str. 17.1.4 κη- κειρίᾳ Wilhelm Xylander 1571 CpcDpc
Str. 17.1.5 τά τε ἄλλα καὶ τά γε ἄ. κ. Adamantios Korais 1817 DF
Str. 17.1.7 τὸ μὲν … τὸ δ᾽ τῷ μὲν … τῷ δ᾽ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.1.9 -νιον Τιμώνειον Cobet 1876 Vat. gr. 482 (E) Misc.
Str. 17.1.12 καὶ γὰρ οἱ μιγάδες κ. γ. εἰ μ. Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 DF
Str. 17.1.18 ὁ μὲν ἐλαΐτης ὁ Μενελαΐτης Jacobus Palmerius 1668 EF
Str. 17.1.18 ὑπὸ ἀπὸ Adamantios Korais 1817 EF
Str. 17.1.18 Πτολεμαίου καλουμένου Π. -ος Jacobus Palmerius 1668 EF
Str. 17.1.18 προσ- προϊόντι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.1.23 -αος μενελαΐς Nikos Litinas 1999 Vat. gr. 482 (E) APF; s.l.
Str. 17.1.24 τετταράκοντα σταδ- τετταρακοντασταδίους Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.1.36 μήτε τὸ ὕδωρ μήτε δὴ μ. τ. ὕ. μηδὲ δὴ Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.1.37 -ειν ἔχει Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.1.39 τοῦ Μούριδος τ. Μοίρ- Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.2.4 -γοῦσιν ὀλολυγόσιν Salmasius 1629 EX
Str. 17.2.4 . ζῷα . ζῷα δ᾽ Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.1 τὰς Μαρμαρίδας τοὺς Μ. Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.3 πλη- πηροῦν Thomas Tyrwhitt 1783 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.10 -ειν ἔχει A.-J. Letronne 1819 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.11 -ης πεντάπηχυς Adamantios Korais 1817 Dpc
Str. 17.3.13 -ιαίων μασσυλιέων Gottfried Bernhardy 1828 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.14 -πιον ᾿Ασκληπιεῖον Adamantios Korais 1817 DpcE
Str. 17.3.14 αὐτ- αὑτῇ Adamantios Korais 1817 Paris. gr. 1393 (C)
Str. 17.3.15 τρόπ- πόλεμον Adamantios Korais 1817 EF
Str. 17.3.15 ἐτρέ- ἐτράποντο Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.16 φησι φασι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Str. 17.3.16 κορσ- Κοσσούρας Gustav Kramer 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.16 π. δ᾽ πόλιν Thomas Falconer 1807 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.16 καὶ π. πόλιν Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.20 -νιάδα Τριτωνίδα Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.20 ὁ ε. μ. εἰς μέρη Wilhelm Xylander 1571 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.22 -ρίαν ᾿Αννικερείαν Meineke 1853 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.22 κατοικίαι καὶ ὑδρεῖαι κ. κ. ὑδρεῖα Adamantios Korais 1817 DpcEP
Str. 17.3.22 -λιπ- ἀπολείπουσα Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.22 Κατά- Καταβαθμός Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.22 τὸ … ᾿Α. κ. … Κ. καλεῖται … Κυρηναία˙ τὸ … ᾿Αλεξάνδρειαν Gustav Kramer 1852 Vat. gr. 2306 + 2061 A (P)
Str. 17.3.23 ὀρυζο- οὐ ῥιζοτροφεῖ Madvig 1871 EP
Str. 17.3.24 Π. κ. ὑ. τ. β. Παρθυαῖοι καὶ οἱ ὑπὲρ τούτων βάρβαροι Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 482 (E)
Str. 17.3.25 Λ. δὲ Λιβύην τε Adamantios Korais 1817 Vat. gr. 1329 (F)
Strato Com. fr. 1.20 βοῦν δ' βοῦν Theodor Kock 1880–8 P.Cair. 65445
Strato Com. fr. 1.44 εκαϲτον Cobet 1840 P.Cair. 65445
Sud. β 558 ἀναψα- ἀλλαξαμένη Gottfried Bernhardy 1853 Marc. 448 (M) s.l.
Sud. γ 355 Παρμασίρου/παρθένου Μασίρου Παρθαμασίρου Gottfried Bernhardy 1853 Laur. Plut. 55.1 (F)
Sud. ε 460 -βληκεν ἀποβέβηκεν Meineke 1823 Phot. z Men. et Phil. p. 15
Sud. κ 90 Καθιγ- καθαγνίσαι Hemsterhuis 1834 GI apud Gaisford
Sud. κ 2079 deest σημᾶναι Dindorf 1838 Laur. Plut. 55.1 (F) ad schol. Ar.
Sud. μ 1305 ἡμᾶς ὑμᾶς Maas 1922 Paris. gr. 2625 + 2626 (A) ad Jul. Ep.
Sud. π 926 προσφ- προφέρειν Bekker 1854 Phot. z Suidae Lex. p. 836a
Synag. 52.22 αἱρεθίζειν αἱρετίζειν Theodor Kock 1880–8 Phot. α 642
Synag. 177.16 ἀωρὶ θανάτωι ἀωροθάνατος Dindorf 1835 Phot. α 3493
Synag. 353.9 ἀτη- ἀτειρής F. W. Wagner 1852 Phot. α 474
Theoc. 2.35–36a schol. -δρομος πρόδομος Samuel Butler 1816 Bodl. Canon. Gr. 86 (Gaisford)
Theoc. 2.82 μοι περὶ μεῦ πυρὶ Walter Taylor 1821 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) apud Briggs; μ]ευ
Theoc. 2.155 ἄλλοτ' ἄλλοκ ̓ Brunck 1772–6 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 7.7 εὖ γ ̓ εὖ Hermann P.Oxy. 2064 (Po)
Theoc. 14.13 Ἆπις Ἆγις Meineke P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 14.29 οὖν ων Brunck 1772–6 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.7 ἐμ' αιεν Sitzler P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.25 εἶπες/εἶπας καὶ εἴπαις αν Jonathan Toup P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.37 προτέθεικα ποτέθηκα Valckenaer P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.41 -ρυε δάκρυ ̓ Porson P.Hamb. III 201 (Pg)
Theoc. 15.51 -νοίμ- γενώμεθα G. H Schaefer P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.59 ἄμμιν ἁμὶν H. L. Ahrens 1855 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.98 σπέρχιν/πέρχην πέρυσιν Reiske P.Oxy. XIII 1618 (Pu) et P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) πέρυ]σιν
Theoc. 15.100 -λασας ἐφίλησας H. L. Ahrens 1855 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 15.105 φοροῖσαι φέροισαι Hemsterhuis 1773 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) apud Valckenaer
Theoc. 15.145 -ώτερον σοφώτατον J. A. Hartung P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) ]τον
Theoc. 17.74 -οῖο/-οῖου αἰδοῖοι Casaubon P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 18.25 τ. οὐδ ̓ ἄν τις τᾶν οὐδ ̓ ἅτις H. L. Ahrens 1855 P.Oxy. L 3552 (Op)
Theoc. 18.48 -βου σέβευ C. W. Ahlwardt Pa1
Theoc. 22.8 -νοῦ ἐξα- οὐρανὸν εἰσανιόντα Meineke P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) ]σανιοντα
Theoc. 22.40 πεφύκασιν πεφυκεσαν Guillaume Morel 1561 P.Oxy. XV 1806 (Pi)
Theoc. 24.56 συμπ- ἐκπλήγδην J. A. Hartung P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 24.69 ἐμὲ με C. F. Graefe 1815 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) Epist. crit. p. 106
Theoc. 24.95 νέεσθαι νεέσθω Hermann P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 24.116 -θι τηλόθε Frederick H. M. Blaydes P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 26.28 τῶνδ ̓ ἐμόγησε τῶνδε μογήσαι H. L. Ahrens 1855 P.Ant. III 207 (Pa)
Theoc. 28.5 τὺ δὲ τυίδε Hermann P.Oxy. L 3551 (Ox)
Theoc. 30.30 βούλε- βόλλεται Wilamowitz P.Ant. III 207 (Pa) βολλετα[
Theon Rhetor 60.5 ἴδιον δ. διήγημα Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 60.6–7 ὅταν ὅ τε C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 60.8 μὴ μ. μικρὸν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 64.3 ταῦτα ταὐτὰ Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 64.18 μὴ δὲ μὴ δεῖ Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 64.24 -μένῳ διατεθρυλημένα Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 64.25 ἐργασ- ἐξεργασίας Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 66.22 σελίνου Σειληνοῦ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 67.2 δεῖ -ειν δὴ ἁρμόττοι C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 67.15 om. περὶ Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 68.2 om. γενέσθαι Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 68.4 μόσχ- μοιχοῦ J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 68.6 -γόρου Ἀρισταγόρας Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 68.11 ὡς τὰ τὰ J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 68.33 -ίω Καλλίᾳ Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 69.31 μ. δὲ μᾶλλον Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 69.32 Εὔφρονος Ἐφόρου J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 70.1 ὅτι ὅτε Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 70.16 om. αὐτῶν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 72.29 om. δὲ Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 72.31 ὅτι ὅτου Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 73.17 αἰόλ- Ἡσίοδος Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 73.19 κ. δ. κ. Κ. καὶ Κ. καὶ δὴ καὶ Κόννις ὁ Κίλιξ J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 73.23 ἀλκαινὸν ᾿Αλκαϊκὸν Petrus Victorius 1834 Sard. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 74.24 om. ὡς C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 74.28 αὐτοῦ αὑτῶν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 76.15 ὅπερ ὥσπερ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 76.27 -νύμως ὁμωνύμοις C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 76.28 -ροῦντος ἀφαιρεθέντος C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 77.2 C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 77.8 τ. τόπον ἢ χ. τὸν χρόνον C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 77.11 om. δ᾽ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 78.9 α. ἢ μ. κ. π. καὶ αὐξήσεσιν ἢ μειώσεσιν καὶ παρεκβάσεσι Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 79.21 κάλλιστα μάλιστα Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 80.17 καὶ τὰ θ. κατὰ θέρη Petrus Victorius 1834 vers. Armen. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 80.22 κ. τ. κ. τ. καιροῦ καὶ τρίτου καὶ τετάρτου Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 81.25 κεῖν- κλεινὸν Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 82.20 κ. δ. ἄ. ἢ καὶ δι᾽ ἄγνοιαν Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 85.3 ἰδοὺ ἰδίου Petrus Victorius 1997 vers. Armen. apud Patillon
Theon Rhetor 85.5 τὸ τ. Θ. τοὺς Θηβαίους Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 85.6 τὸ μὴ α. τὸ μὲν αἰσθανομένους Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 85.16 πολλοὺς τ. Θ. τῶν Θηβαίων C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 87.8 ἐ. τούτοις λ. ἐν πρώτοις λήξαι C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 87.19 ἀπαγ- προσαγορεύοντες J. H. Lederlin 1834 vers. Armen. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 87.20 προσ- ὑποτιθέμενοι C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 87.21 ἐ. γὰρ ἐνδέχεται C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 87.22 εἰσφ- ἐκφέρειν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 88.8 π. ἦσαν πλείους Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 88.28 εἶτα ε. εἰσῆλθον Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 88.30 -ήσομαι διηγησόμεθα Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 89.1 ἕξ- ἔχετε Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 89.14 -χόμεθα εὐχοίμεθα C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 89.25 ἐπὶ πρ. ὕ. περὶ πρῶτον ὕπνον C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 89.30 ἐπαγ- ἀπαγγέλλειν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 91.6 πρὶν πρῴην Joachim Camerarius 1541 Armen. et Sard.
Theon Rhetor 91.20 ἐκτεθραμμένος εὐτεθραμ- G. A. Hirschig 1849 vers. Armen. p. 23
Theon Rhetor 91.24 πρόκ- πρόσκειται Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 91.29 ἑαυτῷ ἐν ἑ. Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 91.32 τέων αὐτέων Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 92.12 τοσ- τοιοῦτος Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 92.16 προσ- προθέντα Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 92.18 παρὰ Μ. τῇ Χ. ἐ. παρὰ Μενάνδρῳ ἐν τῇ Χρηστῇ ἐπικλήρῳ Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 92.19 om. πάντων Petrus Victorius 1997 vers. Armen. apud Patillon
Theon Rhetor 92.22 λαβ- λαλεῖν Petrus Victorius 1834 vers. Armen. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 92.27 -οῦ μικρὸν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 93.13 τρόπ- τόπων Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 95.12 τῶν περὶ Π. περὶ τῶν Πελειάδων C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 96.9 ὑ. τ. αὐτοῦ ἵ. ὑπὸ τῶν αὑτοῦ ἵπτων C. E. Finckh 1834 Sard.
Theon Rhetor 96.22 -μονεύματα ἀπομνημόνευμα J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 98.2 ἐπ- ἀπήρκει C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 99.18 ἀντί- μετάληψιν J. H. Lederlin 1834 Armen. et Dox. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 101.13 π. ἕ. κ. δύο πρ. δύο κ. πλείους πρ. πλείους πρὸς ἕνα καὶ πρὸς δύο καὶ πρὸς πλείους C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 104.34 -νυμεν δεικνύωμεν Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 105.12 ὅσον οἷον Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 105.22 ἐὰν ἂν Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 108.33 ν. ἢ π. σ. ἀ. νομοθετῶν ἢ ποιητῶν ἢ σοφῶν ἀνδρῶν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 110.8 κ. τ. ἀ. καὶ αἱ τούτοις ἀκολουθοῦσαι Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 111.2 ἀ. δ᾽ ἐ. ἀντιπαραβάλλοντα ἐκείνων Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 111.33 -τίαν Λεόντιον Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 112.2 ἐ. τῇ -ῇ ἐκλάμπει ἡ ἀρετή Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 112.10 Τ. δια. Τὰς δὲ διαβολὰς Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 113.18 διαβολάς, ἂς ἔφαμεν δ., ὡς ἔ. Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 115.1 -ρέδρα Σπαρέθρα J. G. Scheffer 1670 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 115.9 ἕνα παρ᾿ ἀμφοῖν ἕ. περὶ ἀ. C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 116.19 -δίδομεν ἀποδιδῶμεν Christian Walz 1832 Armen. et Sard.
Theon Rhetor 116.20 τρόπ- τόπῳ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 116.24 om. ἢ ἀποτρέπομεν Leonhard Spengel 1854 Vindob. phil. gr. 130 (Sard.)
Theon Rhetor 117.14 ε. κατὰ β. εἰ καὶ κατὰ βραχὺ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 118.6 θ. χρῆσθαι θέσεις C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 118.22 α. δ. κατὰ τ. αἱ δὲ καὶ τρόπων C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 119.4 μὲν γὰρ καὶ νὺξ ἡ μὲν γὰρ νὺξ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 119.6–7 τῶν -μένων τῷ προειρημένῳ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 120.7 λευκότεραί λευκόπτεροί C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 120.27 ἀναφέρεται ἀναστρέφεται C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 120.29 τῷ -ῷ -ῳ τὸν αὐτὸν τρόπον Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 121.17 εἰ γαμητέον ἢ οὔ εἰ γ., ἢ οὕτως˙ εἰ γ. ἢ οὔ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 121.19 δ. π. τοῦτο τὸ δ. διὰ πάντων τούτων τὸ δηλούμενον C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 122.25 περὶ παρ᾽ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 124.31 ἐπεὶ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 125.33 ταττόμενά τάττωμεν, ὧν Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 126.15 προσήκαντο νοῦν προσεῖχον τὸν ν. Georg Veesenmeyer 1834 vers. Armen. apud Finckh
Theon Rhetor 127.7 αὑτὸν αὐτοῦ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 129.9 -άσομεν ἀνασκευάζομεν Christian Walz 1832 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 129.13 περιττὴν π. περὶ τὴν προφοράν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 129.14 ἡ π. τ. ὄ., ἡ δὲ ἡ δὲ περὶ τὸ ὄνομα, ἡ δὲ C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 130.6 φησι φήσῃ Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 130.10 -ναται δύνηται Leonhard Spengel 1854 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 130.13 ἔστι Joachim Camerarius 1541 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 130.26 εἴ τις οἷον εἴ τις Daniel Heinsius 1626 vers. Armen.
Theon Rhetor 130.35 ἄν-/εὔν- ἄγνοιαν C. E. Finckh 1834 vers. Armen.
Theopomp.Com. fr. 73 om. ὃς F. J. Bast 1811 Phot. α 632 ap. Schaefer, Greg. Cor. p. 511
Thphr. Char. 1.1 ἐ. χ. ἐπὶ τὸ χεῖρον Casaubon 1592–1612 Monac. gr. 505 (M) a.c.
Thphr. Char. 2.2 -ῆι ἐνθυμεῖ Henrik van Herwerden 1870 Bodl. Barocci 194
Thphr. Char. 2.13 πάντη Diels 1909 Bucarest 602
Thphr. Char. 5.2 deest π̣ε̣ρ̣[ι]β̣[α]λ̣[ων] Henrik van Herwerden 1870 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1) Bijdrage p. 22
Thphr. Char. 5.2 ἔτι αἰνῶν επαινων Peter Needham 1712 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.3 εἷς εἶναι τις ε. J. C. de Pauw 1737 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.5 -αγόµενος προσ[αγαγο]µ̣ε̣[νος Cobet 1874 Π1ce
Thphr. Char. 5.5 καθίστασθαι καθι σασ]θαι Cobet 1874 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.6 χρίσµ- χ]ρι µατι Henrik van Herwerden 1870 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.9 αὐλίδιον παλαιστριαῖον παλαιστ̣ρ̣[ι]δι̣ο̣[ν Cobet 1874 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.10 χρὴ νῦν ἀεὶ χρην]ν̣[υ]ν̣αι H. E. Foss 1858 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 5.10 ἐπιδ- ε]ν[επιδεικν]υ̣σθα̣[ι Cobet 1858 P.Herc. 1457 (Π1)
Thphr. Char. 14.6 λαβών λ. τι J. M. Gesner 1734 e Chrest. Gr.
Thphr. Char. 19.5 σφύζεσθαι χρίεσθαι Adamantios Korais 1799 c1
Thphr. Char. 30.6 ἀπιὼν ἄγων Thomas Gale 1688 Vat. gr. 110 (V)
Thuc. 1.2.6 μετοικίας ἐς μετοικεσίας F. W. Ullrich 1862 γρH2 Beitr. z. Erkl. p. 174
Thuc. 1.4 καθήρει ἐκάθηρε Cobet 1873 Aristid. V.L. p. 149
Thuc. 1.6.5 πέπαυται -αυνται Reiske 1761 MS Anim. p. 5
Thuc. 1.7 ἀνῳκισμένοι -ναι Johannes Classen 1862 Neap. III-B-10 (Nf)
Thuc. 1.9.3 τε del. K. W. Krüger 1860 Paris. gr. 1736 (Pg)
Thuc. 1.9.3 -τιὰν στρατείαν Aemilius Portus 1594 Paris. gr. 1791-2 (Pb)
Thuc. 1.10.2 om. τῆς Henri Estienne 1588 Paris. gr. 1637 (Pd)
Thuc. 1.11.1 ἐπειδὴ δὲ ἐπειδή τε Bekker 1832 Ud Pl1
Thuc. 1.28.5 δὲ del. Henri Estienne 1588 Neap. III-B-6 (Nb)
Thuc. 1.29.4 -ναγό- ἀνταναγαγόμενοι Johannes Classen 1862 Ud Pl1
Thuc. 1.31.3 -ευσό- πρεσβευόμενοι E. F. Poppo 1843 Μb Pf Vm
Thuc. 1.32.3 ἡμῖν ἡμῶν Hude 1898 U2
Thuc. 1.33.1 -θησθε καταθεῖσθε Bekker 1832 Ud Cac
Thuc. 1.35.5 ἦσαν εἰσὶν Herbert Richards 1898 S2 CQ 7 (1913) 154; Wadham
Thuc. 1.37.2 δὲ δὴ K. W. Krüger 1860 J2
Thuc. 1.44.1 -ραίᾳ ὑστέρᾳ Cobet 1862 Paris. gr. 1735 (Pf) Mnem. 11 (1862) 364
Thuc. 1.66 προεγ- προσεγεγένηντο F. W. Ullrich 1850 Paris. gr. 1733 (Pe) Beitr. z. Kr. 1 p. 27 sqq.
Thuc. 1.69.2 ἐπὶ ὡς ἐπὶ K. W. Krüger 1860 Pi2
Thuc. 1.73.1 ἡμᾶς ὑμᾶς K. W. Krüger 1860 Paris. gr. 1734 (H)
Thuc. 1.74.3 αὐτοὶ del. K. W. Krüger 1860 Paris. gr. 1734 (H)
Thuc. 1.93.3 -οὺς -οὺς -ους αὐτοῖς ναυτικοῖς γεγενημένοις Hude 1898 J2
Thuc. 1.93.5 ἐγγώ- εὐγώνιοι W. Meiners 1940 Paris. gr. 1733 (Pe) RhM N.S. 89 (1940) 234 sq.
Thuc. 1.95.5 -να τινας Johannes Classen 1862 Ot Fac
Thuc. 1.105.6 -ρας ἡμέραις Madvig 1871 F6 Adv. p. 308
Thuc. 1.106.1 Henrik van Herwerden 1877 Vk J2
Thuc. 1.110.4 Ἀθηναίων Ἀθηνῶν Bekker 1832 P.Oxy. XXXIV 2703 α[θη]ν̣ων
Thuc. 1.112.4 λιμ- λοιμοῦ Julius Beloch 1912–27 J2 Griech. Gesch. 2, 1² 137
Thuc. 1.120.5 ὅμοια ὁμοίᾳ Reiske 1761 K E1 γρH2 Anim. p. 14
Thuc. 1.124.1 ταῦτα κτλ. ταὐτὰ Reiske 1761 J2 Anim. p. 14
Thuc. 1.127.1 om. ἂν I. M. Stahl 1875 Mb Vm aliique recc. Qu. Gr. p. 10
Thuc. 1.128.5 οἳ del. Bekker 1832 Neap. III-B-6 (Nb)
Thuc. 1.128.7 -πει ἀποπέμπω Henri Estienne 1588 Pi2
Thuc. 2.8.1 δὴ δὲ C. F. Haacke 1820 Lugd. Periz. Q 40 (X)
Thuc. 2.11.6 οὕτω del. Madvig 1871 P.Oxy. XIII 1621 Adv. p. 309
Thuc. 2.11.9 ἡμῖν ὑμῖν Hude 1898 P.Oxy. VI 853 et P.Oxy. XIII 1621
Thuc. 2.13.4 ἦν del. F. L. Abresch 1755 Neap. III-B-5 (Na)
Thuc. 2.15.1 ἐπὶ ἀπὸ Naber 1886 J2 Mnemosyne N.S. 14 (1886) 93
Thuc. 2.16.2 -λιπόντες καταλείποντες Gottfried Boehme 1856 J1
Thuc. 2.34.1 πρῶτον πρώτων Cobet 1873 A4 V.L. p. 437
Thuc. 2.39.2 τήν τῇ H. Stein 1893 Pi2 Programm des Gymnasiums zu Oldenburg (1895) 15
Thuc. 2.49.5 σῶμα τὸ σ. Hude 1898 J2
Thuc. 2.63.1 -θεσθε ἀπήχθησθε Cobet 1873 Ck Ms Vm V.L. p. 439
Thuc. 2.67.3 E. F. Poppo 1843 Vk
Thuc. 2.67.3 -λλον ἔμελλε E. F. Poppo 1843 P.Oxy. XIII 1622
Thuc. 2.67.3 δὲ/om. δὴ Hude 1898 Pi2
Thuc. 2.79.6 ἐνέ- ἐπέκειντο K. W. Krüger 1860 P.Berol. inv. 13236
Thuc. 2.80.8 -ρήσειν προσχωρῆσαι I. M. Stahl 1886 G2 J2 Qu. Gr. p. 22
Thuc. 2.89.2 καὶ del. Hude 1898 Pk2
Thuc. 2.93.4 φρούριον φ. γὰρ Henrik van Herwerden 1877 J2
Thuc. 2.96.1 μέρη γένη E. F. Poppo 1843 J5
Thuc. 3.6.2 -ρᾶς ἀγορὰ K. W. Krüger 1860 Pi3
Thuc. 3.10.4 ἐπαγ- ἐπειγομένους Ludwig Ross (?) n.d. Pk2
Thuc. 3.10.6 προγιγν- προγενομένοις Hude 1898 recc.
Thuc. 3.11.3 ἄκ- ἑκόντας Henri Estienne 1564 Pi3
Thuc. 3.12.3 ἀντεπιμ- ἀντιμελλῆσαι Duker-Wasse 1731 schol. Φ
Thuc. 3.23.4 χείλους τείχους Gomme 1956 Kac
Thuc. 3.26.1 ἔχ- ἄρχοντα Henri Estienne 1564 J2
Thuc. 3.26.2 δὲ del. K. W. Krüger 1860 Pl3 Va2
Thuc. 3.26.3 ἐβεβ- ἐπεβεβλαστήκει P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix recc. Adv. p. 34
Thuc. 3.30.4 καινὸν/κενὸν κοινὸν Julius Steup 1878 Palat. gr. 133 (Vm) RhM 33 (1878) 257 sqq.
Thuc. 3.40.8 ὃς ὡς ὃς Johannes Classen 1867 J2
Thuc. 3.43.5 εἰ αἳ Cobet 1880 Pl3 Mnemosyne N.S. 8 (1880) 137
Thuc. 3.45.3 προστ- προτιθέντες K. W. Krüger 1860 Pi3
Thuc. 3.52.2 τε γε Carl Friedrich Müller 1890 J2 NJPh 141 (1890) 363 sq.
Thuc. 3.52.4 τι del. Gottfried Boehme 1856 J2
Thuc. 3.56.1 ἅπερ ὅπερ E. F. Poppo 1826 Pi3
Thuc. 3.56.7 ἔχωσι ἔχουσι J. D. Heilmann 1812 Al Pl
Thuc. 3.66.2 πείσειν πεῖσαι Theodorus Forsmann 1873 Al Pl Diss. Leipz. p. 50
Thuc. 3.66.3 κτείνειν κτενεῖν Henrik van Herwerden 1878 Al Pl
Thuc. 3.67.5 καὶ del. M. C. Gertz 1898 Ot3 G. apud Hude
Thuc. 3.78.1 -ροῦντο ἐταλαιπώρουν Friedrich Haase 1841 J2 Lucc. p. 44
Thuc. 3.81.2 λαβό- λαθόντες Hude 1898 J2
Thuc. 3.82.6 ὠφελ(ε)ίας ὠφελίᾳ E. F. Poppo 1826 Pi3
Thuc. 3.95.1 ξυ(ν)στρατεύειν ξυστρατεύσειν I. M. Stahl 1875 P.Oxy. LVII 3896 ex corr.; Qu. Gr. p. 11
Thuc. 3.114.3 ὁμόρ- ὁμήρους Bekker 1832 Ba1 Vm2
Thuc. 4.9.1 προσεστ- προεσταύρωσε S. T. Bloomfield 1843 Ud2
Thuc. 4.13.2 τεσσαράκ- πεντήκοντα Aemilius Portus 1594 recc.
Thuc. 4.14.3 -νος ἀντηλλαγμένου Johannes Classen 1869 Pi3
Thuc. 4.29.4 χρῆν χρὴ E. F. Poppo 1827 recc.
Thuc. 4.32.3 -ρότατα μετέωρα de Romilly 1967 Berol. ms. gr. quarto 71 (Ba)
Thuc. 4.37.1 ὅτι del. Henrik van Herwerden 1879 P.Oxy. I 16 et IV 696
Thuc. 4.46.3 ὥστε ἄν ὥστ᾽ ἐάν I. M. Stahl 1875 Pi3
Thuc. 4.47.3 προσιό- προϊόντας Duker-Wasse 1731 Vi4
Thuc. 4.49 Κορινθίους del. P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix L1 Adv. p. 44
Thuc. 4.52.3 -σασθαι χειρώσεσθαι Madvig 1871 Pk2 Adv. p. 163
Thuc. 4.55.4 δὲ τε I. M. Stahl 1875 Pe1
Thuc. 4.59.4 -λευόμ- βουλόμενοι F. W. Ullrich 1850 H K L Nf Beitr. z. Kr. 1 p. 24 sq.
Thuc. 4.61.8 παύον- παύσονται Cobet 1881 Pi3 Pl3 Mnemosyne N.S. 9 (1881) 35
Thuc. 4.64.1 προειδομένους προϊδόμενος P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Pi3 Adv. p. 45
Thuc. 4.64.1 -τοὺς αὐτὸς Reiske 1761 Pi3 Anim. p. 39
Thuc. 4.68.2 -χόντες ἀντίσχοντες Naber n.d. Paris. gr. 1733 (Pe)
Thuc. 4.68.4 -οι ἄλλο Henri Estienne 1564 P.Oxy. LVII 3900
Thuc. 4.86.2 τε γε Reiske 1761 in ras. Pl Anim. p. 42
Thuc. 4.92.4 -τοις τούτους Duker-Wasse 1731 Pi3
Thuc. 4.93.3 -νομ- ἀμυνουμένους Neophytos Doukas 1805 recc.
Thuc. 4.95.1 τε γε Reiske 1761 Ud1 Anim. p. 43
Thuc. 4.96.3 -των κυκλωθέντες K. W. Krüger 1860 Mosq. gr. 216 (Q)
Thuc. 4.98.4 -θῆναι δυνηθεῖεν K. W. Krüger 1860 Palat. gr. 29 (Vk)
Thuc. 4.124.3 -φεύγ- διαφυγόντες Meineke 1869 Paris. suppl. gr. 256 (Pl) Hermes 3 (1869) 367
Thuc. 5.6.3 -τόθεν αὐτὸν Friedrich Haase 1841 J K Ud Lucc. p. 98 sq.
Thuc. 5.9.8 μάλιστα μάλιστ᾽ ἂν Henrik van Herwerden 1879 Ot3
Thuc. 5.10.1 τοσαῦτα τοιαῦτα Henrik van Herwerden 1879 Ud1
Thuc. 5.14.3 γεγένετο ἐγεγένητο I. M. Stahl 1875 Pi3
Thuc. 5.18.5 -οις ᾿Αϑηναίους Adolf Kirchhoff 1895 recc. p. 39
Thuc. 5.18.5 Σκῶ- ᾿Στῶλος Adolf Kirchhoff 1895 Ud1 p. 37 ex titt.
Thuc. 5.18.9 ἐμμένω ἐμμενῶ Franciscus Portus 1594 P.Oxy. LXI 4102 apud Aem. Portum
Thuc. 5.18.10 -ναις ᾿Αθήνησιν Henrik van Herwerden 1879 Palat. gr. 133 (Vm)
Thuc. 5.26.1 κατέλαβον κατέβαλον Ernest Harrison 1912 Ot3 CR 26 (1912) 249
Thuc. 5.27.2 καὶ del. A. Firmin Didot 1833 recc.
Thuc. 5.35.4 ὑπετόπτ-/ὑπετόπευ- κτλ. ὑπώπτευον Meineke 1869 L Q Hermes 3 (1869) 358
Thuc. 5.36.1 -ούμενοι ἡγουμένους K. W. Krüger 1860 Pi3
Thuc. 5.38.1 ἀμύνειν ἀμυνεῖν Bekker 1832 Jac
Thuc. 5.47.9 αἱ alt. οἱ Duker-Wasse 1731 L1
Thuc. 5.65.3 κατὰ tert. καὶ Christian Campe 1856 H2 Philologus 11 (1856) 52
Thuc. 5.66.2 δὴ δὲ I. M. Stahl 1875 Berol. ms. gr. quarto 71 (Ba)
Thuc. 5.66.3 -αις ἐνωμοτάρχοις Dindorf 1824 Berol. ms. gr. quarto 71 (Ba)
Thuc. 5.68.2 ἐδυνάμην δυναίμην I. M. Stahl 1875 Pi3
Thuc. 5.68.2 πλήθη del. K. W. Krüger 1860 Alac Plac
Thuc. 5.75.4 αὐτῶν del. I. M. Stahl 1875 Ultraiectinus gr. 13 (K)
Thuc. 5.77.2 -ου ᾿Επιδαύρω H. L. Ahrens 1843 Pl3 p. 480
Thuc. 5.77.2 -ους πολεμίως H. L. Ahrens 1843 H2 p. 480
Thuc. 5.79.3 δέῃ/δέει δέοι Adolf Kirchhoff 1895 Laur. 69.30 (L) p. 116
Thuc. 5.80.3 -ας ὄντες F. L. Abresch 1753 recc.
Thuc. 5.90 ἧ μὲν vel sim. ἡμεῖς μὲν K. W. Krüger 1860 H2
Thuc. 5.90 -σοντά πείσαντά Franciscus Portus 1594 Ba H2 apud Aem. Portum
Thuc. 5.97 καὶ τοῦ τοῦ καὶ K. W. Krüger 1860 P.Oxy. VI 880
Thuc. 5.98 -σοντας μελλήσαντας Reiske 1761 H2 J2 Anim. p. 52
Thuc. 5.104 καὶ del. Charles Badham 1874 P.Oxy. VI 880 Mnemosyne N.S. 2 (1874) 16
Thuc. 5.108 ἐς del. P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix H2
Thuc. 5.111.5 -θώσασαν κατορθῶσαι de Romilly 1967 Mosq. gr. 216 (Q)
Thuc. 6.1.2 -ας Σικελία K. W. Krüger 1860 P.Bodm. XXVII
Thuc. 6.2.1 ἧ(ι)δε/ἥδε ὧδε Bekker 1832 P.Bodm. XXVII
Thuc. 6.4.5 -αντο ξυγκατενείματο J. C. Vollgraff 1905 H2 Mnemosyne N.S. 33 (1905) 423
Thuc. 6.4.6 αὐτοῖς αὐτὸς P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Mosq. gr. 216 (Q) Adv. p. 64
Thuc. 6.6.2 -οντες διαφθείραντες Franciscus Portus 1594 H2 Cn1 apud Aem. Portum
Thuc. 6.7.2 -των ἐξελθόντες Aemilius Portus 1594 H2 Pi3
Thuc. 6.9.2 νομίζων νομίζω δὲ Andreas Weidner 1875 Pi3
Thuc. 6.10.4 -ῶν πολλοῦ Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.10.5 -ῶν αὐτοὶ Reiske 1761 H2 Va2 Anim. p. 54
Thuc. 6.12.1 -σθαι ξυναπολέσαι Reiske 1761 H2 Va2 Anim. p. 54
Thuc. 6.14 alt. τὸ τοῦ Henrik van Herwerden 1880 Pi2
Thuc. 6.15.4 διαθέντος Henrik van Herwerden 1880 Pi3
Thuc. 6.18.2 -οιεν ἡσυχάζοιμεν Hude 1901 H2K1
Thuc. 6.18.2 -οῖεν φυλοκρινοῖμεν Hude 1901 H2K1Pi3
Thuc. 6.18.2 μ. ὅ. ὅπως μὴ K. W. Krüger 1860 Pi3
Thuc. 6.18.6 ἀποστ- ἀποτρέψῃ E. F. Poppo 1828 H2
Thuc. 6.18.6 ὥσπερ ᾧπερ Herbert Richards 1898 H2 CQ 8 (1914) 77
Thuc. 6.25.2 δ' ᾿Αθηναίων ᾿Αθηναίων ὧν K. W. Krüger 1860 H2
Thuc. 6.34.4 τῇ Σικελίᾳ τῆς Σικελίας Duker-Wasse 1731 recc.
Thuc. 6.37.2 -ρον ὅμοροι K. W. Krüger 1860 recc.
Thuc. 6.38.3 δὲ τε K. W. Krüger 1860 H2
Thuc. 6.38.5 -ζειν ἀτιμάζων Reiske 1753 Ot3 ap. Abresch, Dill. p. 608
Thuc. 6.39.2 ξύμπαν ξύμπαντ(α) Henrik van Herwerden 1880 Stob. cod. A
Thuc. 6.40.1 καὶ κἂν Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.41.4 οἴσομεν ἐσοίσομεν Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.42.1 ἀναπλέοντες ἅμα πλέοντες Valckenaer n.d. H2
Thuc. 6.44.1 del. Duker-Wasse 1731 Cantab. Nn-III-18 (Cn)
Thuc. 6.44.3 τε del. K. W. Krüger 1860 Cantab. Nn-III-18 (Cn)
Thuc. 6.46.2 πρῶτον πρώτους Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.48 ἔχωσι παρέχωσι P. P. Dobree s.xviii/xix Pi3 Adv. p. 68
Thuc. 6.54.5 -σατο κατεστήσαντο Hude 1901 Pi3
Thuc. 6.55.2 πρώτῃ αὐτῇ E. F. Poppo 1828 P.Oxy. LXI 4105 αυτη
Thuc. 6.57.2 ξυνωμοτῶν ξυνομωμοκότων Johannes Classen 1876 Palat. gr. 133 (Vm)
Thuc. 6.58.2 ἀνε- ἀπεχώρησαν E. F. Poppo 1828 H2
Thuc. 6.62.1 ξυνπαντὶ κτλ. ξύμπαντι K. W. Krüger 1860 Q Pi3
Thuc. 6.62.5 -πλευσαν περιέπεμψαν I. M. Stahl 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.66.2 τε τι K. W. Krüger 1860 recc.
Thuc. 6.69.3 συγκαταστρεψόμενοι … ὑπακούσεται ξυγκαταστρεψάμενοι … ὑπακούσονται C. F. Haacke 1820 H2, schol. Φ
Thuc. 6.72.4 αὐτά ταῦτα Herbert Richards 1914 γρH2 CQ 8 (1914) 78
Thuc. 6.80.5 -δύνως ἀκίνδυνον J. C. Vollgraff 1905 H2 Mnemosyne N.S. 33 (1905) 438
Thuc. 6.82.2 αὐτῶν del. Henrik van Herwerden 1880 Berol. ms. gr. quarto 71 (Ba)
Thuc. 6.87.4 ἄν τι τυχεῖν κτλ. ἂν τυχεῖν Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.88.5 ἐ./τε πεμπόντων τ᾽ ἐσπεμπόντων Hude 1901 H2
Thuc. 6.89.2 ἡμῶν ἐμῶν C. F. Haacke 1820 γρH2
Thuc. 6.94.3 ἐμπιπρῶντες/πιμτράντες κτλ. ἐμπι(μ)πράντες Henrik van Herwerden 1880 H2
Thuc. 6.96.3 ἕπτα- ἑξακοσίους Aemilius Portus 1594 H2
Thuc. 6.101.5 φυλακὴ φυλὴ Duker-Wasse 1731 γρH2
Thuc. 7.13.2 τῶν del. E. F. Poppo 1828 Paris. gr. 1638 (Pi)
Thuc. 7.19.4 -οις πρῶτοι F. W. Reiz s.xviii ex. recc.
Thuc. 7.24.2 ὥστε ὥσπερ I. M. Stahl 1882 recc.
Thuc. 7.28.3 -ζον ἐνόμιζε Herbert Richards 1914 Paris. gr. 1734 (H) CQ 8 (1914) 80
Thuc. 7.29.5 ἥσσων ἧσσον J. D. Heilmann 1812 CnPi
Thuc. 7.30.4 -ων χρησαμένην Reiske 1761 Pi2 Anim. p. 62
Thuc. 7.38.3 -λιπ- διαλειπούσας Henri Estienne 1564 Vat. gr. 992 (Vd)
Thuc. 7.40.5 -ῶν ἐμβόλων F. L. Abresch 1753 Mosq. gr. 216 (Q) Dill. p. 691
Thuc. 7.40.5 alt. καὶ del. Louis Bodin 1955 Mosq. gr. 216 (Q)
Thuc. 7.44.7 -τησαν/κατέστησαν καθίστασαν I. M. Stahl 1882 H1
Thuc. 7.48.6 ᾧ/ὧν/ὡς οἷς Adamantios Korais s.xviii/xix Pi3
Thuc. 7.55.1 στρατιᾶς στρατείας Aemilius Portus 1594 P.Oxy. XI 1376
Thuc. 7.55.2 δὴ ἤδη M. C. Gertz 1898 P.Oxy. XI 1376 spat. rat. hab.
Thuc. 7.56.3 -ον μόνων I. M. Stahl 1882 Pl3
Thuc. 7.57.11 -ων κατειλημμένοι Reiske 1761 P.Mich. III 141 Anim. p. 65
Thuc. 7.63.2 ὑμῖν ἡμῖν Bekker 1832 recc.
Thuc. 7.65.2 ἂν del. Henrik van Herwerden 1880 P.Oxy. XI 1376
Thuc. 7.67.1 τὸ τοῦ K. W. Krüger 1860 Kac
Thuc. 7.68.1 καὶ τ. τὸ Reiske 1761 Al Nf Anim. p. 67
Thuc. 7.73.3 οὐκέτι οὐκ K. W. Krüger 1860 P.Oxy. XI 1376
Thuc. 7.87.6 δὴ τὸ τὸ δὴ Meineke 1869 Basile. E-III-4 (J) Hermes 3 (1869) 361
Thuc. 8.10.3 ἑπτὰ ἐς ἑπτὰ Anton Westermann 1839 P.Oxy. X 1247 Zeit. f. d. Alterthumsw. (1839) 890 sq.
Thuc. 8.10.3 Πειραιὸν Σπείραιον K. O. Müller 1844 P.Oxy. X 1247 Dorier p. 420
Thuc. 8.15.1 ἔλυσαν … καὶ ἐ. λύσαντες … ἐψηφίσαντο Cobet 1858 J1 NL p. 375
Thuc. 8.37.2 τῶν alt. τοὺς Joachim Camerarius 1540 Basile. E-III-4 (J)
Thuc. 8.44.1 -ῷ πεζῶν Johannes Classen 1878 Vat. Urb. gr. 92 (Ud)
Thuc. 8.46.1 αὐτοῦ αὐτῷ Duker-Wasse 1731 J2
Thuc. 8.53.3 -σαιμεν ποιήσομεν Bekker 1832 Ba1 J2
Thuc. 8.66.3 ὃ ἦν ὂν Aemilius Portus 1594 L1
Thuc. 8.79.1 -γέλλετο ἐσήγγελτο Cobet 1858 S5 NL p. 423
Thuc. 8.79.1 ἵνα δὲ ἵνα δὴ Gottfried Boehme 1856 S5
Thuc. 8.86.5 -ρῶν λοιδοριῶν Madvig 1871 Pi2 Adv. p. 334
Thuc. 8.86.9 πεμπτοὺς/πέμπουσι del. Bekker 1832 recc.
Thuc. 8.95.6 οἱ οἳ Henri Estienne 1564 Pi2
X.Eph. 1.12.1 δὲ δὲ καὶ D. K. Zagoiannes 1897 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 2.6.4 ἕξεται ἄξεται F. L. Abresch 1739–45 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 3.4.4 καὶ ἄρα καὶ καὶ γάρ καὶ Cobet 1856 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F) apud Hirschig
X.Eph. 3.5.4 μου μοι Naber 1873–7 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 4.2.7 δέχ- ἔρχεται Hemsterhuis 1733–5 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 4.2.8 -τίθ- ἐπετέθειτο Hemsterhuis 1733–5 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 5.4.7 οὐδὲ/ἂν δὲ μηδὲ Franz Passow 1833 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F)
X.Eph. 5.9.8 εἶπε εἰπέ F. L. Abresch 1739–45 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 627 (F) tacite
Xen. Cyn. 10.19 -αὶ δὲ εἰσβολὰς δὲ C. H. Dörner Vindob. IV 34 (W)
Xen. HG 2.3.49 -ατώτατα ἔσχατα Cobet 1862 DacV
Xen. HG 5.3.4 διώξαντες διώκοντες J. J. Hartman 1887 Leid. Periz. F6 (F) a.c.
Xen. HG 6.4.27 εἴ που εἴ ποι F. H. Bothe 1823 Paris. gr. 1642 (D)
Xen. HG 7.1.46 μέντοι μέν τι G. H. Schaefer 1811 Ambros. gr. 785 (M)
Xen. HG 7.4.13 ἀντιστρατευομένων ἀντεστρατευμένων L. Dindorf 1850 F p. ras.
Xen. HG 7.5.18 -ει καταλείψοι Guillaume Budé 1529 F2 p. 119
Xen. Oec. 4.6 φύλακας φυλακάς Cobet s.xix ex. Laur. 55.21 (G)
Xen. Oec. 4.6 καὶ del. J. G. Schneider 1805 Ambros. A-157-sup. (Q)
Xen. Oec. 5.4 ἀγαθὰ τἀγαθὰ Cobet s.xix ex. Marc. 511 (V)
Xen. Oec. 9.2 τῆς οἰκίας τῆς γε οἰκίας Cobet s.xix ex. P.Oxy. II 227 ] γε οικιας
Xen. Oec. 9.2 ἑκάστῳ ἐν ἑκάστῳ J. G. Schneider 1805 P.Oxy. II 227 ]ν εκαϲ[
Xen. Oec. 15.9 ἣν ἵν’ Jean Brodeau Ambros. A-157-sup. (Q)
Xen. Oec. 21.10 τῶν κακῶν τὸν κακὸν Jean Brodeau Ambros. A-157-sup. (Q)
Zen. 4.80 Δακτύλων André Schott 1612 Angel. et Marc. et Paris.
[Epich.] fr. 272 πειρ- θηράσεται Theodor Kock 1884 P.Petr. I 3(1) CAF II p. 509
[Hdn.] Philet. 210 κυν- κινάραν Nauck 1889 Q
[Hdn.] Π. ἡμαρτ. λέξ. 24 -αι/κατέδεσθαι καταδέχεσθε Meineke 1839–57 S
Amm. 14.1.3 conmis- commisceri Petrus Castellus 1517 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 14.2.18 [...]terius ulterius Petrus Castellus 1517 D2
Amm. 14.5.8 -rup- abrepto Petrus Castellus 1517 T2
Amm. 14.6.11 -am absentia Henri de Valois 1636 T2
Amm. 14.6.12 -peris suscipieris Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 14.6.25 ortu/ortulus ortu lucis Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 E2 marg.
Amm. 14.7.12 -es uocis Henri de Valois 1636 Paris. lat. 5819 (H) 'Conjecturae nostrae hic aliquantum indulsimus'
Amm. 14.8.14 -ans abundat Petrus Castellus 1517 T2
Amm. 14.10.12 -iorum officiosus Ludwig Tross 1818 T2 p. 32
Amm. 14.10.13 absolimo s. at per est s. absolutio semper aperta est simplex Madvig 1884 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 14.10.16 et c. e crebris Mommsen 1910 Vat. lat. 2969 (E) apud Clark
Amm. 14.11.4 tumiscente tumesc- Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 14.11.19 ita uita Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 14.11.19 -barat- barbatio Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5820 (T)
Amm. 14.11.21 exitus i. exitii iam J. Gronovius 1693 E2
Amm. 15.2.5 cog- igitur Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 15.3.2 -ra/-rum arborius Henri de Valois 1636 Paris. lat. 5820 (T)
Amm. 15.3.9 rari s. rapi sublimes Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 15.4.1 indit- indictum Erasmus 1518 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 15.4.2 ut [....]gari et nauigari Henri de Valois 1636 Paris. lat. 5820 (T)
Amm. 15.4.3 i. ad[.......]solutus iamque absolutus Henri de Valois 1636 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 15.4.4 ne ni Erasmus 1518 E2
Amm. 15.4.11 fulm- fluminis Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 15.4.12 -ibus dorsis Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 N2
Amm. 15.5.4 praefect-/om. praetorio Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 EP
Amm. 15.5.16 cogi- agitabatur Franz Eyssenhardt 1871 Vat. lat. 2969 (E) 'aus Berlin kamen die lüderlichen Ausgaben Eyßenharts und Lucian Müller'
Amm. 15.8.1 -u contractum Petrus Castellus 1517 W3
Amm. 15.8.17 arbitionem arbet- Erasmus 1518 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 15.8.21 -mantis conclamatis Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 15.9.8 dryarid- druidae Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 15.10.9 hic- hisque Henri de Valois 1636 Paris. lat. 5820 (T)
Amm. 15.11.14 n. clusa narbonensi elusa Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 16.1.1 fact- fatorum Petrus Castellus 1517 N2
Amm. 16.1.5 quō/quom … -dare quoniam … praeclare Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 16.7.10 auita/ad uictam adultam Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 16.7.10 -asset superesset Petrus Castellus 1517 H2
Amm. 16.12.1 ort- oratario Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 16.12.28 -us maximos Petrus Castellus 1517 T2
Amm. 16.12.39 p(e)and- pendentis Gustav Freytag 1874 PT apud Gardthausen
Amm. 17.5.13 incl- inluserunt Bentley 1878 Rom. Basil. S. Petri Ε 27 (P) RhM p. 476
Amm. 20.4.8 adiectum quod e. adiectumque est Mariangelo Accursio 1533 W2
Amm. 20.5.1 tot- tutius Henri de Valois 1636 T2
Amm. 20.6.6 infirmium -ma Bentley 1880 T2 RhM p. 339
Amm. 20.8.14 eos/ad eos ad Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 20.11.15 -it posset Mariangelo Accursio 1533 N2
Amm. 20.11.21 -et uiderent Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 21.1.10 tidem/item itidem Victor Gardthausen 1874 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 21.1.14 prospecta proposita Albert Kellerbauer 1871 Vat. lat. 2969 (E) p. 19
Amm. 21.2.1 quis quibus Robert Novák 1910 Paris. lat. 6120 (N) apud Clark
Amm. 21.5.1 -es cladis Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 21.5.8 q. i. nos quod non ita nos Einar Löfstedt 1907 Paris. lat. 5820 (T) p. 81
Amm. 21.7.4 hali- galliae Petrus Castellus 1517 N2
Amm. 21.9.2 ads-/extensis escensis Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 1873 (V)
Amm. 21.11.1 inspir- insperatus Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 21.12.3 -monuit remouit Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 21.12.5 spect- sperabatur Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 2969 (E) RhM p. 340
Amm. 21.12.15 ad-/hab- abundabant Petrus Castellus 1517 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 21.12.18 conp- computabatur Petrus Castellus 1517 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 21.13.2 -em tardante Petrus Castellus 1517 N2
Amm. 22.6.1 dilect- dilationem Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 22.6.3 cuncta/cum et tum et Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 22.7.3 -bant frequentabat Henri de Valois 1636 T1
Amm. 22.9.4 -hac antehoc Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 1873 (V)
Amm. 22.9.11 -itori/-ito garrulo Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 22.15.15 -am/salam solum Victor Gardthausen 1874 N2
Amm. 22.15.15 mori- morsibus Petrus Castellus 1517 T2
Amm. 22.15.27 aconc- acontias Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5820 (T)
Amm. 26.1.7 pig-/ig- cognorat Petrus Castellus 1517 N2
Amm. 26.1.13 corrept- correcta Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 26.3.4 inpunita impunitas Mariangelo Accursio 1533 N2
Amm. 26.6.16 frem- fragmentis Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 26.8.6 cicic- cyzicum Erasmus 1518 N2
Amm. 26.8.7 bellis pontum hellespontum Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 26.8.10 -fusus/-fisus confossus Petrus Castellus 1517 N2
Amm. 26.8.12 asc- n. nusquam/escensana usquam escensa naui quam Franz Eyssenhardt 1871 Vat. lat. 2969 (E)
Amm. 26.8.15 quos- quodam Erasmus 1518 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 26.10.7 Agilionem agilonem Erasmus 1518 Vat. lat. 1873 (V)
Amm. 26.10.9 accid- accedebant Petrus Castellus 1517 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 27.3.1 ads- escenso Bentley 1880 Vat. lat. 1873 (V) e Gronovio?
Amm. 27.4.6 -untur claudunt Mariangelo Accursio 1533 N2
Amm. 27.9.10 faciebat factitabat Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 27.10.16 oppetiere/petere periere Michael Petschenig 1892 Paris. lat. 6120 (N) Philol. 52
Amm. 27.12.14 fict- futurae Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 28.1.3 milit- miletum Friedrich Lindenbrog 1609 Paris. lat. 5819 (H)
Amm. 28.2.11 (h)oner- honoratorum Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 28.2.12 -um (E) corrumpentium Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 28.4.12 uit- interioris Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Paris. lat. 6120 (N)
Amm. 28.4.24 -nent/-net obtineat Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Paris. lat. 5821 (C)
Amm. 28.4.32 -oruntur exploduntur Mariangelo Accursio 1533 MN
Amm. 28.6.16 flactia- flaccianum Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. 28.6.18 -en aristomenem Mariangelo Accursio 1533 Marc. 388 Bess. (W)
Amm. exc. Val. idem ibidem Adrien de Valois 1681 Rom. Basil. S. Petri Ε 27 (P)
Apul. Plat. 2.2 p. 223 -tet oportere Erwin Rohde 1876 Harl. 3969 (H) JLZ (Rohde on Goldbacher)
Apul. Plat. 2.2 p. 223 vel inter se velint esse Gottschalk Stewech 1587 Harl. 3969 (H)
Apul. Plat. 2.3 p. 223 haec l. ac laudis Scaliger 1600 BRZz
Apul. Plat. 2.8 p. 229 potiora ra./potiore r. portio ratione Paul Thomas 1908 Paris. lat. 15449 (Pa) porcio Pa
Apul. Plat. 2.13 p. 238 reclam- redamat Petrus Colvius 1588 BH
Apul. Plat. 2.13 p. 238 utro- utrobique Thaddeus Sinko 1903–5 Harl. 3969 (H)
Apul. Plat. 2.14 p. 239 illae illas Franz van Oudendorp 1823 BR
Apul. Plat. 2.18 p. 246 mali d. malis deduci Paul Thomas 1908 Cantab. coll. Corp. Chr. 71 (C)
Apul. Plat. 2.20 p. 248 fuer- ferunt Gottschalk Stewech 1587 Harl. 3969 (H)
Apul. Socr. 7 p. 136 nav- avem Friedrich Lindenbrog 1617 Harl. 3969 (H) ad Verg. catal. p. 319
Apul. Socr. 9 p. 140 temperanda t. est Josias Mercier 1625 AOCH
Apul. Socr. prol. 4 p. 111 grocc- crocire Julien Fleury 1688 Vat. Regin. lat. 1572 (R)
Apul. mund. 6 p. 300 -os dextrum Petrus Colvius 1588 B2V2
Ascon. Corn. 51 quis quiuis Poggio 1416 Pistor. Forteg. A. 37 (S)
Ascon. Corn. 54 -eat apparet Nicolaus Beraldus 1520 Harl. 2568 (ψ)
Ascon. Corn. 59 regend- redigendis Stephanus Pighius 1615 schol. Bob. ad S. Rosc. 30 Ann. III p. 196
Ascon. Mil. 26 erat erant J. G. Baiter 1833 Pistor. Fabr. 319 (f)
Ascon. Mil. 28 elisi visi S. H. Rinkes 1861 f2 Mnem.
Ascon. Mil. 30 uic- Aricinos P. Manutius 1563 fp
Ascon. Mil. 32 idque ipse ipsum idque ipsum Jean Loys 1536 Harl. 2568 (ψ)
Ascon. Mil. 33 -es tale Cobet 1862 SP1 Mnem.
Ascon. Mil. 34 clod- Claudiis Karl Halm 1850 Flor. Soc. Columb. 107 (a)
Ascon. Mil. 34 a c. ceteio a C. Cethego C. A. Jordan 1851 Pistor. Fabr. 319 (f) Jordan on Halm; suo Marte (pace Flambard)
Ascon. Mil. 34 eorum suorum Jean Wagener 1860 Pistor. Fabr. 319 (f)
Ascon. Mil. 37 -is factiones Jean Loys 1536 Leid. BPL 222 (l) m. sec.
Ascon. Mil. 42 milonis Milonianis Nicolaus Beraldus 1520 l2
Ascon. Mil. 45 fuit Rufus J. G. Baiter 1833 l2
Ascon. Mil. 49 repertus repetitus Madvig 1828 Pistor. Forteg. A. 37 (S) p. 25
Ascon. Pis. 3 Cn. Pompeius del. Perizonius 1834 Pistor. Forteg. A. 37 (S) apud Rau I p. 89
Ascon. Pis. 7 tulerat sustulerat Jean Loys 1536 l2
Ascon. Pis. 7 ut in Nicolaus Beraldus 1520 l2
Ascon. Pis. 9 t. clamiam L. Lamiam Jean Loys 1536 l2
Ascon. Pis. 12 esset et in esset in Jean Loys 1536 l2
Ascon. Pis. 14 eo etiam quae eo et antiquae P. Manutius 1563 Pistor. Fabr. 319 (f)
Ascon. tog. cand. 75 -a Catilinam P. Manutius 1563 Laur. Plut. 54.5 (M)
Ascon. tog. cand. 78 poculo populo Poggio 1416 Pistor. Forteg. A. 37 (S)
Ascon. tog. cand. 82 nam natam Orelli 1833 Laur. Plut. 50.4 (b) m. rec.
Auson. 14.21.4 -is quieta Ribbeck 1868 Brux. 5330–2
Auson. 27.19a.12 -ae gratiarum Nicolaus Heinsius 1886 Flor. Bibl. Nat. Conv. Soppr. J. VI. 29 (M) apud Peiper (Leid. 758. F. 11)
Avian. fab. 6.1 olim- limoque I. N. Neveletus 1610 W1 p. 661 ('quod si tibi placet, mihi etiam nunc placet')
Avian. fab. 10.5 -stant praeflant Ellis 1887 Paris. lat. 13026 (P)
Avian. fab. 10.10 -tulit dispulit Lachmann 1845 Trev. 1093 (T)
Avian. fab. 11.6 hab- agebat Hendrik Cannegieter 1731 Guelf. Gud. 288 (Wt)
Avian. fab. 20.14 casi- cassibus Wilhelm Fröhner 1862 Guelf. Gud. 288 (Wt)
Avian. fab. 22.10 damn- dona Lachmann 1845 T1
Avian. fab. 29.7 aspiciens aspexit Hendrik Cannegieter 1731 Galean. O. 3.57 (G)
Avian. fab. 32.5 rec- victor Hendrik Cannegieter 1731 Harl. 4967 (B)
Avian. fab. 36.12 prope popae Hendrik Cannegieter 1731 KL
Avian. fab. 39.15 -us ausis Thomas Wopkens 1736 Harl. 4967 (B)
Avian. fab. 44.9 pigra nimis pigranimis Caspar von Barth 1624 CKT1V
Bell. Alex. 33.2 -i(s) regum Robert Estienne 1544 Laur. Ashburn. 33 (S)
Caes. Gall. 5.30.2 hi sapient, si hi si sapient, si Madvig 1873 Vindob. 95 (V)
Caes. civ. 5.30.2 in sorte in Syria Robert Estienne 1544 Laur. Plut. 68.8 (W) m. sec.
Calp. ecl. 7.3 iub- sibila Nicolaus Heinsius 1740 Brix. Quirin. C VII 1 (p)
Calp. ecl. 7.69 n. de- nos discedentis Lipsius 1613 Neap. V A 8 (N) apud Barth p. 385; m. sec.
Cato agr. 81 de- dimittito Poliziano 1472 Ac
Cato agr. 90 ui ut Poliziano 1472 A et Lucensis 1402
Catull. 2.5 meo mei J. H. Hoeufft 1807–8 Flor. Ricc. 606 (31)
Catull. 2.7 ad in F. W. Doering 1788 Berol. Diez. B Sant. 56 (7)
Catull. 2.8 -et acquiescit Ellis 1867 Flor. Bibl. Nat. Magl. VII 948 (26)
Catull. 2.9 -a ipse A. E. Radke 1995 128 5 75
Catull. 3.7 -am ipsa Franz Hermes 1889 8 58
Catull. 3.17 tua uestra G. C. Giardina 1983 cod. Avancii et 46 m. sec.
Catull. 6.8 asirio ac Syrio Girolamo Avanzi 1495 44 m. pr.
Catull. 10.27 mane minime Girolamo Avanzi 1502 48 mg.
Catull. 12.9 puer pater Joannes Calphurnius 1481 'uetus codex' (teste Marc. lat. 12.128)
Catull. 16.12 uosque uos qui G. B. Pighi 1961 84 3
Catull. 17.19 -i liguris Girolamo Avanzi 1502 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 12005 (47)
Catull. 21.9 ipsi/si id id si Achilles Statius 1566 84 3
Catull. 23.10 fact- fata Macnaghten-Ramsay 1899 G3
Catull. 25.2 -dulla medullula Achilles Statius 1566 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 30 (O)
Catull. 25.11 insula insulsa Corradinus de Allio 1738 'V.C.' teste 120
Catull. 29.2 hec hoc Emil Baehrens 1876 Marc. lat. 12.86 (117)
Catull. 29.17 -um prima Scaliger 1577 Brux. Bibl. Roy. IV.711 (10a) 'uel puer diuinauerit legendum esse'
Catull. 30.5 que quos Richard Richter 1881 3 mg.
Catull. 33.3–4 i. … e. u. est uoraciore … inquinatiore Ferdinand Hand 1809 cod. (Carrione)
Catull. 37.7 an aut Léon Herrmann 1957 cod. Tomacellianus (129a)
Catull. 37.11 nam me nam mi Nicolaus Heinsius 1646–81 78 m. sec. ap. Schwabe
Catull. 37.13 pugna- parata Ferdinand Hand 1809 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Eger. 3027 (52)
Catull. 39.3 e. o. orator excitat Girolamo Avanzi 1495 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Eger. 3027 (52)
Catull. 40.1 rauide raude Antonius Parthenius 1485 Vat. lat. 1608 (108)
Catull. 40.1 rauide raui Gustav Friedrich 1908 118 m. sec.
Catull. 42.4 -am redditura Scaliger 1600 Dres. Dc 133 (15)
Catull. 55.8 serena seuero Johannes Schrader 1784 78 m. ter.
Catull. 55.14 -e amicis K. W. Ramler 1793 'codex palat. papyr.' (Hand)
Catull. 55.17 nunc non Emil Baehrens 1885 Neap. IV. F. 19 (64)
Catull. 58.5 magna amiremini magnanimos Remi Joannes Calphurnius 1481 ηθ
Catull. 61.16 Iunia Vibia Syme 1955 4 m. sec. apud Neudling
Catull. 61.94 u. ut uiden Lachmann 1850 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Eger. 3027 (52)
Catull. 61.164 unus imus Scaliger 1577 cod. Ach. Statii
Catull. 61.179 unis uiris Achilles Statius 1566 Leid. lat. in oct. 59
Catull. 61.217 -am suo Emil Baehrens 1885 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 11915 (46)
Catull. 62.15 diu- dimisimus Girolamo Avanzi 1535 Leid. Voss. lat. in oct. 59 (40)
Catull. 63.71 columnibus columinibus Joannes Calphurnius 1481 (θ)
Catull. 63.77 lev- saevumque Francesco Pucci n.d. Caes. 29 sin. 19
Catull. 64.36 nicenis alacrissea moenia larissea Joannes Calphurnius 1481 θ
Catull. 64.92 corp- pectore G. C. Giardina 2008 codd. Regius, Puteanus, Statiani
Catull. 64.122 eam eam mollis Emil Baehrens 1876 Casanat. 15 (91)
Catull. 64.183 uentos uetitos Scaliger 1577 cod. Tomacellianus (129a)
Catull. 64.186 n. s. nulla est spes Francesco Pucci 1502 unus Ach. Statii
Catull. 64.193 auguineo/anguino anguineo Franciscus Puteolanus 1473 Dres. Dc 133 (15)
Catull. 64.196 extremis ex imis Casaubon n.d. Lond. add. 12005 et Paris. 8232
Catull. 64.227 dic- decet Lachmann 1829 unus Ach. Statii
Catull. 64.344 teuen riui Joannes Calphurnius 1481 cod. Tomacellianus (129a)
Catull. 64.364 -culsae percussae Antonius Parthenius 1485 cod. Tomacellianus (129a)
Catull. 65.12 teg- legam Léon Herrmann 1957 cod. Tomacellianus (129a)
Catull. 66.11 auc- avectus Rudolf Peiper 1875 (ε)
Catull. 66.31 -us tantum Johannes Schrader 1776 recc.
Catull. 66.45 -pere properare Rudolf Peiper 1875 40 38 56
Catull. 68a.29 -facit tepefecit H. A. J. Munro 1878 12 73 40
Catull. 68a.40 -o ultra Moriz Schmidt 1880 23 58
Catull. 68b.41 q. fallius quam manlius J. K. Newman 1990 44 86
Catull. 68b.63 uelut ueluti Adolf Kiessling 1877 Pat. Bibl. capit. C 77 (76)
Catull. 68b.75 -a incepto Johann v. G. Fröhlich 1849 Urb. lat. 812 (106)
Catull. 68b.118 domitum ind- Isaac Vossius 1684 Brux. Bibl. Roy. IV.711 (10a)
Catull. 68b.128 quamquam quam quae Isaac Vossius 1684 26 15
Catull. 68b.141 equum fas Léon Herrmann 1957 Urb. lat. 812 (106)
Catull. 68b.155 sat- seitis Emil Baehrens 1874 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Eger. 3027 (52)
Catull. 68b.157 aufert auctor August Rossbach 1854 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Eger. 3027 (52) marg.
Catull. 68b.158 s. p. primo sunt Päivö Oksala 1965 45 52
Catull. 71.4 a te apte Fritz Schoell 1880 Dres. Dc 133 (15)
Catull. 73.1 quis- quidquam Léon Herrmann 1957 codd. Ach. Statii
Catull. 76.10 cur te iam te iam cur Muretus 1554 recc.
Catull. 79.4 nat- notorum Scaliger 1577 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 30 (O)
Catull. 90.1 -atur nascetur Herbert Richards 1895 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 11915 (46)
Catull. 111.4 expatruo ex patruo parere F. W. Doering 1834 codd. (Zicàri)
Cic. Arch. 12 his iis Madvig c2
Cic. Arch. 19 -diamus repudiabimus Andrea Navagero 1519 Lag. 9
Cic. Arch. 22 Rudium h. Rudinum hominem Antonio Agustín 1581 schol. Bob. apud Ursinum
Cic. Att. 1.1.2 et ex. et ab existimatione Denys Lambin 1565–72 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 1.8.1 -i dare Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 1.11.1 legatio all- Leonardus Malaespina 1564 s1
Cic. Att. 1.14.7 -di redii Madvig 1873 bd
Cic. Att. 1.16.4 -abat impetrarat James S. Reid 1903 Ω apud Purser
Cic. Att. 1.19.1 quem quam P. Manutius 1540–7 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 2.1.5 -us -us nouos patronos Simon Dubois 1580 Ω
Cic. Att. 2.1.5 -eat habet J. A. Ernesti 1775 GH
Cic. Att. 2.1.12 tocul(i)o- tocullionibus Turnebus 1565 sZl
Cic. Att. 2.9.1 inuidia in inuidia Simon Dubois 1580 EGP
Cic. Att. 2.18.2 attamen hac tamen Simon Dubois 1580 Land. 8 (H)
Cic. Att. 3.8.2 ab illo ab Ilio Madvig 1871 cod. Faerni (F) p. 145
Cic. Att. 3.13.1 meque neque Leonardus Malaespina 1564 Paris. 8536 (P) p. 71
Cic. Att. 3.24.1 nostra uestra Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 3.25.1 pros- perspicio Petrus Victorius 1536 Land. 8 (H)
Cic. Att. 4.3.4 Miloni campo Milo in campo Muretus 1559 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 4.5.1 ain tu an me ain tu me J. C. G. Boot 1865 O1
Cic. Att. 4.6.4 nunquam nunc quam Leonardus Malaespina 1564 Zb p. 93
Cic. Att. 4.13.1 XIII/XVIII XIIII P. Manutius 1540–7 NO1
Cic. Att. 4.15.3 forte fere Petrus Victorius 1536 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 4.17.3 detu- rettulerunt A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Urb. 322 (s) retu- s
Cic. Att. 4.17.4 fue- f. erat futurus A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 4.18.5 -ter nostri P. Manutius 1540–7 NF
Cic. Att. 5.7 XIIII XII O. E. Schmidt 1893 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 5.8.2 -is alienus Denys Lambin 1565–72 Palat. 1510 (V)
Cic. Att. 5.8.2 esse del. J. A. Ernesti 1775 bds
Cic. Att. 5.8.2 -it posset Leonardus Malaespina 1564 Palat. 1510 (V)
Cic. Att. 5.10.5 -um ornamento A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Palat. 1510 (V)
Cic. Att. 5.11.3 q. illum n./q. illud n. q. illum n. quam illud, nusquam Leo 1892 NOP
Cic. Att. 5.11.5 nos nostram nostram Reinhold Klotz 1854 bds
Cic. Att. 5.12.2 -ebimus habemus C. A. Lehmann 1886 ΔNOP
Cic. Att. 5.14.1 stabo praestabo Petrus Victorius 1536 Taur. lat. 495 (O)
Cic. Att. 5.14.2 para- speramus P. Manutius 1540–7 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 5.16.2 -us moratos Gabriele Faerno 1581 Urb. 322 (s) apud Ursinum p. 121
Cic. Att. 5.19.1 at(t)el(l)iano Atiliano P. Manutius 1540–7 GH
Cic. Att. 5.21.6 sed et Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 5.21.14 ponid- pontidia Petrus Victorius 1536 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 6.1.2 liberalita- libertatem Petrus Victorius 1536 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 6.1.2 l.? e. d. r. legatis etiam? de rapinis A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 6.1.3 dico illico Gabriele Faerno 1581 Urb. 322 (s) apud Ursinum
Cic. Att. 6.1.17 om. id Denys Lambin 1565–72 NP
Cic. Att. 6.2.10 -iemus facimus P. Manutius 1540–7 Mcorr.bdsE
Cic. Att. 6.6.4 fortuita fert uita P. Manutius 1540–7 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 6.7.2 -im possem A. S. Wesenberg 1840 Laur. Plut. 49 (N) 'miror neminem scripsisse'
Cic. Att. 6.9.2 -as attingat Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 7.2.3 animum manum P. Manutius 1540–7 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 7.2.7 negauit. id itaque negauit. itaque P. Manutius 1540–7 Ambros. E 14 inf. (E)
Cic. Att. 7.15.2 quam del. P. Manutius 1540–7 Ambros. E 14 inf. (E)
Cic. Att. 7.18.1 tac iacebit Petrus Victorius 1536 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 7.21.1 istinc istim Denys Lambin 1565–72 Laur. Plut. 49 (N)
Cic. Att. 8.3.6 qui quid Reinhold Klotz 1854 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 8.14.3 sed ait Petrus Victorius 1536 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 8.15.2 -io tullo P. Manutius 1540–7 Laur. 217 (d)
Cic. Att. 8.15A.3 sciet. Quomodo/scio. Quomodo scio et, quo modo Reinhold Klotz 1854 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 8.16.2 domum quem dominumque Reinhold Klotz 1870 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 9.7B.2 -e certo P. Manutius 1540–7 sO2
Cic. Att. 9.12.3 circumset et circumsedet J. G. Baiter 1867 Paris. 8538 (R)
Cic. Att. 9.13.3 -am illa P. Manutius 1540–7 bds
Cic. Att. 9.18.1 -is tardiores Petrus Victorius 1536 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 9.19.4 Cephaloni Cephalioni P. Manutius 1540–7 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 10.1.2 nisi tu nisi si tu Petrus Victorius 1536 M1O1R
Cic. Att. 10.1.3 quid quod P. Manutius 1540–7 OPR
Cic. Att. 10.8.10 -et/velit uelle Orelli 1845 O1PR
Cic. Att. 10.8.10 -em possim C. F. W. Müller 1863 bP Philol.
Cic. Att. 10.9.1 -auit dubitabat Petrus Victorius 1536 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 10.12.2 cum pacto compacto P. Manutius 1540–7 OW
Cic. Att. 11.4 luctua ut etc. hic tua ut Petrus Victorius 1536 Zl
Cic. Att. 11.9.1 causa casus P. Manutius 1540–7 dsFPAnt.
Cic. Att. 11.11.1 -em possim Simon Dubois 1580 Paris. 8538 (R)
Cic. Att. 11.12.1 effecerat et fecerat Petrus Victorius 1536 Ambros. E 14 inf. (E)
Cic. Att. 11.12.4 accepi- accessisse P. Manutius 1540–7 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 11.14.3 quam quem Petrus Victorius 1536 Zb
Cic. Att. 11.16.1 ualde a. ualde de aduentu Petrus Victorius 1536 FP
Cic. Att. 11.17a.3 -i/-o illim Petrus Victorius 1536 cod. Ant.
Cic. Att. 11.20.2 et eo P. Manutius 1540–7 OPRC
Cic. Att. 12.1.1 -u rusticatur Petrus Victorius 1536 O1PR
Cic. Att. 12.14.4 uetabat id est/uetabat is est solitus ueta satis est Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Zl
Cic. Att. 12.28.1 tuis eius Denys Lambin 1565–72 O1
Cic. Att. 12.41.3 adsentiar assentior A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 13.21.3 -eri inhibere Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 13.33.1 -is scribes Denys Lambin 1565–72 OP
Cic. Att. 14.1.1 -i Lepido P. Manutius 1540–7 FP
Cic. Att. 14.2.2 σαλάκωμα φαλάκρωμα Petrus Victorius 1536 bs
Cic. Att. 14.3.2 pragmaticum πραγματικὸν Tyrrell-Purser 1897 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 14.5.2 m. odisse mederi deesse Petrus Victorius 1536 PR
Cic. Att. 14.8.1 uimam/Cluuiam iuniam P. Manutius 1540–7 Paris. 8538 (R)
Cic. Att. 14.11.2 uero cure cur(a)e Petrus Victorius 1536 bs
Cic. Att. 14.13.2 -im possum Graevius 1684 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 14.13.4 cred- caedis P. Manutius 1540–7 bP
Cic. Att. 14.22.1 (uirum) clarissimum c. u. Orelli 1845 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 14.22.1 -temus desisteremus Gabriele Faerno 1581 bm1s apud Ursinum
Cic. Att. 15.3.2 quoniam quam Giovan Battista Pio 1527 Urb. 322 (s)
Cic. Att. 15.12.1 ait autem G. H. Moser 1851 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 15.15.2 odit me odi. Id me Orelli 1845 Zt
Cic. Att. 15.17.2 desit (id) est/dees, id est des id est C. F. W. Müller 1898 O1PR
Cic. Att. 15.18.2 etiam et A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 15.18.2 etiam et iam Reinhold Klotz 1870 frg. Wurceb. (W)
Cic. Att. 15.20.1 anteno ante nos Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. Att. 15.20.4 u. enim uideas P. Manutius 1540–7 Paris. 8538 (R)
Cic. Att. 15.28 amore meo amorem eo Petrus Victorius 1536 PR
Cic. Att. 15.29.2 dissid- discidium P. Manutius 1540–7 PR
Cic. Att. 15.29.3 uidi esse uidisse Filippo Beroaldo I Zb
Cic. Att. 16.3.1 agis addis addis P. Manutius 1540–7 Ambros. E 14 inf. (E)
Cic. Att. 16.4.4 et tectis etesiis Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Zl
Cic. Att. 16.5.5 equidem et quidem P. Manutius 1540–7 PR
Cic. Att. 16.6.1 equis aequis Salmasius 1629 Paris. 8538 (R) Plinianae exercitationes p. 567–8
Cic. Att. 16.11.2 per ter Sebastiano Corradi 1544 Zb
Cic. Att. 16.15.5 ut inde suo uti de suo Petrus Victorius 1536 bs
Cic. Att. 16.16A.5 -et transissent Giovan Battista Pio 1527 Berol. 168 (b)
Cic. Att. 16.16F.18 tui sui P. Manutius 1540–7 Pb2
Cic. Caecin. 7 id si id C. M. Francken 1881 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Caecin. 24 quid qui C. A. Lehmann 1880 c2 apud Quaestiones Tullianae Pars V
Cic. Caecin. 24 pert- proterrui Denys Lambin 1566 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Caecin. 38 opp- approbata François Hotman 1554 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Caecin. 46 aliunde alicunde Andrea Navagero 1519 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Caecin. 49 atting- adiungere Denys Lambin 1566 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Caecin. 55 restitisse restituisse Andrea Navagero 1519 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Caecin. 72 se at ue statue Mommsen 1845 Brux. 14492 (π)
Cic. Caecin. 74 mina/cum omnia lumina P. Manutius 1540 Brux. 14492 (π)
Cic. Caecin. 77 retinet rem et Leonhard Spengel 1847 cod. Tegerns. (T) Philol.
Cic. Caecin. 85 -xit interdixerit Denys Lambin 1566 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Caecin. 93 destitutum destitutumquc Niccolò Angeli 1515 c2
Cic. Caecin. 99 visceribus hisce rebus Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 ς
Cic. Caecin. 100 -fuerunt proferunt Orelli 1826–31 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Caecin. 103 relinquo reliquo Petrus Faber 1601 Te
Cic. Cael. 4 no- vestra Karl Halm 1856
Cic. Cael. 9 potuit potuit isti Andrea Navagero 1534 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 11 is del. J. C. Vollgraff 1887 Cv
Cic. Cael. 15 pudicitiae impu- Gasparo Garatoni 1787 Cv
Cic. Cael. 18 rei ρ. c. publica causa C. M. Francken 1880 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 21 vos del. Gasparo Garatoni 1787 Cv
Cic. Cael. 29 om. et copiose Andrea Navagero 1534 P.Lond.Lit 143
Cic. Cael. 34 eorum horum J. A. Ernesti 1810 gZI
Cic. Cael. 36 visa vis Madvig 1887 P.Lond.Lit 143
Cic. Cael. 37 dide te, ac disijce/dede, ac disce dide, ac dissice Claude Dupuy 1559 Cv apud Lambinum
Cic. Cael. 41 et interdum interdum Madvig 1828 CvCii appendix p. 47
Cic. Cael. 43 liquet libet Madvig 1887 P.Lond.Lit 143 p. 320
Cic. Cael. 44 quondam quoniam Andrea Navagero 1534 P.Lond.Lit 143
Cic. Cael. 45 el- loquor Andrea Navagero 1519 P.Lond.Lit 143
Cic. Cael. 45 atque atqui Denys Lambin 1565 P.Lond.Lit 143
Cic. Cael. 45 om. modo facimus non Madvig 1887 Cv p. 321
Cic. Cael. 46 laborefiendi/labor confitendi labor offendit Madvig 1887 CvCii p. 322
Cic. Cael. 47 tot tot iam Denys Lambin 1565 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 52 ceterum ceterorum Janus Gulielmius 1618 CvCii apud Gruterum
Cic. Cael. 54 laborata elaborata Antonio Agustín 1581 P.Lond.Lit 143 apud Ursinum
Cic. Cael. 57 sic enim obiectum (est) sic est enim obiectum Karl Halm 1856 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 58 ad eadem rem ad eam rem Madvig 1876 CvCii p. 326
Cic. Cael. 59 ibi/urbi mihi Orelli 1826/32 CvCbCii
Cic. Cael. 60 co- tonantem A. C. Clark 1905 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 226 (g)
Cic. Cael. 60 sed enim etenim Janus Gruterus 1618 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 61 aiunt hoc aiunt huic Madvig 1887 CvCii p. 321
Cic. Cael. 61 iam iam iam G. Oetling 1868 CvCbCi ed. Romana
Cic. Cael. 62 venenum venenumque Denys Lambin 1565 CvCii
Cic. Cael. 65 est etiam est iam Jodocus Badius 1527 C*
Cic. Cael. 68 -levata sublata Denys Lambin 1565 TCvCii
Cic. Cael. 71 stultitiamne stultitiam stultitiamne Andrea Navagero 1519 Ci
Cic. Cael. 71 afraria aeraria Gasparo Garatoni 1787 Cv
Cic. Cael. 78 om. esse Denys Lambin 1565 Cv
Cic. Cael. 78 sit est J. G. Baiter 1856 Cv Baiter-Halm p. 1452
Cic. Catil. 2.4 etiam tum reprobatam etiam tum re probata A. C. Clark 1905 Pap. Barcin. (B)
Cic. Catil. 4.8 -a dignas Denys Lambin 1566 Monac. 7809 (i)
Cic. Catil. 4.8 l. p. possit levare Tadeusz Zielinski 1904 β
Cic. Catil. 4.15 in c. c. consulatu confirmatam Friedrich Richter 1861 Laur. 50.45 (x) p. 18
Cic. Cluent. 25 -traretur arbitretur B. Weiske 1806 ς
Cic. Cluent. 63 bis causam (iis) bis iis causam J. G. Baiter 1854 Paris. 14749 m. 1 (σ)
Cic. Cluent. 130 multitudinem illicitum multitudini nemini licitum Antonio Agustín 1581 Palimp. Taurin. (P) apud Ursinum
Cic. Cluent. 137 ut id quod ut quod W. Peterson 1899 Vat. Barb. lat. 142 (G)
Cic. Cluent. 150 tantum tamen Denys Lambin 1566 cod. Cluny (C)
Cic. Cluent. 152 -e -a potestatem suam P. Manutius 1541 ς
Cic. Cluent. 170 aud- adire Andrea Navagero 1519 exc. in Paris. lat. 18104 (X)
Cic. Cluent. 183 Strato … dixit Stratonem … dixisse C. G. Schütz 1815 cod. Cluny (C)
Cic. Cluent. 199 nomen et iura iura Madvig 1871 exc. in Paris. lat. 18104 (X) Adv. I 89 sq.
Cic. Deiot. 2 crudelis Castor (est) -em -em Madvig 1842 γ p. 308 'in a well-known passage' (Clark)
Cic. Flacc. 6 qua vi del. Gabriele Faerno 1563 Lag. 6 (b)
Cic. Flacc. 23 -et dicit Niccolò Angeli 1515 b1k
Cic. Flacc. 23 ipse p. psephismata W. G. Pluygers 1856 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Flacc. 23 et sed Gabriele Faerno 1563 b2
Cic. Flacc. 25 f. e. est factus Reinhold Klotz 1870 cod. Salisb. (s)
Cic. Flacc. 25 -averit degenerarit P. Manutius 1540 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Flacc. 25 in qua quam C. F. W. Müller 1897 b2
Cic. Flacc. 32 abeno ab Aeno Turnebus 1581 Lag. 6 (b)
Cic. Flacc. 41 -sensu- consessuque Andrea Navagero 1534 Paris. 7778 m. 2
Cic. Flacc. 52 pythodoria et idem iepisoni Pythodori Aetidemi Lepisones Gabriele Faerno 1563 Paris. 7779 (k) -soni k
Cic. Flacc. 61 -ant iactent Denys Lambin 1566 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Flacc. 61 defecerunt et defuerunt defecerunt Janus Gruterus 1618 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Flacc. 65 Caria Care Erasmus 1508 cod. Salisb. (s) ad 'In Care periculum'
Cic. Flacc. 66 om. sic Gabriele Faerno 1563 b1k
Cic. Flacc. 82 ingeniosus scriptoris ingenio subscriptoris Andrea Navagero 1519 schol. Bobiensis
Cic. Flacc. 90 qui cui Graevius 1695–9 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Flacc. 104 om. cum Gabriele Faerno 1563 b1k
Cic. Flacc. 105 -tuerint poterunt J. A. Ernesti 1773 Lag. 6 (b)
Cic. Font. 16 -tatis auctoritas Niccolò Angeli 1515 Arundel. 236 (l)
Cic. Font. 16 omnium hominum Gabriele Faerno 1563 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Font. 19 a M. Karl Halm 1854 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Font. 21 atrio at ratio Gabriele Faerno 1563 Arundel. 236 (l)
Cic. Font. 23 -e cogitationi François Hotman 1554 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Font. 25 -cium iudices Andrea Navagero 1519 Arundel. 236 (l)
Cic. Font. 35 om. et Karl Halm 1854 Arundel. 236 (l)
Cic. Font. 43 condemn- condonare Gabriele Faerno 1563 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Font. 43 -lit- maletis Andrea Navagero 1519 kl
Cic. Font. 48 -et tendit Gabriele Faerno 1563 kl
Cic. Lig. 5 t. est q. … si tempus quod ... si J. G. Baiter Harl. 2682 (H)
Cic. Lig. 17 quis- quicquam Haupt ah
Cic. Lig. 25 essetis estis Gasparo Garatoni C1
Cic. Lig. 29 m. tuae misericordiae Tadeusz Zielinski 1904 β
Cic. Lig. 38 -em h. -o salute hominibus danda C. F. W. Müller
Cic. Manil. 26 -i confectis Andrea Navagero 1534 Harl. 2682 (H)
Cic. Manil. 44 huius a. auctoritas Niccolò Angeli 1515 Harl. 2682 (H)
Cic. Manil. 54 umq- inquam Karl Halm 1854 Paris. 14749 (σ) mg.
Cic. Manil. 66 qui se a qui a C. A. Heumann 1735 Harl. 2682 (H)
Cic. Manil. 67 eos nos Denys Lambin 1566 HW
Cic. Marcell. 12 q. illa erant adepta quae <illā> erant adempta Madvig 1884 Harl. 2545 p. 152
Cic. Mil. 12 est esset John Bake 1852 Harl. 2682 (H)
Cic. Mil. 39 -erent concurreret Friedrich Richter 1864 ΣH
Cic. Mil. 63 perdi- percito Andrea Navagero 1519 b2
Cic. Mil. 65 esse se Heumann ΣH
Cic. Mur. 3 -a uno Denys Lambin 1566 ω
Cic. Mur. 13 cumsp-/consp- circumspicere Janus Gulielmius χ2
Cic. Mur. 21 i. e. eadem in Denys Lambin 1566 ς
Cic. Mur. 25 causis capsis Madvig n.d. cod. Sambuci
Cic. Mur. 32 -am statuo Niccolò Angeli 1515 Monac. 15734 (s)
Cic. Mur. 33 M. non Mithridatem Jodocus Badius 1511
Cic. Mur. 34 -o ipse Niccolò Angeli 1515 Guelf. 205 (w)
Cic. Mur. 49 -cussi perculsi Denys Lambin 1566 ς
Cic. Mur. 56 sunt sint J. A. Ernesti n.d. Laur. 52.1 (φ)
Cic. Mur. 56 alienissimo alienis exitio Denys Lambin 1566 ψ2
Cic. Phil. 1.3 qua qua re Rudolf Klussmann 1877 cod. Amst. Tulliana p. 6
Cic. Phil. 2.58 leno- leonibus Petrus Victorius 1540 Harl. 2682 (h)
Cic. Phil. 6.19 -a horam Graevius 1699 Collegii Novi Oxon. 252 (o)
Cic. Phil. 8.9 sunt illi potius quam pecudes illi ac non pecudes potius Gabriele Faerno 1561 Basil. Vat. H. 25 (V)
Cic. Phil. 11.26 consulib; alter ambosve/cõs. alterum ambosve consules, alter ambove Madvig 1855–8 Voss. lat. O. 2 (n) Opusc. II (1887) p. 729
Cic. Phil. 12.6 -aretur miretur J. A. Ernesti 1819 Vat. 3228 (s)
Cic. Phil. 12.24 maneo del. Andrea Navagero 1519 codd. dett.
Cic. Phil. 13.6 tectior protectior Tadeusz Zielinski 1904 V2
Cic. Phil. 13.22 -at desinet J. A. Ernesti 1819 n2
Cic. Phil. 13.49 -as -am undis flamma Hieronymus Ferrarius 1542 cod. P. Laeti (corr.)
Cic. Phil. 14.22 est dico Gabriele Faerno 1561 Collegii Novi Oxon. 252 (o)
Cic. Phil. 14.23 Servilium Servili num Hieronymus Ferrarius 1542 Bern. 104 (b)
Cic. Phil. 14.33 ins- sepulta Pomponius Laetus n.d. Bern. 104 (b)
Cic. Phil. 14.36 -a sententiam Karl Halm 1856 Collegii Novi Oxon. 252 (o)
Cic. Phil. 14.38 -ere -os caderent nonnulli Karl Halm 1856 Collegii Novi Oxon. 252 (o)
Cic. Pis. 2 tum tu Andrea Navagero 1519 ς
Cic. Pis. 5 -unicavi commutavi François Hotman 1554 Lag. 9
Cic. Pis. 6 -ae … -ae gesta … conservata Gasparo Garatoni 1777–8 Lag. 9
Cic. Pis. 13 vino- vinulentis C. F. W. Müller 1886 Mμς
Cic. Pis. 15 interire interimere Andrea Navagero 1534 c2k
Cic. Pis. 15 interire vi terrere C. G. Zumpt Bodl. Canon. 226 (c) ad Caec. 54
Cic. Pis. 20 tum aut C. G. Schütz 1815 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Pis. 22 suo suorum Fulvio Orsini 1581 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Pis. 23 -i Clodiane Denys Lambin 1566 Lag. 12
Cic. Pis. 25 pulsat- cerussataeque Niccolò Angeli 1515 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Pis. 31 omni- ominibus Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 c2
Cic. Pis. 31 -vivi semiviri Anton Draeger 1867 Lag. 9 Philol.
Cic. Pis. 49 praebuisse praebuit se Gabriele Faerno 1563 Palimp. Taur. (P)
Cic. Pis. 57 non e. p. t. sed eversae per te et Gabriele Faerno 1563 Basil. Vat. H. 25 (V)
Cic. Pis. 59 facet- factus Antonio Agustín 1543 V1
Cic. Pis. 64 idem item J. A. Ernesti Basil. Vat. H. 25 (V)
Cic. Pis. 67 hi ii Reinhold Klotz 1872 χς
Cic. Pis. 74 tu me tu Gabriele Faerno 1563 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 13 (M)
Cic. Pis. 81 -io imperium Denys Lambin 1566 Pχ1
Cic. Pis. 87 mar- armorum Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Pis. 87 et quid ecquid Niccolò Angeli 1515 cod. Erfurt. (E)
Cic. Pis. 89 descensi- decessionis Niccolò Angeli 1515 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Pis. 94 -ent excellunt Andrea Navagero 1519 Lag. 9
Cic. Pis. 94 n. est q. i. nihil quod invites Karl Halm 1856 ω1
Cic. Pis. 96 -et putat W. G. Pluygers 1861 Cus. C. 52 (C)
Cic. Pis. 96 -ere fuerunt Karl Halm 1856 cod. Ströbel (i)
Cic. Pis. 98 p. dicere audes ponderari P. Manutius 1540 c2k
Cic. Planc. 13 servaras res- J. C. F. Campe 1867 a1
Cic. Planc. 27 -i magn[i]s Ottavio Pantagato Berol. 13229 A et B (P)
Cic. Planc. 41 editi editici Gasparo Garatoni 1815–25 TEΣ
Cic. Planc. 52 Q. C. P. Manutius 1540–1 Paris. 16228 (g)
Cic. Planc. 58 fine me Denys Lambin 1565–6 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Planc. 75 absolut- obsoletae P. Manutius 1540–1 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Planc. 78 d. m. aut pro m. de magistratibus Andrea Navagero 1519 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Planc. 89 om. constantiam Niccolò Angeli 1515 b2ψ2
Cic. Planc. 100 vi me, inquam vi me, vi, inquam Orelli 1826 Palat. 1820 (p)
Cic. Planc. 103 his iis Niccolò Angeli 1515 cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Q. Rosc. 7 sunt in in Andrea Navagero 1519
Cic. Q. Rosc. 8 exem- extemplo Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 ς
Cic. Q. Rosc. 10 om- amittamus Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Q. Rosc. 11 clarius dari P. Manutius 1540 Ωt
Cic. Q. Rosc. 15 peri- proinde Denys Lambin 1566 b1
Cic. Q. Rosc. 20 non nonne Andrea Navagero 1534 otς
Cic. Q. Rosc. 20 -is rasus J. A. Ernesti 1773
Cic. Q. Rosc. 22 su- nummis Andrea Navagero 1534 ς
Cic. Q. Rosc. 46 propterea praeterea Turnebus 1581 ς
Cic. Q. Rosc. 53 et et eum Denys Lambin 1566 Ω1
Cic. Quinct. 13 quod quidque quodcumque J. G. Baiter 1854 H2
Cic. Quinct. 17 -et quaesisses François Hotman 1554 Arus. gramm. 32
Cic. Quinct. 19 -em auctione François Hotman 1554 ck
Cic. Quinct. 29 tum tamen J. A. Ernesti 1773 Flor. Bibl. Nat. I. IV. 4 (b)
Cic. Quinct. 30 -eret iuberetur François Hotman 1554 ck
Cic. Quinct. 31 -et possit P. Manutius 1579 Φ
Cic. Quinct. 33 testesque potestasque Andrea Navagero 1519 b2
Cic. Quinct. 40 si p. et petisses Reinhold Klotz 1852–62 b2
Cic. Quinct. 47 sedeat se dedat Reinhold Klotz 1852–62 Pal. lat. 1484 (136)
Cic. Quinct. 51 -e commemorari Madvig 1856 H2 85 apud Baiter-Halm
Cic. Quinct. 54 hoc hos Denys Lambin 1565 Iul. Ruf. rhet. 10
Cic. Quinct. 60 latitat latitarit P. Manutius 1579 Paris. 7778
Cic. Quinct. 79 agis ais Gasparo Garatoni 1777 Φ
Cic. Quinct. 82 qui quin Denys Lambin 1565 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Quinct. 84 -dat/-dit defenderit Reinhold Klotz 1852–62 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1710 (H)
Cic. Rab. Post. 8 etiam cum etiam Niccolò Angeli 1515 pq
Cic. Rab. Post. 17 -orum maior François Hotman 1554 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Rab. Post. 21 huic hui Turnebus 1581 c1
Cic. Rab. Post. 24 om. se Karl Halm 1856 ς
Cic. Rab. Post. 25 om. illa Andrea Navagero 1534–7 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Rab. Post. 29 om. et Andrea Navagero 1519 Bodl. Canon. 226 (c)
Cic. Rab. Post. 30 -orum imperatarum Madvig 1855 Laur. 90 sup. 69 (ψ) non ex dett.
Cic. Rab. Post. 30 centima in centesima Karl Halm 1856 c2
Cic. Rab. Post. 41 om. ut Andrea Navagero 1519 ς
Cic. Rab. Post. 47 a. fecisset adiumento Madvig 1856 Paris. 7779 (k) apud Baiter-Halm
Cic. Rab. Post. 48 iam nam Karl Halm 1856 c1
Cic. Rab. perd. 3 -i iudicare Turnebus 1581 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Rab. perd. 4 om. nisi Karl Halm 1856 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Rab. perd. 14 om. C. C. L. Kayser 1861 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Rab. perd. 24 -em imagine Andrea Navagero 1519 c1k
Cic. S. Rosc. 1 surrexerim s. is Andrea Navagero 1534 Σc
Cic. S. Rosc. 11 i- eidem Antonio Agustín 1581 Laur. 48.26 (ω) apud Ursinum
Cic. S. Rosc. 30 -etur optet Filippo Beroaldo I 1499 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 30 supplicium parricidarum del. François Hotman 1554 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 30 quoniam quidem suscepi del. J. F. Heusinger 1835 Bodl. Canon. 226 (c) apud Büchner
Cic. S. Rosc. 44 -e attenta Andrea Navagero 1519 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 56 tamen non tamen Robert Novák 1887 c2k
Cic. S. Rosc. 62 id maxime maxime Jodocus Badius 1527 c2k
Cic. S. Rosc. 72 t. e. est tam Denys Lambin 1566 Laur. 48.25 (χ)
Cic. S. Rosc. 74 hi ii Karl Halm 1854 ως
Cic. S. Rosc. 74 quicum locutus qui conlocutus Guatav Krüger 1868 c1 NeueJahrbPhil; conlocutus Stanger
Cic. S. Rosc. 82 i. n. q. ibi quoque nos Madvig 1848 Σσχ
Cic. S. Rosc. 96 -um primo W. Büchner 1835 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 105 hoc hanc François Dubois 1530 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 115 Roscio T. Roscio C. G. Schütz 1814–23 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 124 l. s. esse laesos se A. C. Clark 1905 ς
Cic. S. Rosc. 149 -ala Messalla Denys Lambin 1566 c2k
Cic. Sull. 1 victi revicti James S. Reid b2
Cic. Sull. 23 Curio M' Curio P. Manutius schol. Bob.
Cic. Sull. 48 cogitavit cognovit Denys Lambin ac1
Cic. Sull. 52 om. et James S. Reid Brux. 14492 (π)
Cic. Sull. 55 servili Servili Madvig Lag. 9
Cic. Sull. 58 rei p. populo R. Janus Gulielmius cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Sull. 63 de salute dum saluti Beck cod. Tegerns. (T)
Cic. Sull. 76 -it posset J. A. Ernesti 1773–7 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. Sull. 82 attestantem ad testandam Denys Lambin TE
Cic. Sull. 83 quid? Ego quid ego? James S. Reid Laur. xxiii. Sin. 3 (a)
Cic. Sull. 90 etsi et si C. F. W. Müller πaΣψ
Cic. Sull. 92 est sunt Denys Lambin TE
Cic. Tim. 14 -unt fuerant Denys Lambin 1565–6 Vindob. lat. 189 (V)
Cic. Tull. 42 -matis armis P. E. Huschke 1826 Palimp. Taur. (T) apud J. G. H.
Cic. Tusc. 1.51 nisi si Moritz Seyffert 1864 ς
Cic. Tusc. 4.30 in insipientem in sapientem Turnebus 1564 V2 Adv. VII 17
Cic. Tusc. 5.63 tragicum t. accepimus Moritz Seyffert 1864 ς
Cic. Tusc. 5.119 observent/obscurentur obruantur John Davies 1723 frg. Oxon. (F) Clark, 'A Bodleian fragment'
Cic. Verr. I 41 -mae nocentissimi Madvig 1828 schol. Gronov. Append. crit. p. 38
Cic. Verr. II 1.123 ad- idiurare Reinhold Klotz 1852–62 Paris. 7776 (p)
Cic. Verr. II 1.123 et i. l. at ille libertus J. A. Ernesti 1773–7 Harl. 2687 (r)
Cic. Verr. II 1.153 -erent defendent Madvig 1828 Paris. 7776 (p) Appendix critica p. 42
Cic. Verr. II 2.113 -it statueret J. A. Ernesti 1773–7 COb
Cic. Verr. II 4.14 nisi l. si libidini non C. A. Jordan 1854 Leid. Periz. 12 (L)
Cic. Verr. II 5.51 -um … -um usurpato … retento Denys Lambin 1585 Paris. 7776 (p)
Cic. Verr. II 5.137 -ia(e) luxurie Madvig 1828 Paris. 7776 (p) Ad Orellium p. 47
Cic. ac. 1.17 qui quia James S. Reid 1885 ππ1ρ μν1γφ
Cic. ac. 1.19 imp- expressionem P. Manutius 1541–60 αβς
Cic. ac. 1.29 inter item Bentley 1725–36 ππ2ρ i. m. ‘amicus’ apud Dauisium
Cic. ac. 1.30 ra- oratione Denys Lambin 1566 ν1φ1φ2
Cic. ad Brut. 9.12.3 prorsus alienae prorsus C. L. Kayser 1884 Land. 8 (H) apud Madvig
Cic. ad Q. fr. 1.1.16 et inuident non e. uero i. n. P. Manutius 1540–62 Taur. lat. 495 (O)
Cic. ad Q. fr. 2.9.1 -ebaris/-ebis uideris Leonardus Malaespina 1564 bs2
Cic. ad Q. fr. 2.9.1 infusa insulsa Petrus Victorius 1536 sF
Cic. ad Q. fr. 3.5.5 -ent uiderunt A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Palat. 1510 (V)
Cic. ad Q. fr. 3.6.6 ei nihil tribuit et omnia Guttae ei n. t., o. G. A. S. Wesenberg 1873 Paris. 8536 (P)
Cic. div. 1.20 post prius Janus Gulielmius s.xvi med. Phillipp. 1794 (L) apud Gruterum
Cic. div. 1.20 exces(s)um excelsum Denys Lambin 1565–6 Merton. 311
Cic. div. 1.21 ac/at et Hottinger 1793 Palat. lat. 1519 (P)
Cic. div. 1.130 ut enim etenim P. Manutius 1541 codd. Cantabr. et Reg. (Davies)
Cic. div. 2.72 silentium si silentium Denys Lambin 1565–6 Erlang. 618
Cic. div. 2.109 esse (alterum) del. Marsus 1509 codd. Cantabr. et Reg. (Davies)
Cic. div. 2.111 primi(s) versus primis versuum Jean Dorat s.xvi med. codd. dett. (Moser)
Cic. div. 2.145 -unt viderint Franz Skutsch †1912 Marc. lat. 257 (F) Glotta p. 367 (Schwanengesang)
Cic. div. in Caec. 46 -em … -em more … religione Gronovius n.d. P.Ryl. III 477 m1
Cic. dom. 39 infirma sunt infirmas Madvig 1873 P1
Cic. dom. 40 te tibi G. Lahmeyer 1866 Bern. 254 (t) Philol.
Cic. dom. 122 prae- proditis C. F. Naegelsbach 1856 Paris. 7779 (k) apud Baiter-Halm
Cic. fin. 1.3 sapientia del. P. Manutius 1583 Ambros. C. 55. inf. (Y)
Cic. fin. 1.59 immanes inanes Madvig 1876 Vat. lat. 1759 (V)
Cic. fin. 2.54 scipioni caepioni P. Manutius 1583 A R MV
Cic. fin. 2.112 Athoque Athone P. Manutius 1583 R PLS NV Β
Cic. fin. 3.12 siis iis Madvig 1876 Ambros. C. 55. inf. (Y)
Cic. fin. 3.44 -im separatum Madvig 1876 PS (Moreschini)
Cic. fin. 3.126 adf- confirmare Orelli 1828 recc.
Cic. fin. 4.11 qua hi/que hic qua et hi Madvig 1876 Vat. lat. 1759 (V)
Cic. fin. 4.33 -ale naturarum P. Manutius 1583 recc.
Cic. fin. 5.23 t. tamquam/tamquam t. tranquillitas Madvig 1876 Vat. lat. 1759 (V)
Cic. fin. 5.42 -int vicerunt Madvig 1876 Mutin. lat. 213 (O)
Cic. fin. 5.84 -rum miser Madvig 1876 P2
Cic. har. resp. 32 -imus/-emus neglegamus C. F. W. Müller 1896 Bern. 254 (t)
Cic. leg. agr. 1.26 p. R. patres conscripti Carlo Sigonio 1558 ς 'Comme Sigonius avoit de la peine à s'exprimer en latin, de Thou fut obligé, pour ne pas se priver de sa conversation, de parler italien le mieux qu'il put.'
Cic. leg. agr. 2.10 sed si sed Gasparo Garatoni 1777–8 c1
Cic. leg. agr. 2.10 quidem quiddam Andrea Navagero 1519 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.12 in r. rebus Andrea Navagero 1519 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.13 c. tandem contio Denys Lambin 1566 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.13 -tata exspectatur Janus Gulielmius 1618 Paris. 7779 (k) apud Gruterum
Cic. leg. agr. 2.21 -titur sortietur Andrea Navagero 1519 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.21 -idit excipit Andrea Navagero 1519 ς
Cic. leg. agr. 2.24 reus non r. Carlo Sigonio 1558 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.27 quia Quirites J. G. Baiter 1856 Lag. 9
Cic. leg. agr. 2.35 -orata ignota Madvig 1873 Lagg. 1, 7 p. 204
Cic. leg. agr. 2.37 credend- cavendum Denys Lambin 1566 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.40 terrae certe Niccolò Angeli 1515 Lag. 9
Cic. leg. agr. 2.41 Alexae Alexandri Carlo Sigonio 1558 ωχ
Cic. leg. agr. 2.83 fi- idem Mommsen 1856 Lag. 9 apud Baiter-Halm
Cic. leg. agr. 2.87 -ie nefarii Andrea Navagero 1519 Lag. 9
Cic. leg. agr. 2.91 condit- contionibus Andrea Navagero 1519 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 2.98 -nere uis opponeretis P. Manutius 1540 Lag. 9
Cic. leg. agr. 3.2 -abo probaro J. A. Ernesti 1773 Lag. 9
Cic. leg. agr. 3.7 sint sunt Turnebus 1581 Bodl. Canon. 226 (c)
Cic. leg. agr. 3.15 res p. populus R. Carlo Sigonio 1558 Paris. 7779 (k)
Cic. leg. agr. 3.16 atque atqui P. Manutius 1540 mo
Cic. nat. deor. 1.68 st sit Denys Lambin 1566 B1
Cic. nat. deor. 1.110 cog- agitare C. F. W. Müller 1878 D1
Cic. orat. 12 -a instructus P. Reis 1932 Budap. bibl. nat. lat. 148 (Bud.)
Cic. orat. 16 -is oratori J. A. Ernesti 1774–7 N2
Cic. orat. 21 aequali- aequabilitatem P. Manutius 1546 H Bud.
Cic. orat. 22 -is singuli P. Manutius 1546 Rem. bibl. mun. 1109 (R)
Cic. orat. 23 d. que(m) uim demosthenem quem uelim H. Muther 1886 Barcin. bibl. univ. 12 (B)
Cic. orat. 26 incend- incedens J. A. Ernesti 1774–7 N E Bud.
Cic. orat. 26 -et/-aret appellat F. Goeller 1838 Bud. M
Cic. orat. 33 i. nos nos igitur J. A. Ernesti 1774–7 Barb. lat. 126 (E)
Cic. orat. 62 om. et suauitate Hermann Sauppe 1857 Rem. bibl. mun. 1109 (R)
Cic. orat. 73 -imus dicamus J. A. Ernesti 1774–7 Matrit. bibl. nat. 10060 (V)
Cic. orat. 93 dix- dicit Janus Bake 1856 K f
Cic. orat. 99 videtur -ebitur Henri Estienne 1885 Σ Θ Ξ ap. Stangl
Cic. orat. 115 quid ue/quodque quidque P. Manutius 1546 J γ
Cic. orat. 138 ut a — aliquantum del. Janus Bake 1856 Iul. Vict. rhet. 20
Cic. orat. 147 -in qui Madvig 1873 N E Q p. 190
Cic. orat. 147 -er delectet J. A. Ernesti 1774–7 K J E
Cic. orat. 159 in insano in sano Janus Bake 1856 K γ
Cic. orat. 160 pyrrhum etc. phrygum C. G. Schütz 1807 R Bud.
Cic. orat. 180 omnes communes P. Manutius 1546 Barcin. bibl. univ. 12 (B)
Cic. orat. 183 dimensa ratio/demensur- dimensuratio Thomas Stangl 1885 Δ Φ J
Cic. orat. 194 -ius uitiosus P. Manutius 1546 P1 J
Cic. orat. 198 aut ne ut ne C. G. Schütz 1807 B Q
Cic. orat. 215 e del. W. A. Baehrens 1912 L
Cic. orat. 222 nodi modi J. Stroux 1913 B N Q
Cic. orat. 232 -atur corrumpetur Christian Hörner 1885 Θ B ap. Stangl
Cic. orat. 233 -it fuerat Denys Lambin 1566 Barcin. bibl. univ. 12 (B)
Cic. p. red. ad Quir. 3 quantum incolumitate quam tum incolumes François Hotman 1554 Lag. 25
Cic. parad. 39 spes spe Bentley Vindob. 189 (V)
Cic. part. 62 in del. Thomas Stangl 1886 CI Philol.
Cic. prov. 47 si del. Gustav Sorof 1875 GEb
Ciris 350 -e mi(c)hi uenientem ignem Haupt 1858 Steiermärk. Landesarchiv 1814 (G)
Ciris 450 labesc- liuescunt Nicolaus Heinsius 1789 Steiermärk. Landesarchiv 1814 (G) apud Heyne
Claud. 1.9 anni- amniadae Julius Koch 1893 Erlang. 626 (e2)
Claud. 1.198 græca/grata graia Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Vindob. 3246 (V4)
Claud. 3.48 quo cur Goodyear 1985 Paris. lat. 7936 (P14) apud Hall
Claud. 3.131 fata-/fera- furiale Theodor Birt 1892 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 6042 (L3) v.l.
Claud. 3.154 leuaui/litaui uocaui Ludwig Jeep 1876 Bonon. 2221 (b1) m. sec.
Claud. 3.260 s. m. se/m. s. sed solus medio sed Johannes Livineius 1581 LJ6pc cf. Birt pp. lxxxv, cxxvii
Claud. 3.274 ob- subieceris Johannes Schrader 1871 Flor. Bibl. Nat. VII. 144 (F17) apud Haupt
Claud. 3.304 diff- defundit Ludwig Jeep 1876 z1ac
Claud. 3.328 ludus luctus G. L. König 1808 Brux. 5381 (Γ)
Claud. 3.351 mole/amore honore Pieter Burman I 1760 F17pc
Claud. 3.354 uoto uultu Goodyear 1985 Paris. lat. 8082 (P2) apud Hall
Claud. 3.357 quies fides Johannes Schrader 1871 F20G5z1λ apud Haupt
Claud. 5.60 carin- catenis Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Γpc apud Burmannum
Claud. 5.87 nec ne Gilbert Wakefield s.xviii ex. Brux. 5381 (Γ) apud Hall
Claud. 5.159 scilicet si licet Caspar von Barth 1612 Guelf. Gud. 220 (W1)
Claud. 5.357 for- firmatque Ludwig Jeep 1876 Paris. lat. 8082 (P2) v.l.
Claud. 5.380 feruid- perfidus Goodyear 1985 Paris. lat. 8082 (P2) apud Hall
Claud. 5.384 cum tum Ludwig Jeep 1876 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. 5.400 pronior promptior Goodyear 1985 Patav. bibl. seminar. 140 (p4) apud Hall
Claud. 5.471 -a dextro Ludwig Jeep 1876 Rpc
Claud. 5.505 -iisque uitiique Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 gacP2ac apud Burmannum
Claud. 6.3 -sso excuso Scaliger 1603 Paris. lat. 8079 (P11)
Claud. 6.3 germ- tegmine Scaliger 1760 exc. Gyr. apud Burmannum
Claud. 7.4 auge- lucescat Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Bodl. Auct. F.2.16 (O3) apud Burmannum
Claud. 7.89 fat- fastis Ludwig Jeep 1876 L11ac
Claud. 7.118 -runt carmina mouere cacumina Gilbert Wakefield s.xviii ex. Paris. lat. 18552 (P) apud Hall; v.l.
Claud. 8.34 -it obsistat Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Bodl. Lat. class. e 47 (O4) 'vel sine libris lego'
Claud. 8.38 q. di(c)tat ditat quos Theodor Birt 1892 F17ac
Claud. 8.84 uul- cultus Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Paris. lat. 7936 (P14) apud Burmannum
Claud. 8.97 -os purpureo Johannes Schrader 1871 Paris. lat. 8082 (P2) apud Haupt
Claud. 8.101 sui sibi Johannes Camers 1510 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11)
Claud. 8.250 dum cum Ludwig Jeep 1876 A2F20O7
Claud. 8.330 praetect- praetentaque Scaliger 1603 Atrebat. 438 (θ) v.l.
Claud. 8.438 sirtibus syrtidos Ludwig Jeep 1876 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. 8.488 anim- armisque Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Paris. lat. 18551 (P10) apud Burmannum
Claud. 8.540 -tum contra G. L. König 1808 Leid. 294 (J3) v.l.
Claud. 8.634 -eat debuit T. W. Paul 1866 R3Γ1pc p. 10
Claud. 10.88 -is smaragdi J. M. Gesner 1759 F3W2pcθvl BWV 1075
Claud. 10.97 dilapsus delatus Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Parm. Palat. 2504 (Z) apud Burmannum
Claud. 10.126 soluit sistit G. L. König 1808 P2vlζac
Claud. 10.131 -i … -i sacris … thalamis Scaliger 1760 Ppc apud Burmannum
Claud. 10.151 antro arcu Ludwig Jeep 1876 O7λ
Claud. 10.315 -nio ingenuo Markland 1728 F2vlq ad Stat. silv. 2.6.48
Claud. 14.16 fidem facem Johannes Schrader 1871 Vat. Palat. lat. 1714 (R23) apud Haupt
Claud. 14.17 facem fidem Johannes Schrader 1871 Laur. 33.4 (F3) apud Haupt
Claud. 14.23 -um animam Gronovius 1639 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4) p. 212
Claud. 15.114 humeris armis Johannes Livineius 1581 exc. Laeti
Claud. 15.180 furia- feralis Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 F17Γ1 apud Burmannum
Claud. 15.193 disc-/degener decolor Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Ambros. Μ 9 sup. (K6) apud Burmannum
Claud. 15.218 saciar-/sancir- sociarent Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Vat. lat. 2808 (R13) apud Burmannum p. 810
Claud. 15.245 fouere/fauere uenere Pieter Burman I 1760 Lond. Harl. 2753 (L4)
Claud. 15.247 -et petissent Theodor Birt 1892 F19P10
Claud. 15.277 -it respuat Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 6042 (L3)
Claud. 15.294 etiamnum etiamtum Ludwig Jeep 1876 CpcJ6
Claud. 15.301 et sed Johannes Camers 1510 Yalensis Marst. 45
Claud. 15.381 auferet/aff- ac feret Scaliger 1760 Rvl (Birt) apud Burmannum
Claud. 15.381 auferet/aff- an feret Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Lpc
Claud. 15.387 quod quid Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 J3pc apud Burmannum p. 814
Claud. 15.423 -es leonis Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 PacJ6acL1L3 apud Burmannum p. 815
Claud. 15.492 cauda timida Johannes Camers 1510 Paris. lat. 18551 (P10)
Claud. 15.495 aur-/chor- cauris Ludwig Jeep 1876 R14pcζpc
Claud. 17.8 rure rupe Stephanus Claverius 1602 P20acW2ac
Claud. 17.15 -e honori Gilbert Wakefield s.xviii ex. Montepess. 330 (μ) apud Hall; v.l.
Claud. 17.55 iud- uindice Petrus Scriverius 1760 Paris. lat. 8080 (P1) apud Burmannum
Claud. 17.79 -rox ferax Theodor Birt 1892 gpc
Claud. 17.92 -lect- collatis Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 flor. Gall. apud Burmannum p. 821
Claud. 17.106 -que lucisue Caspar von Barth 1612 LPpc p. 243
Claud. 17.106 -u repulsus Caspar von Barth 1650 F2F17 p. 116
Claud. 17.110 flabra flamma Stephanus Claverius 1602 gpcP2sl
Claud. 17.111 -ant excutiat Stephanus Claverius 1602 gpcRac
Claud. 17.118 lim- nimbo Scaliger 1760 apud Burmannum
Claud. 17.118 lim- nimbo Caspar von Barth 1650
Claud. 17.147 regit gerit Caspar von Barth 1612 Bodl. Auct. F.2.16 (O3)
Claud. 17.212 -it … sui emergis … tui T. W. Paul 1866 Paris. lat. 7936 (P14) p. 9
Claud. 17.219 rabidas/rapid- rabies Pieter Burman I 1760 P1μacσ
Claud. 17.305 uiridis uarius Theodor Birt 1892 Paris. lat. 8079 (P11) marg.
Claud. 17.323 -et emicat Ludwig Jeep 1876 B1F3
Claud. 17.323 -us uinctu J. M. Gesner 1759 P2acF2ac
Claud. 17.326 chori tholi Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Laur. 33.5 (F19) apud Burmannum p. 827
Claud. 18.25 quantum quonam Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 C1λ apud Burmannum p. 828
Claud. 18.111 corr- horruerat Pieter Burman I 1760 O7ac
Claud. 18.141 ri- nisu Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Rac apud Burmannum
Claud. 18.156 thalamis/stabulis tabulis Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11)
Claud. 18.172 -unt/ent possint Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Laur. S. Marci 250 (F2) apud Burmannum p. 832; s.l.
Claud. 18.231 -or mirer Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 flor. Gall.
Claud. 18.248 argei argeia Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Montepess. 330 (μ) apud Burmannum
Claud. 18.250 syri- asiae Johannes Schrader 1871 Ppc2Rvl apud Haupt; an P2pcRvl?
Claud. 18.309 -us dominis Gronovius 1639 Paris. lat. 2908 (P13) p. 42
Claud. 18.309 -us/-is domini Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 exc. Gyr. (teste Birt)
Claud. 18.369 cons- conciliis Albert Rubens 1650 Ambros. Μ 9 sup. (K6) apud Heinsium; Petr. Paul. fil.
Claud. 18.501 quod quo J. M. Gesner 1759 flor. Gall.
Claud. 19.25 de/iam tum Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Paris. lat. 7936 (P14) apud Burmannum
Claud. 20.16 -ant penetrent T. W. Paul 1866 Bodl. Auct. F.2.16 (O3) p. 9
Claud. 20.18 arescat/exundet ex(s)udet Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 L3O2pc
Claud. 20.25 -us redditur Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11) apud Burmannum
Claud. 20.48 qui quin Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11) apud Burmannum p. 845
Claud. 20.133 haec habet Johannes Livineius 1581 Vat. lat. 2809 (R) s.l.
Claud. 20.211 -us metu Caspar von Barth 1665 PslL4pc apud Heinsium
Claud. 20.215 inultam inermem Ludwig Jeep 1876 Vat. lat. 2808 (R13)
Claud. 20.351 -foss- defessi Scaliger 1603 Paris. lat. 18551 (P10)
Claud. 20.489 -o stolidi Caspar von Barth 1624 L3P14 col. 680
Claud. 20.507–8 hoc … hoc hunc … hunc Johannes Camers 1510 Paris. lat. 8082 (P2)
Claud. 20.592 pro- praetendo Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 n1K6qz1 apud Burmannum
Claud. 21.30 -um partito Stephanus Claverius 1602 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11)
Claud. 21.57 uix uir Alan Ker 1985 L11W2 apud Hall
Claud. 21.62 bell- beli Scaliger 1603 L4pc
Claud. 21.183 quod quo Scaliger 1603 Laur. 33.6 (F20)
Claud. 21.189 -ant ruat Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. 21.205 -ant/-int paruerunt Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Guelf. Gud. lat. 220 (W1) p. 138
Claud. 21.226 albim Alpim Mommsen 1892 Turic. Car. C. 134 (z1) apud Birt
Claud. 21.282 fre- premerent Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 F2pc apud Burmannum p. 866
Claud. 22.3 rogan- rigentes Eduard Arens 1894 Bodl. Auct. F.2.16 (O3) v.l.
Claud. 22.99 -at fuerit Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Lond. Burn. 167 (L) p. 145 'vel contra libros'
Claud. 22.146 par- prauo Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Antuerp. Μ 185 (A3) apud Burmannum p. 873
Claud. 22.171 -ferat praeferre Franz Bücheler 1892 F17pc apud Birt
Claud. 22.196 causas caulas Caspar von Barth 1612 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4)
Claud. 22.335 tex- traxit Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Lond. Burn. 166 (L11) apud Burmannum
Claud. 22.336 hic his Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 n1q 'si liceat per codices antiquos'
Claud. 22.370 spati- speciosa Pieter Burman I 1760 Paris. lat. 18552 (P) s.l.
Claud. 22.371 -um cruentam Gronovius 1637 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4) Diatribe p. 333
Claud. 22.450 -at r./r. -ant stabant rutuli Gevartius 1650 W1θac apud Heinsium
Claud. 23.23 quint- quinos Scaliger 1603 P10pc
Claud. 24.200 cing- stringas Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Paris. lat. 7936 (P14)
Claud. 24.235 quas quot Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 ς unus (Birt)
Claud. 24.244 sagitt- pharetris Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Lond. Burn. 167 (L) apud Burmannum p. 888; in ras.
Claud. 24.278 namque iamque Ludwig Jeep 1876 Paris. lat. 8079 (P11)
Claud. 26.2 arma- artatum Scaliger 1603 Brux. 5381 (Γ)
Claud. 26.138 luct- cunctamine Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 exc. Laeti.
Claud. 26.190 li- lechaei Scaliger 1603 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4) marg.
Claud. 26.207 an at Theodor Birt 1892 Atreb. 65
Claud. 26.220 -s- diffissa Scaliger 1603 Cantab. Coll. Corp. Christi 228 (C1)
Claud. 26.328 nimbosue aut nimbosaue Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Ppc apud Burmannum p. 899
Claud. 26.347 astr- austris Scaliger 1603 Paris. 7647 p.c.
Claud. 26.370 -uex- reuixit Johannes Camers 1510 F17Z
Claud. 26.406 -i … -i animis … receptis Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 gpc
Claud. 26.541 -ire seruare Theodor Birt 1892 J6ac
Claud. 26.583 praeclarus praefectus Ludwig Jeep 1876 Vat. lat. 2808 (R13) v.l.
Claud. 26.583 -is gentes Caspar von Barth 1612 Bodl. Rawl. G. 134 (O8)
Claud. 26.622 -i cognatis Scaliger 1603 Paris. lat. 18552 (P) v.l.
Claud. 28.6 coet- cultu Johannes Schrader 1871 F3vlζvl apud Haupt
Claud. 28.15 sint- suntque Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Ppc apud Burmannum p. 909
Claud. 28.21 recond- retundunt J. M. Gesner 1759 Cantab. Coll. Corp. Christi 228 (C1)
Claud. 28.192 aut ut Scaliger 1603 θac
Claud. 28.212 b. m. medius belli Caspar von Barth 1650 Patav. bibl. capitul. C. 62 (p2)
Claud. 28.267 -i diuerso Gilbert Wakefield s.xviii ex. F3ζ apud Hall
Claud. 28.267 -e stamina Th. Hertel 1848 Antuerp. Μ 17.1 (A2)
Claud. 28.283 sors fors Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Paris. lat. 8079 (P11) 'vel sine libris'
Claud. 28.291 hic haec Scaliger 1603 J3pc
Claud. 28.312 -it desinet Mommsen 1892 J3acP10 apud Birt
Claud. 28.356 -di moranti Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 F17ac apud Burmannum
Claud. 28.365 nom- numine J. M. Gesner 1759 Guelf. Helmaest. 538 (W2)
Claud. 28.485 manum manu Caspar von Barth 1650 Antuerp. Μ 17.1 (A2) p. 754
Claud. 28.624 artes acies Theodor Poelman 1571 Antuerp. Μ 17.1 (A2)
Claud. 28.651 indu- imbuit Scaliger 1603 b1F3vl
Claud. 28.659 iste ipse Stephanus Claverius 1602 P10S3
Claud. Don. Aen. 9.585 mort- inertem Karl Hoppe 1891 Vat. lat. 1512 (V)
Claud. Gigant. 7 ὡς ὣς Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23) Conjectaneorum epicorum fasc. I
Claud. Gigant. 18 ῥιφθ- ῥιφεῖσα Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 19 γίνεται [...] γίνετο πᾶσα Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 26 τάνυσεν Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 32 νιέρος Νηρέος Juan de Iriarte 1769 F23 mg. p. 219
Claud. Gigant. 59 πρόῤῥειζ- πρόρριζον Juan de Iriarte 1769 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 64 φοίν- φόνιον Karl Schenkl 1863 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 68 -ὸς πυροῖς A. Ludwich 1897 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 68 τοῖς τοῖσι Karl Schenkl 1863 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 69 -ος πυρόεντας Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 70 ἔκθ- ἔνθορε Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 71 περὶ ζ. περιζείουσα Juan de Iriarte 1769 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. Gigant. 75 νοῦσ- νῆσος Hermann Köchly 1851 Laur. Conv. Soppr. 164 (F23)
Claud. carm. min. 9.1 -e memoranda Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. carm. min. 9.15 pinnae/pugnae spinae Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 cod. Buslid. Heinsii apud Burmannum
Claud. carm. min. 9.34 mut- mota Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Paris. lat. 18552 (P) s.l.
Claud. carm. min. 17.8 clar- cara Johannes Camers 1510 Flor et Δ
Claud. carm. min. 17.11 erex- arrexit Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Guelf. Gud. lat. 220 (W1) 'si per codices scriptos liceat'
Claud. carm. min. 17.35 -er patri Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4)
Claud. carm. min. 17.42 -auit dicabit Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Veron. 163 (Δ)
Claud. carm. min. 20.5 uario uano Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Matrit. 10082 (ζ)
Claud. carm. min. 22.17 -is famuli Scaliger 1603 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4)
Claud. carm. min. 25.101 populis-/peplū- peplisque Ludwig Jeep 1876 Laur. 33.4 (F3)
Claud. carm. min. 26.49 leuis lenes Johannes Camers 1510 gJ3O3/C1
Claud. carm. min. 26.51 plen- planas Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 W1pc 'vel contra libros'
Claud. carm. min. 27.10 saeu- scaeua Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Marc. XII. 11 (T2) apud Burmannum p. 981
Claud. carm. min. 27.27 nam- iamque Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Parm. Palat. 2504 (Z)
Claud. carm. min. 27.28 toties totidem Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. carm. min. 27.34 flat- fluctu Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 F2W1 apud Burmannum
Claud. carm. min. 27.84 gemmis & gemmisque Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 unus Burmanni
Claud. carm. min. 27.110 nec non Nicolaus Heinsius 1665 Lond. Harl. 2753 (L4)
Claud. carm. min. 28.23 uel(l)ata uallata Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Vat. lat. 3289 (R31)
Claud. carm. min. 28.24 -is causa/-es causas -is causa est Ludwig Jeep 1876 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 6042 (L3)
Claud. carm. min. 30.87 aur- horae André Schott 1615 Cuiacii vetus (Claverius) p. 111
Claud. carm. min. 30.166 -no marito Scaliger 1650 Matrit. 10082 (ζ) apud Heinsium
Claud. carm. min. 30.174 acheloïus iret achelous abiret Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 gpcK4 apud Burmannum
Claud. carm. min. 31.6 -i dulces Caspar von Barth 1612 gpc p. 463
Claud. carm. min. 32.7 inclu- infusum Pieter Burman I 1760 Veron. 163 (Δ)
Claud. carm. min. 34.3 iunx- uinxit Scaliger 1650 CgpcO3 apud Heinsium p. 269
Claud. carm. min. 40.22 libr- labris Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Crac. 71 (g) p. 251
Claud. carm. min. 41.9 chii cei Scaliger 1603 Ambros. S 66 sup. (K4)
Claud. carm. min. 41.11 -tur uidebor Scaliger 1603 ΔK4
Claud. carm. min. 42.1 -is superbi Caspar von Barth 1612 Matrit. 10082 (ζ) p. 481
Claud. carm. min. 49.3 -is molli Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 J3ac p. 257
Claud. carm. min. 53.83 -us auido Caspar von Barth 1650 Lond. Burn. 167 (L) p. 945
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.46 aucto/acto uasto Georg Goetz 1876 Monac. 391 (M3) PhilAnz 7 p. 143
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.67 -e illa Pietro Odo s.xv med. R14mgR26mg apud Hall
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.92 i c. (et) p. i celer i proscinde Pieter Burman I 1760 Erlang. 626 (e2) 'miror vero non geminasse Heinsium & legisse &c.'
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.147 -am trisulco Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 6042 (L3)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.149 respuit/respicit despicit Stephanus Claverius 1602 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.205 -is … -is coniferi … rami Ludwig Jeep 1876 Parm. Palat. 2504 (Z)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.224 -unt quiescant Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 L2O2vl apud Burmannum p. 942
Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.261 sta- gramina Gilbert Wakefield s.xviii ex. Erlang. 626 (e2) apud Hall
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2 praef. 29 act- astusque Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Berol. lat. oct. 112 (G2) apud Burmannum p. 945
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2 praef. 52 -idos placito Stephanus Claverius 1602 O3ac
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.75 ann- aruum Ludwig Jeep 1876 F4pcL6
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.100 -uiret internitet Ludwig Jeep 1876 J4C3
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.103 -o uiui Ludwig Jeep 1876 Neap. V. D. 53 (n)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.126 -a cauae Ludwig Jeep 1876 Crac. 71 (g)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.148 -is/-em odorum Ludwig Jeep 1876 Bodl. Lat. class. e 47 (O4)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.189 proluit/palluit polluit Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 R14R26 apud Burmannum
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.203 harenae aristae Johannes Schrader 1871 R4w apud Haupt
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.215 quae quo Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 e2mnr apud Burmannum p. 952
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.230 -us Hymenaeon Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Neap. V. D. 53 (n)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.255 rapid- rabido Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Laur. Ashb. L. 977 (F4)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.275 -it deterget Theodor Birt 1892 Berol. lat. qu. 740 (G1)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.300 ues- fastigia Caspar von Barth 1650 Laur. S. Crucis 24. sin. 12 (F1) p. 918
Claud. rapt. Pros. 2.437 fest- faustas Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Rauenn. Class. 120 (r) apud Burmannum p. 955
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.21 cogno- commouimus Johannes Schrader 1871 aF6k apud Haupt
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.36 parcum- paruumque Emil Baehrens 1875 Antuerp. Μ 17.1 (A2) Baehrens on Jeep
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.88 exhaust- exustusque Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Angel. 1461 (R29)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.102 teror/precor premor Emil Baehrens 1877 Marc. XII. 11 (T2) Bursiani Jahresber. p.226; marg.
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.103 -es indulgens Ludwig Jeep 1876 G4V3ac
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.103 inter- perstrepis L. Reinhardt 1892 Vigorn. F 147 (H) apud Birt
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.105 tu nota/tua nata te nata Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Vratisl. IV. Q. 57 (g3) apud Burmannum p. 960
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.137 di- degreditur Emil Baehrens 1875 O1O2acP2ac Baehrens on Jeep
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.241 decres- marcescere Julius Koch 1892 A1vlL10pcUpc apud Birt
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.248 casus et c. Stephanus Claverius 1602 Haun. Gl. Kgl. S. 1905 (U)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.267 nimium-/iamiam- timidumque Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Paris. lat. 15005 (P5) apud Burmannum
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.282 -em hominum Nicolaus Heinsius 1650 Paris. lat. 15005 (P5) '-um Claud. scripserat, quicquid libri obstant'
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.282 -em homines Ludwig Jeep 1876 ae2kR38
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.288 -ria trinacrida Theodor Birt 1892 Baltim. 437 (m)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.301 sit si Stephanus Claverius 1602 Vigorn. F 147 (H)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.359 peti- peritura Stephanus Claverius 1602 R7ac p. 35
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.360 et an Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 L10vlV apud Burmannum
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.386 -e animarum Stephanus Claverius 1602 O3pcP2pc
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.403 -os iuuencas Stephanus Claverius 1602 Vigorn. F 147 (H)
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.443 quo- quacumque Stephanus Claverius 1602 exc. Laeti
Claud. rapt. Pros. 3.444 adna- innatat Nicolaus Heinsius 1760 Lond. Royal 15 Α vii (L5) apud Burmannum; 'etsi pro vulgato stant & codices manu exarati'
Culex 40 memor- remoretur Emil Baehrens 1879 Corsin. 43 F 5 (Γ)
Culex 149 -em liquorum Haupt 1858 Cantab. Kk v 34 (C)
Culex 179 inton- insonat Johannes Schrader 1789 Corsin. 43 F 5 (Γ) apud Heyne
Culex 202 -oeis Erebois Julius Sillig 1831 Corsin. 43 F 5 (Γ) 'i.e. Ἐρεβωΐς'
Culex 355 Heraea-/Cæica- ægeaque Scaliger 1573 ΓV
Culex 407 Pinus Picris Bembo 1530 Paris. lat. 8069 (T) m. sec.
Flor. epit. 1.22.3 in causa(m) causa Otto Rossbach 1896 V E Cracov.
Flor. epit. 1.35.4 -e caedit Salmasius 1609 Ticin. Ald. 228 (T)
Flor. epit. 2.9.13 hic hinc Otto Rossbach 1896 Vallic. B 2 (F)
Flor. epit. 2.13.2 -clus- praeluserat Janus Gruterus 1597 R et Firm. I
Flor. epit. 2.13.33 exitum exemplum Johannes Freinsheim 1655 Duroc. 1327 (β) ed. noviss. p. 350
Flor. epit. 2.13.45 -at(us) circumsonantem Salmasius 1609 Vallic. R 33 (V)
Flor. epit. 2.13.80 (in) hic et hic Mommsen 1882 Class. Ravenn. 245 (R)
Frontin. aq. 7.5 senatu senatu M. Franz Bücheler 1858 α senatū α
Frontin. aq. 23.1 ordin- origines Fulvio Orsini 1583 Ambros. I.29 sup. (A) apud Augustinum; marg.
Frontin. aq. 24.3 est non est Giovanni Giocondo 1513–22 Ambros. I.29 sup. (A) s.l.
Frontin. strat. 1.1.6 omi- commisso Franz van Oudendorp 1731–79 Lond. Lamb. Tenison. 752 (T)
Frontin. strat. 2.1.5 rursus eduxit r. suos e. Adam Eussner 1871 Lond. Lamb. Tenison. 752 (T) p. 86 ('Nach dem Sprachgebrauch des Autors, welcher educere mit einem Objecte verbindet')
Frontin. strat. 2.5.34 pugn- fuga Franz van Oudendorp 1731–79 Lond. Lamb. Tenison. 752 (T)
Frontin. strat. 2.6.4 germ- Romani Gottschalk Stewech 1585 ς
Frontin. strat. 2.9.1 circum- interuenerat Gronovius 1779 Lond. Lamb. Tenison. 752 (T) apud Van Oudendorp
Frontin. strat. 2.13.5 in a. s. non armis sed Gottschalk Stewech 1585 ς
Frontin. strat. 3.8.1 -arant existimabant Andreas Dederich 1855 Cantab. coll. diu. Petri 252 (K)
Frontin. strat. 3.15.6 compelli comportari Franz van Oudendorp 1731–79 Lond. Lamb. Tenison. 752 (T)
Frontin. strat. 4.7.29 -e armaret Petrus Scriverius 1606–7 ς
Fronto p. 21.4 pari. paria paribus Rudolf Klussmann 1874 teste Hauler p. 46
Fronto p. 171.9 limit- multis L. F. Heindorf 1816 teste Mai a. 1817 apud Niebuhr
Gell. 1.6.4 impugn- impropugnatum Christian Falster 1732 Palat. lat. 24 (A) p. 221
Gell. 3.10.7 fet- secus Lipsius 1580 VP
Gell. 3.14.5 sicut sicuti Lachmann 1855 recc. ad Lucr. 2.536
Gell. 6.17.10 obnoxie obnoxiosae Valens Acidalius 1607 Vat. lat. 3452 (V) p. 480 ad Plaut. Stich.; -se V
Gell. 10.15.20 exuisse exuit se Caspar Schoppe 1706 Qpc apud J. Gronovium p. 894
Gell. 13.5.7 curant quaerunt Lucian Müller 1885 Bonn. bibi. Vniu. S 218 (J) apud Hertz
Hist. Aug. Alex. 8.5 -erat dicat Emil Baehrens 1871 Σ
Hist. Aug. Alex. 10.5 aurelio Vario Otto Hirschfeld 1913 Σ
Hist. Aug. Alex. 37.10 s. secundum sed fecundam Michael Petschenig 1879 Chig. H. VII. 239 (Ch) p. 378
Hist. Aug. Alex. 41.7 ut usque Albrecht Gemoll 1876 Σ
Hist. Aug. Alex. 51.4 -ae summe Michael Petschenig 1879 P Σ p. 406
Hist. Aug. Aur. 25.3 -e plenissima Franz Eyssenhardt 1864 Σ
Hist. Aug. Avid. 1.5 adfecti- adfectationem Robert Novák 1896 Σ
Hist. Aug. Carac. 7.3–4 inseruit. at inseruiat Henri Jordan 1864 Σ
Hist. Aug. Carac. 8.6 nol- uoluerit Madvig 1873 Σ
Hist. Aug. Comm. 5.8 m. n. inposuit uxoris matris nomen imposuit. uxorem J. M. Heer 1901 Σ
Hist. Aug. Heliog. 26.8 cuiusce m./eiusce m. huiusce modi Karl Lessing 1901–6 Paris. lat. 5807 (R)
Hist. Aug. Pert. 7.9 quidem quidam Henri Jordan 1864 A Ch
Hist. Aug. Pert. 11.9 ti- tumorem Salmasius 1620 Ch V
Hist. Aug. Prob. 1.5 -petit- expeditus Franz Eyssenhardt 1864 Σ
Hist. Aug. quatt. tyr. 9.1 -am -em magna potestate Michael Petschenig 1894 Σ Philol. p. 355
Hist. Aug. quatt. tyr. 12.4 dicass& ditasset Johann Oberdick 1873 Σ Zeitschr. Österr. Gymn. 24 p. 807
Hor. ars 4 piscem pristim Gronovius 1662 recc.
Hor. ars 197 pecc- placare Andreas Weidner 1896 recc. (Klinger) adespota?
Hor. ars 277 quae qui Bentley 1711 recc.
Hor. ars 416 nunc non Richard Heinze 1908 recc.
Hor. carm. 1.3.4 -tric- obstructis Muretus 1551 Edinb. Adv. 18.4.12 (϶)
Hor. carm. 1.3.26 gens mens Franz van Oudendorp 1834 cod. Torrentii apud Peerlkamp
Hor. carm. 1.12.13 -is parentem Muretus 1551 cod. Gemblac. (Bentley)
Hor. carm. 1.14.14 ti- tumidus Scaliger 1561 γ et cod. Galei Bentleii
Hor. carm. 1.15.36 Iliacas Pergameas Peter van Os 1500 pauci codd. (Peerlkamp)
Hor. carm. 1.20.5 ca- clare Denys Lambin 1561 cod. Reg. Soc. Bentleii
Hor. carm. 1.20.10 tu tum Ludwig Doederlein 1837 schol. sat. 2.2.48
Hor. carm. 1.31.3 -ae optimas Markland 1728 cod. Torrentii ad Stat. silv. 4.6.65 ('ubi minus concinne vulgo legitur optimae')
Hor. carm. 1.31.15 -unt pascant Tanaquillus Faber 1671 cod. Reg. Soc. Bentleii 'qui faisoit autant gloire de sa pauvreté que de sa profession'; 'Il mangeoit peu, & travailloit presque toûjours en mangeant; il ne dormoit pas davantage.' (Niceron)
Hor. carm. 2.11.19 -guet restinguit F. H. Bothe 1820 Reg. lat. 1703 (R)
Hor. carm. 2.14.27 -o superbus Caspar von Barth 1624 corr. Vat. A (Fea)
Hor. carm. 3.8.26 parce parte Matthaeus Bonfinis 1518 v et cod. Battel. Bentleii
Hor. carm. 3.10.8 nu- lumine Willem Canter 1564 codd. Lambini
Hor. carm. 3.12.9 -e Bellerophonti Matthaeus Bonfinis 1518 Oxon. coll. Reg. P2
Hor. carm. 3.21.5 no- numine Bentley 1711 B R1 'Paucis tamen, opinor, probabitur, quia conjecturae nomine nunc venit: quod si e Manuscripto aliquo alicunde prodiret, quibus plausibus exciperetur!'
Hor. carm. 3.27.38 -um uirginis Markland 1723 Montepess. H 425 (μ) var.
Hor. carm. 3.27.60 laed- elidere Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 duo dett. (Borzsák) ad Ov. fast. 4.371
Hor. carm. 4.4.17 -i R(a)etis Nicolaus Heinsius 1711 cod. Rottendorphii Francii (Bentley) apud Bentley
Hor. carm. 4.4.24 -vic- revinctae Andreas Weidner 1896 duo codd. Torrentii 'eigener Konjekturen'
Hor. carm. 4.14.20 -as indomitus Bentley 1711 Turic. Carol. 6
Hor. carm. 4.15.7 di- derepta Denys Lambin 1561 duo codd. Cruquii 'vel invitis codicibus omnibus'
Hor. epist. 1.18.46 Aetoli(i)s Aeoliis Jan van Vliet 1645 f μ p. 104
Hor. epist. 1.19.39 ult- actor Willem Canter 1564 cod. Torrentii
Hor. epist. 2.1.31 -am olea Bentley 1711 dett. aliquot (Borzsák)
Hor. epist. 2.2.128 -is Argus Noël-Étienne Sanadon 1756 duo codd. Torrentii
Hor. epod. 5.37 ex(s)ecta/ex(s)ucta/exuta exsuc(c)a Lucian Müller 1900 ς (Bailey)
Hor. epod. 17.81 ag-/hab- valentis Muretus 1551 π2 et duo codd. Torrentii
Hor. sat. 1.1.7 q. enim? quid ni? Jacobus Taurellus 1560 codd. (Apitz) apud Lambinum
Hor. sat. 1.1.23 -ea praetereo Jean Bouhier 1807 codd. (Apitz)
Hor. sat. 1.1.88 at si/an si ac si L. F. Heindorf 1815 Paris. 7975 (γ)
Hor. sat. 1.2.110 pe- velli Nicolaus Heinsius 1711 cod. Coll. Trin. Bentleii apud Bentley
Hor. sat. 1.3.25 per- praevideas Janus Rutgersius 1613 cod. Reg. Soc. Bentleii
Hor. sat. 1.4.26 ob -am ab avaritia Janus Dousa I 1580 cod. (Théodore Marcile) p. 54
Hor. sat. 1.5.72 macros arsit arsit, macros J. C. Scaliger 1561 pauciss. codd. (Apitz)
Hor. sat. 1.6.68 ac nec Denys Lambin 1577 cod. Blandin. vetus. (Apitz)
Hor. sat. 1.10.6 exora- exhortatus J. C. G. Praedicow 1806 codd. (Jan Lunjak)
Hor. sat. 1.19.13 -aeque -ae exiguaque toga Jacobus Cruquius 1578 flor. Nostr.
Hor. sat. 2.1.2 tend- intendere Nicolaus Heinsius 1711 codd. (Apitz) apud Bentley
Hor. sat. 2.1.45 -rit commordit Janus Rutgersius 1613 cod. Reg. Bentleii 'sed, opinor, confidentior paullo fuisset, si rescivisset codicem Regium &c.' (Bentley)
Hor. sat. 2.2.113 lat- lautius Henri Estienne 1577 codd. (Keller/Palmer)
Hor. sat. 2.3.132 q. enim quid ni Denys Lambin 1561 quattuor codd. Pulmanni (Bentley)
Hor. sat. 2.3.137 m. t. tutae male Alexander Cunningham 1721 Argent. olim C VII 7 (D)
Hor. sat. 2.3.188 -o quaere Willem Canter 1564 V1
Hor. sat. 2.3.220 parva parva George Waddel 1734 duo codd. Torrentii
Hor. sat. 2.5.3 -o dolose Daniel Heinsius 1610 cod. Petrensis Bentleii
Hor. sat. 2.5.103 est et Bentley 1711 codd. (Palmer)
Hyg. lim. grom. p. 150.5 aequinoctiali solistitiali Turnebus 1594 Lond. BL Addit. 47679 (S)
Iust. 2.1.20 -a ultimam Thomas Hearne 1705 Vat. lat. 1860 (D)
Iust. 2.11.9 firm- formaverat Johannes Scheffer 1678 Vat. lat. 1860 (D)
Iust. 2.14.6 -is -ae regali opulentia Franciscus Asulanus 1522 Vat. lat. 1860 (D)
Iust. 4.3.5 n. idem nuper Franz Rühl 1886 Vat. lat. 1860 (D)
Iust. 7.5.7 scelerum a s. Sebisius 1719 Vat. lat. 1860 (D) apud Gronovium
Iust. 44.5.3 -em -am/maiorem maiore iniuria Franz Rühl 1886 Vat. lat. 1860 (D)
Iuv. 1.67 -o falsi Markland 1717–28 PRV
Iuv. 1.70 -am rubeta G. H. Plathner 1637 PRV
Iuv. 1.108 -as conductus Scholte 1873 U1
Iuv. 2.8 -is fronti Markland 1717–28 recc.
Iuv. 2.26 Verri verri si Caspar von Barth 1624 recc.
Iuv. 2.106 spo- solium Henrik van Herwerden 1873 Reg. 2029
Iuv. 2.108 assyrio … orbe asyria … urbe Adrien de Valois 1810 Vindob. 107 (V) apud Achaintre
Iuv. 2.116 -indere abscidere Franz van Oudendorp 1786–1823 KZ
Iuv. 3.18 -stantius praesentius Isaac de Lagrange 1614 Vindob. 107 (V)
Iuv. 3.46 -unt norint Markland 1717–28 recc.
Iuv. 3.105 -um aliena Markland 1717–28 PRV
Iuv. 3.144 -es iuret Adrien de Valois 1810 Leid. bibl. publ. 82 (L) apud Achaintre
Iuv. 3.157 -i nitidus Markland 1717–28 Lond. mus. Brit. Reg. 15 B XVIII
Iuv. 3.168 -auit negabit Markland 1717–28 Lond. Burn. 93
Iuv. 3.168 -auit negabis Adrien de Valois 1810 PRVΣ apud Achaintre
Iuv. 3.193 colimus inc- Markland 1717–28 schol. Luc. 7.404
Iuv. 3.211 -it iuvabat Markland 1717–28 R G2
Iuv. 3.218 haec a. hic asianorum G. A. Ruperti 1801 VO
Iuv. 3.312 proa- pravorum C. F. Bahrdt 1781 Sangall.
Iuv. 4.13 -at decebit C. F. Heinrich 1839 Joh. Salisb. policr. 1.4
Iuv. 4.148 et ex Ribbeck 1859 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 41 (O)
Iuv. 5.9 -a dimidio François Guyet 1614 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 5.38 berillos berullo Salmasius 1629 PR
Iuv. 5.137 -tres frater Markland 1717–28 Colon. 199 et Paris. 8291
Iuv. 5.169 tac- iacetis E. Lubinus 1602–3 PRFZ
Iuv. 6.13 que ue Pierre Pithou 1585 RFKOTU
Iuv. 6.29 -are exagitere Markland 1717–28 OUZ
Iuv. 6.77 que ue Adrien de Valois 1810 Urb. 661 (U) apud Achaintre
Iuv. 6.120 sed sic Ribbeck 1859 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 41 (O)
Iuv. 6.122 pap- capillis Charles de Valois 1810 Urb. 661 (U) apud Achaintre
Iuv. 6.153 cum/quo quom C. F. Hermann 1854 Lond. mus. Brit. Add. 12002
Iuv. 6.167 -sinam uenustinam Franz Bücheler 1886 Reg. 2029 et Valent. 410
Iuv. 6.248 su- rudibus Lipsius 1675 P R F schol.
Iuv. 6.295 istros istos Nogarola 1602 KU apud Janum Parrhasium
Iuv. 6.363 rediuiuus recidiuus Caspar Schoppe 1596 Norimberg. 6.19
Iuv. 6.392 pert- protulit Louis Dorléans 1622 Laur. 34.42 (K)
Iuv. 6.455 -at castiget Ribbeck 1859 Ottob. 1471
Iuv. 6.491 -o humeros Markland 1717–28 AK2 umeros AK2
Iuv. 6.561 -o/-a longe Franz Bücheler 1886 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 41 (O)
Iuv. 6.628 -et vetat Markland 1717–28 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 6.660 -et praegustarit Markland 1717–28 Monac. 14466
Iuv. 7.12 -eon alcithoen Janus Rutgersius 1618 GO
Iuv. 7.16 -lia gallica Janus Rutgersius 1618 PGU
Iuv. 7.78 cap- cupiunt C. F. Heinrich 1839 Lond. BM add. 15600 (Z)
Iuv. 7.80 -is marmoreus Gronovius 1662 recc. p. 551
Iuv. 7.88 -ur largitus Johannes Schrader 1801 Paris. 7900 A (G) apud Rupertium
Iuv. 7.124 licet libet C. F. Heinrich 1839 GLU
Iuv. 7.130 -illi tongilii Jahn 1851–68 GOZ2
Iuv. 7.142 an post te sella posita an sit sella Caspar Schoppe 1596 recc.
Iuv. 7.153 isdem idem Jahn 1868 AGU
Iuv. 7.154 cambre crambe Poliziano 1489 Paris. 7900 A (G)
Iuv. 7.156 forte a fronte Markland 1717–28 P.Ant. Juv.
Iuv. 7.165 quid do quiddam W. W. Merry 1895 cod. Vallae Class. Rev. 9 (1895) 29 sq.
Iuv. 7.177 -ens scindes Jahn 1868 Leid. Voss. 64 et Monac. 14466
Iuv. 7.204 thres- tharsimachi Ritschl 1854 Montepess. bibl. med. 125 (P) RhM 9 (1854) 480; 'If you lift the MS and turn it into the light – an action which might get you thrown out of the Vatican – you can see, from the pressure of the pen on the parchment, that the original reading of P was tharsimachi' (Clausen)
Iuv. 7.218 acoenetus acoenonetos Isaac Grangaeus 1614 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 7.236 -us siculi Charles de Valois 1810 P1GL
Iuv. 8.38 sis sic Hadrianus Junius 1602–34 Lond. mus. Brit. Add. 11997 apud Gruteri Lampadem
Iuv. 8.51 hic hinc Andreas Weidner 1889 GU
Iuv. 8.61 pulvis cursus Petrus Scriverius 1705 A2 an heir
Iuv. 8.62 corythae coryphaei C. S. Schurzfleisch 1717 G U2 schol.
Iuv. 8.78 -at desideret R. Beer 1885 FGHU
Iuv. 8.195 pone poni Jo. Sterke 1793 Montepess. bibl. med. 125 (P) Acta Lit. Soc. Rheno-Traj. p. 174
Iuv. 8.223 quid quod Jean de Peyrarède 1658 Urb. 342 man. 2
Iuv. 8.229 tu seu Jahn 1851 recc. ed. 1
Iuv. 9.17 torret torquet Gilbert Wakefield 1796 recc.
Iuv. 9.55 -os lassas Haupt 1851 GU apud Jahn ed. pr.
Iuv. 9.105 -e tollito John Jortin 1790 P2GHL2U
Iuv. 10.7 opta- operantibus Caspar Schoppe 1596 recc.
Iuv. 10.304 uiros uiro Jahn 1851 Guelf. Gud. 53
Iuv. 11.4 convictus conventus Caspar von Barth 1624 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 11.6 ardens/-nti(s) ardent Nicolas Rigault 1613 Rom. Casan. 1627
Iuv. 11.14 -unt quaerit Markland 1717–28 schol. Lucan.
Iuv. 11.57 nec tibi Franz Bücheler 1886 O2
Iuv. 11.158 opp- apposito Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 recc. ad Ov. her. 7.100
Iuv. 11.178 -ant faciunt Charles de Valois 1810 Laur. 34.42 (K) apud Achaintre
Iuv. 11.191 -is illic Markland 1717–28 GU
Iuv. 12.33 cum ferret conferret Lachmann 1850 recc.
Iuv. 12.54 ac hâc Markland 1717–28 GL1U
Iuv. 12.63 -es uectori Adrien de Valois 1810 L2 apud Achaintre
Iuv. 12.69 aus- astris J. Jessen 1900 Paris. 8071 (F) Philol. 59
Iuv. 12.86 praes- restat François Guyet 1614 GU
Iuv. 12.88 -unt accipient François Guyet 1614 Lond. BM add. 15600 (Z)
Iuv. 12.93 nec neu Johannes Schrader 1801 FHLOZ apud Rupertium
Iuv. 12.93 nec ne Lachmann 1850 Laur. S. Marci 234
Iuv. 13.5 omnes homines Ribbeck 1859 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 13.28 nona non J. G. Heinecke 1804 GFK1
Iuv. 13.58 tam tum Jahn 1868 P2
Iuv. 13.68 -que examenve Markland 1717–28 GU
Iuv. 13.209 -um tacitus Andreas Scholte 1873 Dres. 153
Iuv. 14.67 emen- emundat Caspar Schoppe 1596 UL2
Iuv. 14.83 -abit leuarit Adrien de Valois 1810 recc. apud Achaintre
Iuv. 14.97 nu- nomen Richard Mead s.xvii/xviii schol. Lucan. 2.593 apud Classical Journal 10 (1814) 107
Iuv. 14.165 nullis nulli C. F. Heinrich 1839 FU
Iuv. 15.7 i. caeruleos illic aeluros Jean Brodeau 1555 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 15.75 praestantibus omnibus instans praestant instantibus ombis Josias Mercier 1629 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 41 (O) apud Salmasium
Iuv. 15.90 autem ante Housman 1905 Lond. mus. Brit. Add. 11997
Iuv. 15.104 viribus urbibus François Guyet 1614 P1U
Iuv. 15.105 illo- ipsorum Andreas Weidner 1889 Urb. 661 (U)
Iuv. 15.124 britones bistones Johannes Schrader 1761 O1U
Iuv. 15.125 -que sauromataeve Markland 1717–28 Φ
Iuv. 15.134 causam dicentis casum lugentis Gilbert Wakefield 1790 recc.
Iuv. 15.145 capien- pariendisque Franz Bücheler 1886 OU
Iuv. 16.13 Bardai- barbaricus A. W. Cramer 1823 Dres. 155
Iuv. 16.24 caligatos caligas tot Thomas Dempster 1610 recc.
Iuv. 16.24 caligatos caligas tot Josias Mercier 1650 recc. apud Pricaeum
Liv. 1 praef. 5 -et possit Madvig 1861 Vat. 3329 (R) m. sec.
Liv. 1.16.8 -es fidei Gronovius 1664 Einsiedl. 348 (E)
Liv. 1.36.7 t. a. alterum tantum Madvig 1579 R2 (teste M. Müller) p. 78
Liv. 2.31.6 ubi ibi Tanaquillus Faber 1738 fragm. Haverk. apud Drakenborch
Liv. 2.46.3 -is ordines Gronovius 1664 Vat. 3329 (Rn) m. sec.
Liv. 2.47.11 -iit redit Madvig 1861 Laur. S. Marci 326 (D) m. sec.
Liv. 3.5.10 -is caedes Madvig 1861 Upsal. Univ. C 908 (U)
Liv. 3.33.3 Romul- Romilius Carlo Sigonio 1556 Laur. S. Marci 326 (D) p. 82
Liv. 3.48.4 si quod si quid Madvig 1861 dett.
Liv. 3.54.12 -es progenie Beatus Rhenanus 1542 dett. unus (Conway) p. 61
Liv. 3.67.6 est v. et venenum Madvig 1861 Veron. Bibl. Capit. XL 38 (V)
Liv. 4.3.15 fiat fiet Madvig 1861 dett. duo
Liv. 4.4.11 nec e. ne eodem Madvig 1861 Upsal. Univ. C 908 (U)
Liv. 4.37.9 quo r. quo res Madvig 1861 fragm. Haverk. m. sec.
Liv. 6.9.6 in uolscis in Volscos Ant. Perizonius s.xvii Bodl. Auct. T. 1. 24 (O) apud Ruperti ('in ora Livii sibi')
Liv. 6.9.9 non tanta non tam a H. W. Heerwagen 1844 Harl. 2493 (A) Heerwagen on Alschefski; m. sec.
Liv. 6.13.7 hominum omnium Oskar Siesbye 1875 Bamb. Class. 34 (B) apud Madvig
Liv. 9.16.4 -que(re)ntur/-quuntur exsequentes Gronovius 1664 Holkh. Lovel. 4 et dett. alter (Walters)
Liv. 10.46.10 Troilium Trossulum Carlo Sigonio 1566 unus cod. rec. (M. Müller) p. 33
Liv. 25.6.2 in Italiam in Italia Madvig 1860 Palat. 876 p. 289
Liv. 27.14.9 tum tam A. S. Wesenberg 1870–1 BDAN p. 276
Liv. 31.35.3 quo cui H. J. Müller 1883 α
Lucan. 2.13 -ent habet Gottlieb Kortte 1726 ZM
Lucan. 2.556 en in Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Brux. bibl. Burgund. 5330—32 (G)
Lucan. 3.410 -is … -is ulli … aurae J. Ph. d’Orville 1732–51 ZM
Lucan. 3.510 -i maris J. Ph. d’Orville 1732–51 Paris. lat. 10314 (Z)
Lucan. 3.564 -a ē/et percussae Janus Rutgersius 1618 ZM
Lucan. 4.562 -is … m. iuguli … manum Gronovius n.d. ZM
Lucan. 5.210 -a est locutae Pieter Burman I 1740 ΩC
Lucan. 5.372 timet tenet Bentley n.d. NZMGc
Lucan. 5.443 ri- regente Bentley n.d. M2
Lucan. 6.293 aetnaeis hennaeis Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 ZM
Lucan. 6.330 -duxit/-uertit condixit Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 NZMP 'pro edixit'
Lucan. 6.558 si sic Sebastian Gryphius n.d. Paris. 7900A (Q)
Lucan. 7.780 desci- desisset Grotius 1614–39 GVa
Lucan. 8.311 -unt fallent Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 ZMc
Lucr. 4.897 ut ac ut Muretus 1563 O2 apud Lambinum
Macr. Sat. 2.2.16 vetus- venustatem Joannes Meursius 1628 T2Rpc p. 758
Macr. Sat. 5.19.8 -ΤΡΑΙ ΚΑΛΥΠΤΑΙ Valckenaer 1767 TRFA Diatr. 167C
Macr. somn. 1.18.3 sibi tibi J. C. Zeune 1774 Paris. lat. 16677 (E)
Macr. somn. 1.18.8 -is volubilitati J. C. Zeune 1774 Bodl. Auct. T II 27 (d) m. sec.
Macr. somn. 1.20.2 -um secundo J. Gronovius 1670 Paris. lat. 16677 (E) m. sec.
Manil. 1.229 -et deficeres Bentley 1739 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 1.264 adu- auersum Matthaeus Lannoius 1590 MN apud Junium
Manil. 1.321 -ans radiat Ludovicus Carrio 1576 MN
Manil. 1.344 -i mundo Bentley 1739 Paris. Nouv. Acqu. lat. 483 (m)
Manil. 1.358 ne ni Matthaeus Lannoius 1590 Leid. Voss. lat. O 3 (w) apud Junium
Manil. 1.361 ne- nixo Scaliger 1600 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 1.540 om. et Theodor Breiter 1889 MN
Manil. 1.614 caet- caelum Bentley 1739 MN
Manil. 1.657 quae- quacumque Bentley 1739 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 22808 (N)
Manil. 1.661 -fert referet Scaliger 1600 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 22808 (N)
Manil. 1.718 de- diductis Scaliger 1579 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 1.744 quo(d) quid Bentley 1739 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 1.771 -es mentis Valens Acidalius 1590s Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 1.843 -os/capillos capellas Bentley 1739 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.98 -at constas Franciscus Junius 1590 Brux. 10012 (G)
Manil. 2.112 -a summam Scaliger 1600 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.172 -is priori Matthaeus Lannoius 1590 MV apud Junium
Manil. 2.186 pars par Bentley 1739 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.242 -e tempora Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.277 -ur partitus Scaliger 1600 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.291 hunc hinc Matthaeus Lannoius 1590 Matrit. 3678 (M) apud Junium
Manil. 2.314 -ue -que Bentley 1739 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.331 -as trigona Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 2.399 manent ualent Scaliger 1579 GL2M
Manil. 2.552 -um gemini Housman 1903 Marc. lat. XII 69 (b)
Manil. 3.288 ad sidera a sidere Scaliger 1579 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 3.324 -e axes Bentley 1739 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 3.353 ti- tumore Bentley 1739 Lr
Manil. 3.554 -i signis Scaliger 1579 GV
Manil. 3.571 bi- bessem Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 4.182 rapto/uictor uicto Scaliger 1600 Marc. lat. XII 69 (b)
Manil. 4.223 -arant/-errant peragrant Ellis 1893 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 4.253 -re frigora Michael Fayus 1679 LMV
Manil. 4.269 -es fontis Salmasius 1629 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 4.285 euertere euerrere Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 4.290 nautis natis Scaliger 1600 LMV
Manil. 4.304 -no caeco Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 4.322 quis- quicquam Housman 1903 Lips. 1465 (L)
Manil. 4.335 cum cui Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 4.531 quae qua Housman 1903 Bodl. Auct. F.4.34 (d)
Manil. 4.659 albi- alpinas Gronovius s.xvii med. Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 4.863 quia qua Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.60 et mentita ementita Scaliger 1579 Brux. 10012 (G)
Manil. 5.71 -ans retentas Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.91 -ur imitatus Valens Acidalius 1590s Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.126 -unt … -oetem fidum … syboten Scaliger 1600 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 5.148 undis uinclis Scaliger 1600 Leid. Voss. lat. O 18 (c)
Manil. 5.163 moritur motu Turnebus 1564–73 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.181 -ri uidere Valens Acidalius 1590s Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.224 rap- rabit Scaliger 1579 LMV
Manil. 5.238 -it iunget Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.240 find- fidentem Scaliger 1600 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.241 sibi tibi Scaliger 1600 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 5.244 -it colet Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.249 -it -a deseret undam Bentley n.d. Marc. lat. XII 69 (b) teste Garrod
Manil. 5.321 uerb- urbis Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.388 haeserit has erit Scaliger 1579 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.438 -os adnumeres Thomas Reinesius 1655 cod. Venetus (V)
Manil. 5.479 tanto tacito Ludovicus Carrio 1576 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.617 condi- concidit Caspar von Barth 1624 Matrit. 3678 (M)
Manil. 5.641 uel bis/uel lebis -ue leuis Friedrich Jacob 1846 cod. Venetus (V)
Mart. 1.109.20 ipsa issa Richard Thomson 1618 cod. Weidner. Modii apud Scriverium
Mart. 11.81.4 uter- utrique Nicolaus Heinsius Arondell. Mus. Brit. 136 (Q)
Mart. Cap. 1.7 Aniae Vranie Grotius 1599 Paris. lat. 8670 (D)
Mart. Cap. 1.9 de morte demere Grotius 1599 D1
Mart. Cap. 1.25 sec- pectus U. F. Kopp 1836 Brux. bibl. reg. 9565–9566 (G)
Mart. Cap. 2.100 -am sociandum Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 Leid. bibl. univ. 87 (L) m. pr.
Mart. Cap. 2.114 -acii umbrati Grotius 1599 Bamb. Msc. class. 39 (B) m. sec.
Mart. Cap. 2.116 ditione Dione Grotius 1599 G in ras.
Mart. Cap. 2.187 hac p. a principio Grotius 1599 Bodl. Laud. lat. 118 (F) m. pr.
Mart. Cap. 3.227 -ri declinare Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 MP1
Mart. Cap. 4.346 iuventutis iuvenilia Grotius 1599 Paris. lat. 8671 (M) m. sec.
Mart. Cap. 4.400 (pro) ibi fit/ibi sit/(ibi fit) si sit F. J. Petersen 1871 Paris. lat. 8669 (C)
Mart. Cap. 4.416 -est potes Bentley 1881 M2C2 RhM
Mart. Cap. 5.425 Bellaque composcens/della c. Deliacos poscens Bentley 1881 B mg. RhM
Mart. Cap. 5.436 -to aliquando Karl Halm 1863 Petrop. publ. bibl. class. lat. F. V. 10 (P)
Mart. Cap. 5.475 quod d. quo dubium Grotius 1599 Paris. lat. 8671 (M) v.l.
Mart. Cap. 5.540 oratio orationi Adolf Dick 1925 Vesont. bibl. munic. 594 (E) m. sec.
Mart. Cap. 5.566 qui quae Karl Halm 1863 E2
Mart. Cap. 6.581 versis variis Grotius 1599 E2P2
Mart. Cap. 6.599 sibi a. sive ante Bentley 1881 AG RhM
Mart. Cap. 6.608 -ae antipodes Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 C2
Mart. Cap. 6.641 -i etc. relegata Salmasius 1777 B1M2 Exx. Plinn. I
Mart. Cap. 6.654 -ique/-usque populosque F. J. Petersen 1871 AG2
Mart. Cap. 6.663 -iae/-ia germani F. J. Petersen 1871 M2G
Mart. Cap. 6.664 motione/rat- rotatione Adolf Dick 1925 D2
Mart. Cap. 6.672 -inam alexandriam Grotius 1599 Brux. bibl. reg. 9565–9566 (G)
Mart. Cap. 6.686 -ia Lycaoniae Grotius 1599 Harl. 2685 (A) apud errata; -ie A
Mart. Cap. 6.697 trucioris soni truci oris sono Salmasius 1777 Leid. bibl. univ. 88 Exx. Plinn. II
Mart. Cap. 7.739 omnium natura hominum nat. Bentley 1881 Leid. bibl. univ. 36 RhM
Mart. Cap. 7.757 (maiori maior|maiori|maior) (autem|aut) maiori maior autem aut Adolf Dick 1925 C2
Mart. Cap. 7.779 u. s. -avit/-averit uterque se multiplicarit Adolf Dick 1925 Harl. 2685 (A)
Mart. Cap. 7.792 -ietur metitur F. J. Petersen 1871 AE1
Mart. Cap. 8.814 occu- oculatur Grotius 1599 L2
Mart. Cap. 8.850 -ibus errori James Willis 1966 Harl. 2685 (A) Helikon
Mart. Cap. 8.871 om. facere Salmasius 1777 C2 Exx. Plinn. I
Mart. Cap. 8.881 offend- ostendit U. F. Kopp 1836 Harl. 2685 (A)
Mart. Cap. 8.883 ortum at ut in luciferum ortum matutinum Lucifer Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 F2
Mart. Cap. 8.885 E. e. -am Eccentron esse terrae Grotius 1599 B2F2
Mart. Cap. 9.893 -am antistitium U. F. Kopp 1836 B2
Mart. Cap. 9.893 -am antistitia Adolf Dick 1925 D1
Mart. Cap. 9.894 -e adoperta U. F. Kopp 1836 C2
Mart. Cap. 9.897 -i/-e emensa F. J. Petersen 1871 Leid. bibl. univ. 87 (L)
Mart. Cap. 9.897 -um tantam Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 Leid. bibl. univ. 87 (L)
Mart. Cap. 9.904 -ae dominas Grotius 1599 C2
Mart. Cap. 9.914 -ens/-et refulgent Franz Eyssenhardt 1866 ML
Mart. Cap. 9.924 obiec- oblectationis Grotius 1599 B2
Mart. Cap. 9.942 firm- formatur F. J. Petersen 1871 Leid. bibl. univ. 88 (teste Dick)
Mart. Cap. 9.950 de q. d. ex quattuor dicimus Marcus Meibomius 1652 C2
Mart. Cap. 9.974 eleva- elatio Marcus Meibomius 1652 D2
Mart. Cap. 9.977 verum unum Marcus Meibomius 1652 Bamb. Msc. class. 39 (B) v.l.
Mart. Cap. 9.986 -ici iambi Marcus Meibomius 1652 C2
Nemes. cyn. 139 -u cursus Jan van Vliet 1645–53 Paris. lat. 4839 (B)
Nemes. cyn. 145 iud- indicio Caspar von Barth 1613 Paris. lat. 4839 (B)
Nemes. cyn. 275 flum- flamina Jan van Vliet 1645–53 AC
Nemes. cyn. 275 flam- flumina Georg von Logau 1534 Paris. lat. 4839 (B)
Nemes. ecl. 1.54 rur- iuris Hugolinus Martellius 1590 Neap. V A 8 (N)
Nemes. ecl. 2.22 purpureosque purpureos quae Marquard Gude 1731 Riccard. 724 (n) apud Burmannum
Nemes. ecl. 2.90 induc- includere quae Emil Baehrens Laur. bibl. Aed. 203 (l) apud Williams
Nemes. ecl. 3.4 -as/lassat- laxatus J. H. Hoeufft 1807 Corsin. 43 F 5 (q) p. 132; marg.
Nemes. ecl. 3.19 -as/quando comptus Laurens van Santen Palat. 1652 (g) m. sec.
Nemes. ecl. 4.10 adlud-/allud- ad ludere Jacob Mähly 1868 lz p. 117 ('per anastrophen')
Nemes. ecl. 4.21 hoc/hec hic Emil Baehrens 1881 exc. Berol.
Nep. Att. 12.5 fuit est Karl Halm 1871 Vat. lat. 3412
Nep. Att. 17.1 om. ipse Rudolph Dietsch 1850 Leid. B. P. L. 2011 (L)
Nep. Dat. 11.1 est esset Karl Halm 1871 Baltimore W 388
Nep. Dion 1.4 tene-/tege- leniebat Denys Lambin 1569 Flor. XXIII.28
Nep. Dion 5.2 -us tyrannis Denys Lambin 1569 Monac. lat. 433
Nep. Hann. 11.3 -ebatur reperiebat Denys Lambin 1569 Bonon. 2050
Nep. Milt. 5.3 nona partis summa non apertissima C. L. Roth 1841 Leid. B. P. L. 19
Nep. Milt. 8.3 c(h)ersonesso in chersoneso Alfred Fleckeisen 1890 Bodl. Canon. Lat. 159
Nep. Paus. 2.4 se a. te adiuuante Bernhard Lupus 1876 ς aliquot
Nep. Phoc. 2.4 Atheniensium A. portui Denys Lambin 1569 Vratisl. Rehdig. 51
Nep. Phoc. 3.3 hoc huc Denys Lambin 1569 Vat. lat. 5262 marg.
Nep. Them. 5.3 haec h. est Karl Halm 1871 ς perpauci
Nep. Them. 6.1 is- iisque Johannes Scheffer 1727 Vat. Chig. H. V. 160 per litt. N. Heinsio
Nep. Them. 9.4 ea te Alfred Fleckeisen 1890 Bodl. Canon. Lat. 159
Nep. Them. 10.1 se del. Karl Halm 1871 ς aliquot
Nep. Thras. 4.1 -inis oleagineis Alfred Fleckeisen 1890 Ambros. O 2 sup.
Nep. reg. 1.3 generis gentis Friedrich Richter 1858 Vat. Barb. lat. 42 Richter on C. W. Nauck
Non. p. 503 f. omnino feruit animo Franz Oehler 1844 Paris. lat. 7667 (P) ad Varro Men. 498
Ov. Ib. 133(41) eva- vanescere Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Bodl. Auct. F. 4. 24 (O2)
Ov. Ib. 627 age-/habe- alebat Housman 1905 Neap. CCLX (N) m. pr.
Ov. Pont. 1.1.63 manifest- mansuetior Bentley 1905 Hafn. Gl. Kgl. S.2013 4ᵗᵒ (ka)
Ov. Pont. 1.3.86 Quae Quod P. H. Damsté 1918 Ambros. G 37 sup. (a)
Ov. Pont. 1.4.35 l. u. uastum ligno Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 flor. Gallici (φ)
Ov. Pont. 1.6.23 sint sunt Rudolf Ehwald 1896 Marc. lat. XII. 54 (wc) p. 69
Ov. Pont. 2.1.34 quo quae Scaliger 1622 Lent. Bibl. Stud. 79 (le) p. 292
Ov. Pont. 2.2.5 si quod Nicolaus Heinsius 1727 Monac. c.l.m. 19476 (C) apud Burmannum
Ov. Pont. 2.2.120 uires partes Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Ambros. G 37 sup. (a)
Ov. Pont. 2.2.121 patria a p. Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Lips. Bibl. Munic. Rep. I 7 (l)
Ov. Pont. 2.3.37 abic- abigi Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 BC 'vel contra fidem membranarum'
Ov. Pont. 2.4.17 -i/-e amicâ Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Berol. Hamilt. 371 (bl)
Ov. Pont. 2.5.1 -lan-/-lin- salono Nicolaus Heinsius 1727 Monac. c.l.m. 19476 (C) apud Burmannum
Ov. Pont. 2.5.15 quoque quodque Hugo Magnus 1920 bl k wa wc + PhW
Ov. Pont. 2.5.67 gest- gustata Bentley 1905 Hamburg. Bibl. Univ. scrin. 52 F (A)
Ov. Pont. 2.5.68 cal- color Rudolf Merkel 1837 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 1 (o) p. 373
Ov. Pont. 2.7.24 -es potest Adolf Rothmaler 1871 le bl s
Ov. Pont. 2.7.55 quae quis Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Barb. lat. 3292 (vh)
Ov. Pont. 3.3.14 Fulua Fulcra Scaliger 1661 Bodl. Rawl. G 109 (ol) apud Heinsium
Ov. Pont. 3.6.34 Qui Quin Bentley 1905 Lent. Bibl. Stud. 79 (le)
Ov. Pont. 3.9.9 Accius Agrius Willem Canter 1571 Vat. Barb. lat. 3292 (vh) p. 151
Ov. Pont. 3.9.23 at ut Pieter Burman I 1727 Antuerp. Mus. Plant. D 68 (n)
Ov. Pont. 3.9.32 collig- corrigere Bentley 1905 B C le bl
Ov. Pont. 4.1.11 alii aliud Scaliger 1629 Paris. lat. 8239 (pp) apud D. Heinsium
Ov. Pont. 4.2.9 -a falerno Justus Zinzerling 1610 e bl bh d n
Ov. Pont. 4.4.34 erit erunt Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Monac. c.l.m. 384 (B)
Ov. Pont. 4.6.5 acta est acta Housman 1903 l wa ad Manil. 3.596
Ov. Pont. 4.7.15 -itis Tendisti Rudolf Merkel 1853 Laur. Plut. 36.32 (m)
Ov. Pont. 4.7.17 -is plenus Rudolf Ehwald 1896 e bl bh m o p. 84
Ov. Pont. 4.7.23 -ue manune Th. Roeper 1868 B C apud Korn
Ov. Pont. 4.9.8 iusso iusto John Jortin 1731 Turon. 879 (t) I p. 227
Ov. Pont. 4.12.3 namque/ast aut J. J. Hartman 1910 B C Mnem.
Ov. Pont. 4.12.11 et at W. A. Camps 1954 Lent. Bibl. Stud. 79 (le) CR
Ov. Pont. 4.13.49 monumenta momenta Scaliger 1629 Vat. Barb. lat. 1595 (va) apud D. Heinsium p. 410
Ov. Pont. 4.16.30 -is leui Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Lond. Add. Mss. 49368 (h)
Ov. Pont. 4.16.31 -i Tyran(n)is Nicolaus Heinsius 1727 B C apud Burmannum
Ov. Pont. 4.16.44 -a Maxime Pieter Burman I 1727 B C bl
Ov. am. 1.2.14 pressi prensi Markland 1728 B2f ad Stat. silv. 1.2.45
Ov. am. 1.6.8 di- derigit Housman n.d. Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. am. 1.7.46 nec n. et nimium Bentley 1905 Barb. lat. 26 (V)
Ov. am. 1.8.84 -e u. -e/-a u. -a illa uel ille J. Willis 1972 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 49368 (L2)
Ov. am. 2.1.33 -es facie Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Rom. Casan. 3227 (Ca2)
Ov. am. 2.2.37 -es obiciens Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Bodl. Auct. F. I. 17
Ov. am. 2.6.28 fiant/fient fiunt G. Némethy 1922 Turon. 879 (T)
Ov. am. 2.7.25 quae e. quod erat E. J. Kenney 1958 y
Ov. am. 2.10.33 -undo arando Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. am. 2.11.9 quid quam G. Némethy 1922 Francof. Barth. 110 (F)
Ov. am. 2.13.17 dedit sedit Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Lent. 329 (Le)
Ov. am. 2.13.18 ting- tangit G. Némethy 1922 Sagall. 864 (S)
Ov. am. 2.15.24 -a gemmam Lucian Müller 1856 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 21169 (L4)
Ov. am. 2.19.32 pot- portet Lucian Müller 1856 Barb. lat. 26 (V)
Ov. am. 3.6.23 debebant debuerant O. Tescari 1931–2 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 21169 (L4)
Ov. am. 3.6.41 eban- euanthe Alexander Riese 1871 y
Ov. am. 3.7.55 blanda b. est Alexander Riese 1871 Turon. 879 (T)
Ov. am. 3.9.23 et linon aelinon Scaliger 1573 Paris. lat. 8430 (P7)
Ov. am. 3.9.23 edidit & Linon Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. am. 3.11.52 ut quam E. R. Rautenberg 1868 y
Ov. am. 3.14.42 falsis falli Madvig 1873 Barb. lat. 26 (V)
Ov. am. 3.14.42 -is falsum Rudolf Merkel 1852 Matrit. 206 (Ma)
Ov. am. 3.15.18 magnis nostris L. Zurli 1996 Matrit. 206 (Ma)
Ov. ars 1.126 pudor timor Bentley 1905 RYS2L²
Ov. ars 1.133 -ia sollemni Madvig 1873 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. ars 1.225 facit facito Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 y
Ov. ars 1.303 quod quo Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 y
Ov. ars 1.490 quam qua E. J. Kenney 1959 FT²
Ov. ars 1.558 rege reget Rudolf Merkel 1852 y
Ov. ars 1.581 -es/-as bibis C. Marchesi 1918 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 18 (O6)
Ov. ars 1.730 multi uultu Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Tolet. 102.14 (To2)
Ov. ars 2.243 placidum- planumque Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Vat. lat. 3140
Ov. ars 2.440 candet in canet in Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 21169 (L4)
Ov. ars 2.496 agit adit Bentley 1905 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. ars 2.569 simul ac semel est Rudolf Merkel 1852 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. ars 3.167 rubor pudor Dilthey 1969 Paris. lat. 8430 (P7) ap. Lenz
Ov. ars 3.217 faciem formam Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 15 (O5)
Ov. ars 3.232 contempnens contemnes Madvig 1873 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. ars 3.232 -at tegit Münscher n.d. Hamilt. 471 (Y) TLL s.v. brattea
Ov. ars 3.273 analept- analemptrides W. Schulze 1894 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. ars 3.410 -os contiguus A. G. Parrasio 1500–5 Paris. lat. 7311 (R) ad Claud. rapt. Pros. 1.222
Ov. ars 3.418 ferre ferte Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Antuerp. Plant. lat. D.68 (A)
Ov. ars 3.733 arcus artus Rudolf Merkel 1852 Matrit. 206 (Ma)
Ov. epist. 1.110 aura ara Nicolaus Heinsius 1662 Dp G2
Ov. epist. 4.53 reddamus debemus Authur Palmer 1874 Bern. 512 s.l.
Ov. epist. 4.151 et at Bentley 1820 Bern. 512 apud Lemaire
Ov. epist. 5.16 depressa defensa A. G. Parrasio 1518 Paris. lat. 7993 (Pa)
Ov. epist. 18.66 ipsa ipse F. X. Werfer 1814 Paris. lat. 8242 (P) Acta philol. Monac. i/4 p. 517; m. pr.
Ov. fast. 1.232 ni si J. M. Heinsius 1722 Plantin. 68 v.l.
Ov. fast. 1.281 possit possim Marcilius cod. Götting. ad Hor. epist. 2.1; v.l.
Ov. fast. 1.494 -o uacuum P. V. Sormani 1886 U3 et flor. duo
Ov. fast. 3.115 illa quidem fœno illaque de fœno Scaliger 1629 Paris. lat. 7992 et flor. Berol. (Merkel) apud D. Heinsium p. 391
Ov. met. 1.2 -as illa P. Lejay 1894 ev U3c
Ov. met. 1.50 -amque utrasque J. Rappold 1881 ψ
Ov. met. 1.332 tec- tinctum Bentley 1905 φ
Ov. met. 2.135 currum cursum Rudolf Merkel 1855 φ
Ov. met. 2.436 quae quem Bentley 1905 H Bac
Ov. met. 2.734 totum textum Alexander Riese 1872 recc.
Ov. met. 2.809 lenius se(c/t)ius Scaliger n.d. R1 v2v
Ov. met. 2.823 p. ungues per artus Bentley 1905 N4v
Ov. met. 3.269 uni uno Jacob Micyllus Monv M2v
Ov. met. 3.368 tamen tantum F. H. Bothe 1818 Laur. 36.12 (L)
Ov. met. 3.576 quon- quendam Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 h2 W
Ov. met. 3.660 ueri uera Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 l5 χ
Ov. met. 4.228 -us oculis Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 N1
Ov. met. 4.236 -umque diffamatamque Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 Plan. ψ
Ov. met. 4.260 n(y/i)ympharum p. nimborum patiens Bentley n.d. χ
Ov. met. 4.416 memor- uenerabile J. Gilbert 1896 b W
Ov. met. 4.488 est t. exterrita Bentley 1905 Paris. lat. 8001 (P/B)
Ov. met. 4.770 Perseu Cepheus Haupt 1853 Plan.
Ov. met. 6.234 tamen dantem etc. dabat; dantem Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 χ
Ov. met. 6.399 rapidum -dus Housman 1890 χ
Ov. met. 6.399 rapidum -de Anderson 1977 χ
Ov. met. 6.514 et uix animo a. uix et J. J. Hartman 1905 χ
Ov. met. 6.616 aut atque J. Rappold 1881 χ
Ov. met. 7.8 numeris miseris H. A. Koch n.d. Lond. Bibl. Brit. King's 26 (k)
Ov. met. 7.170 habent del. Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 MpcUacFac
Ov. met. 7.223 despicit disp- Lachmann 1855 χ ad Lucr. 4.418
Ov. met. 7.259 -a atri Andrea Navagero 1517 Sagall. 866 (G)
Ov. met. 7.624 hic huc F. H. Bothe 1818 Plan.
Ov. met. 7.660 Austros austrum F. Polle 1888 NU
Ov. met. 8.629 tamen tandem F. H. Bothe 1818 Neap. IV.F.2 (R)
Ov. met. 9.669 quon- quendam Housman 1890 Neap. IV.F.2 (R)
Ov. met. 10.133 ac ut ut hunc Alexander Riese 1872 gpc
Ov. met. 10.240 forma fama Pieter Burman I 1727 χ
Ov. met. 10.271 bl- pandis Gronovius n.d. χ
Ov. met. 11.45 tua c. te carmina Bentley 1905 χ
Ov. met. 11.180 cupit caput Schepper n.d. χ
Ov. met. 11.183 hoc haec F. H. Bothe 1818 χ
Ov. met. 11.257 tenebat tep- Markland n.d. χ ad Stat. silv. 5.3.202
Ov. met. 11.293 quantum iam tum J. D. Fuss s.xix med. dl6 apud Magnum
Ov. met. 11.365 strepitu etc. strepit et Alexander Riese 1872 h2
Ov. met. 12.191 Achille achille, est D. C. G. Baumgartner-Crusius 1834 Sagall. 866 (G)
Ov. met. 12.256 spum- sputantem Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 Plan.
Ov. met. 12.302 licidas- licabasque Andrea Navagero 1517 o W
Ov. met. 12.308 astilus asbolus W. H. Roscher 1872 Vat. lat. 5859 (W)
Ov. met. 12.408 -us cultu Haupt 1853 recc.
Ov. met. 13.2 ad hos ad hoc F. H. Bothe 1818 d W
Ov. met. 13.135 uidetur fatetur F. H. Bothe 1818 ψ
Ov. met. 13.175 (s)cyrum syron Andrea Navagero 1517 v3
Ov. met. 13.235 -posco repono Bentley 1905 B1c ov z
Ov. met. 13.410 tractaque tracta atque F. Vollmer n.d. h2ac apud Magnum
Ov. met. 13.726 exp-/imp- oppositum Housman 1890 χ
Ov. met. 13.914 tegentem ter- Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 Monac. clm 23612 (m) s.l.
Ov. met. 14.24 fineque nil fine opus est nullo F. H. Bothe 1818 φ
Ov. met. 14.169 -cique ithaceque Andrea Navagero 1517 l4 et recc.
Ov. met. 14.281 toto prono Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 Sagall. 866 (G)
Ov. met. 14.748 qua quam F. H. Bothe 1818 recc.
Ov. met. 15.311 athamantis admotumque Ehwald 1915 df W
Ov. met. 15.420 -a tempore Nicolaus Heinsius 1652 Guelf. Bibl. Duc. 2942 (w)
Ov. met. 15.620 aur- aeratis Jacobus a Cruce n.d. U4
Ov. rem. 521 ubi sapientia ubi si patientia Madvig 1873 Hamilt. 471 (Y)
Ov. rem. 537 et f. i fruere Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Eton. 150 (E)
Ov. rem. 704 utque facis tuque favens Goold 1965 Paris. lat. 7994 (P4)
Ov. rem. 804 experi- expediere Nicolaus Heinsius 1658 Paris. lat. 8245 (P6)
Ov. trist. 1.1.14 -at sentiet Jacobus Roverus 1837 BDFT apud Merkel ('ante Heinsium')
Ov. trist. 1.1.17 -i illic Justus Zinzerling 1610 O2
Ov. trist. 1.1.43 ab- obest Petrus Francius 1727 Repc apud Burmannum; 'in ora exemplaris quo usus est' (Merkel)
Ov. trist. 1.1.59 -as uenies Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Berol. lat. oct. 67 (Bn) p. 226
Ov. trist. 1.1.96 & ut Petrus Francius 1727 Palat. lat. 910 (P) apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 1.1.121 namque ea nam quae Georg Luck 1959 Haun. Gl. Kgl. S. 2014 (F) Philol.; p.c.
Ov. trist. 1.2.63 prome- commerui Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Lond. Mus. Brit. Add. 18384 (Ln)
Ov. trist. 1.2.78 non mihi nunc, mihi Daniel Heinsius 1629 Turon. 879 (T)
Ov. trist. 1.2.90 mori mei Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Bodl. Canon. Lat. I (O)
Ov. trist. 1.3.5 disc- decedere Gilbert Wakefield 1797 FacOb ad Lucr. 5.1103
Ov. trist. 1.3.45 adu- auersos Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 1.3.99 mor- mali Madvig 1873 Vat. lat. 2787 (Vb)
Ov. trist. 1.5.53 esset aere Daniel Heinsius 1629 codd. Heinsii et Bersmanni
Ov. trist. 1.6.1 c. l. clario est lyde S. G. Owen 1889 Harl. 2699 (Lo)
Ov. trist. 1.7.5 -a dissimulas Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. lat. 2787 (Vb)
Ov. trist. 1.8.7 -am negabant S. G. Owen 1889 BlLn
Ov. trist. 1.8.35 aequoreos Aeolios Johannes Schrader 1776 Guelf. Gud. lat. 192 (G) m. sec.
Ov. trist. 1.8.45 non nunc Tanaquillus Faber 1659 LuMOb p. 77
Ov. trist. 1.9.27 -ae Orestis Rudolf Ehwald 1884 Paris. lat. 8465
Ov. trist. 1.9.40 pro sensu processu Pieter Burman I 1727 Laur. Marc. 223 (M)
Ov. trist. 1.10.24 -liquit relegit Jacob Micyllus 1543–9 Bodl. B. N. Rawl. 107 (Od)
Ov. trist. 1.10.29 inque inde Petrus Francius 1837 codd. Burmanni et Bersmanni apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 1.10.49 -amus petantur Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 1.11.3 -o gelidus William Willymott 1705 Vat. lat. 2787 (Vb)
Ov. trist. 1.11.7 quod quid William Willymott 1705 Vat. lat. 2787 (Vb)
Ov. trist. 1.11.42 minas manus Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Berol. lat. oct. 67 (Bn)
Ov. trist. 2.21 -et leniat Bentley 1889 BBnLd apud Owen (in ora Heinsii)
Ov. trist. 2.66 multa certa A. S. Wilkins 1889 Zulich. (Z) apud Owen
Ov. trist. 2.69 -is Iovi Georgius Merula 1489 Loac
Ov. trist. 2.79 ne … quae te etc. de … cum te Rudolf Merkel 1837 Va2 editing from prison
Ov. trist. 2.87 qua- quosque Rudolf Ehwald 1884 Bodl. Canon. Lat. I (O) 'collato Florentiae codice Marciano'
Ov. trist. 2.138 parca- paucaque Daniel Heinsius 1629 Leid. B. P. L. 177 (K)
Ov. trist. 2.175 tui tui ’s Alois Goldbacher 1904 Bern. 478 (Be) Wien. Stud.
Ov. trist. 2.251 ec- numquid Petrus Francius 1837 BlBe apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 2.281 q. multis/multi q. multis quam Alexander Riese 1874 Bern. 478 (Be)
Ov. trist. 2.296 viro vir Bentley 1722–3 Mac per litt. ad Burmann
Ov. trist. 2.345 -via lascivas Pieter Burman I 1727 HP
Ov. trist. 2.363 vino Baccho Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Goth. membr. II. 122 (D)
Ov. trist. 2.395 -em Oresten Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob) in textu
Ov. trist. 2.419 text-/mixt- iuncta Francesco Vivona 1899 Paris. lat. 8255 (Re) p. xxiv
Ov. trist. 2.429 nec non Bentley 1889 Harl. 2699 (Lo) apud Owen (in ora Burmanni)
Ov. trist. 2.437 e. q. l. et quorum in libris Petrus Francius 1837 CD apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 2.472 est erat Bentley 1889 Lond. Bibl. Brit. Add. 21169 (Ld) apud Owen (in ora Heinsii, Burmanni)
Ov. trist. 2.487 fusc- fucandi Jacobus Roverus 1727 GV apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 2.495 -um unus Bentley 1889 Mac apud Owen p. 229 (in ora Heinsii)
Ov. trist. 2.498 victi ficti Tanaquillus Faber 1659 eEt p. 15 ('Sed hæc satis, ὦ φιλότης; alias plura.')
Ov. trist. 2.542 irrequietus irreprehensus Alexander Riese 1874 Guelf. extr. 76.3 (Gu)
Ov. trist. 2.551 scrip- coeptum Pieter Burman I 1727 exc. Vossii
Ov. trist. 2.567 -i scriptis Tanaquillus Faber 1659 Laur. Marc. 223 (M) p. 99 ('Et hæc quidem hactenus, Suauissime Chevræe; nam me plura scribere parantem opprimit tabellarius.')
Ov. trist. 3.1.32 sator stator Poliziano 1661 Bodl. Douce 146 (O6) apud Heinsium ('in ora sui exemplaris'); p.c.
Ov. trist. 3.3.13 -tremis externis J. Ph. d'Orville 1732–51 AFHLuQObFf
Ov. trist. 3.3.57 quod quà Albertinus Mussatus 1636 Edinb. NLS Adu. Ms 18.2.9 (e) p. 95
Ov. trist. 3.5.3 ni nec Bentley 1889 Laur. Marc. 223 (M) apud Owen (in ora Burmanni)
Ov. trist. 3.5.40 praeclari- Darîique Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 3.5.46 erat habet J. B. Hall 1990 GomgPsvl Euphros.
Ov. trist. 3.5.55 hoc hos Alexander Riese 1874 Paris. lat. 15143 (Ps)
Ov. trist. 3.6.16 b. -unt bonae claudent Rudolf Ehwald 1884 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 3.7.27 exem- extemplo Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 3.7.27 quia quo Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Turon. 879 (T)
Ov. trist. 3.10.40 summ- firma J. B. Hall 1988 Paris. lat. 15143 (Ps) Euphros.
Ov. trist. 4.1.19 pet- tenentem Lachmann 1855 Vat. Chis. lat. Η VI 205 (Vd) ad Lucr. 5.396
Ov. trist. 4.1.90 accip- excipiat Petrus Francius 1727 Paris. lat. 8239 (E) apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 4.2.23 uers- mœstos Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Paris. lat. 15143 (Ps) v.l.
Ov. trist. 4.2.30 ist- illo R. G. Mayer 1995 Bern. 405 (Br) apud Hall
Ov. trist. 4.2.61–2 -it … -it deducet … sinet Bentley 1889 Berol. lat. oct. 67 (Bn) apud Owen (in ora Burmanni)
Ov. trist. 4.2.73 -et ueniat Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 BLn
Ov. trist. 4.4.45 p. quo per quem Petrus Francius 1727 Vat. lat. 2788 (V9) apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 4.4.47 -at uiuam Bentley 1889 Antuerp. Plant. lat. D. 68 (Mo) apud Owen (in ora Heinsii, Burmanni); v.l.
Ov. trist. 4.4.79 -is sermonum Rudolf Ehwald 1884 Mac
Ov. trist. 4.4.85 atque aque S. G. Owen 1889 frag. Trevir. (Tr)
Ov. trist. 4.6.48 -a male Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Vat. lat. 2787 (Vb)
Ov. trist. 4.7.12 -eis anguinis Isaac Vossius 1691 Marc. 223 (Ma) p. 215; m. rec.
Ov. trist. 4.8.6 me/cum iam Alexander Riese 1874 Turon. 880 (Tu) a.c.
Ov. trist. 4.8.43 -is/-os Delphi Scaliger 1661 ABOb apud Heinsium ('in ora codicis sui')
Ov. trist. 4.9.7 -o nostri Petrus Francius 1727 G2Psvl apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 4.10.21 tent-/carpis captas Pieter Burman I 1727 Bern. 478 (Be) v.l.
Ov. trist. 4.10.30 et set Alexander Riese 1874 Paris. Genovef. 2408 (C)
Ov. trist. 5.1.78 quo- quaque E. J. Kenney 1967 Harl. 2699 (Lo) apud Luck
Ov. trist. 5.1.79 -o/-ic/-os istuc Rudolf Merkel 1837 Go2
Ov. trist. 5.2.21 acerbi/acerui aceruo Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Turon. 879 (T)
Ov. trist. 5.2.59 -que haec quae Bartholomaeus Merula 1499 Laur. 91 sup. 25 (Lu)
Ov. trist. 5.2.67 lingua turba Johannes Schrader 1837 Harl. 2699 (Lo) apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 5.3.20 quo quae J. B. Hall 1988 Paris. Bibl. Univ. 1170 (P6) Euphros.
Ov. trist. 5.3.24 dec- discolor Daniel Heinsius 1629 DEDiFf p. 405
Ov. trist. 5.3.43 -es releua Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Bern. 478 (Be)
Ov. trist. 5.3.55 -or uenerer E. J. Kenney 1967 Goth. membr. II. 122 (D) apud Luck; v.l.
Ov. trist. 5.4.14 dol- docenda Pieter Burman I 1727 Vat. Ottob. lat. 1469 (Ob)
Ov. trist. 5.5.3 -at egerit Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Beac
Ov. trist. 5.6.35 labo- malorum Tanaquillus Faber 1659 BDFGOb p. 230
Ov. trist. 5.7.17 mor- Martis Nicolaus Heinsius 1661 Goth. membr. II. 122 (D) v.l.
Ov. trist. 5.7.24 & t. ut tamen Daniel Heinsius 1629 Paris. lat. 8254 (R) p. 406
Ov. trist. 5.7.25 (incipit) Nicolaus Heinsius 1727 Berol. lat. oct. 67 (Bn) apud Burmannum
Ov. trist. 5.8.17 manet nitet Petrus Francius 1837 Paris. lat. 7647 et 17903 apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 5.8.30 r. petam roganda putat P. T. Verpoorten 1712 Bern. 478 (Be) v.l.
Ov. trist. 5.10.12 sunt- stantque Housman 1890 LtLu CR 4 (1890) 340–2
Ov. trist. 5.10.12 dura longa J. Ph. d'Orville 1889 Goth. membr. II. 122 (D) apud Owen; v.l.
Ov. trist. 5.10.41 si quid/siquidem sceleris Laurens van Santen 1837 Haun. Gl. Kgl. S. 2014 (F) apud Merkel
Ov. trist. 5.13.6 sed q. ut quod Johannes Schrader 1837 Haun. Gl. Kgl. S. 2014 (F) apud Merkel
Paneg. 2.12.2 -a obliti Johannes Livineius 1599 dett. (Galletier)
Paneg. 3.27.1 -int mutauerunt Wolfgang Jaeger 1779 P2 (teste Galletier)
Paneg. 3.28.4 affat- afflatibus Emil Baehrens 1874 P2 (Galletier)
Paneg. 4.5.4 -ant fuerint Valens Acidalius 1607 Harl. 2480 (H) m. sec.
Paneg. 4.10.3 adu- auersatur Johannes Livineius 1599 H2
Paneg. 4.11.2 natura aff- natura fert Franciscus Puteolanus 1482 H2
Paneg. 4.38.4 an non annonae Valens Acidalius 1607 W2c2
Paneg. 5.2.2 coram etiam Valens Acidalius 1607 Vat. 1775 (W) m. sec.
Paneg. 5.6.5 -em et/-e uoraginum W. A. Baehrens 1925 W2
Paneg. 5.14.5 Brib- Bibracte Johannes Cuspinian 1513 Paris. 8556 (P)
Paneg. 9.15.2 a dominis ad omnes Franciscus Puteolanus 1482 H2
Paneg. 9.19.3 monit- motus Emil Baehrens 1874 H2
Paneg. 9.20.1 -a dedicato Valens Acidalius 1607 H2c2
Paneg. 9.20.2 -cunt deuinciunt Johannes Livineius 1599 Caroliruh. 457
Paneg. 10.7.5 opti- opimam Johannes Livineius 1599 H2
Paneg. 10.8.5 -am certi Emil Baehrens 1874 H2
Paneg. 10.14.3 -em consuetudine Emil Baehrens 1874 H2
Paneg. 11.2.2 et certe at certe Valens Acidalius 1607 H2
Paneg. 11.2.4 auxilii anxios Johannes Livineius 1599 ς (Galletier)
Paneg. 11.3.7 i. a s. illos sacris Valens Acidalius 1607 H2
Paneg. 11.10.2 -a l. quanto laude Valens Acidalius 1607 Brux. 10026–32 (c) m. sec.
Paneg. 11.10.3 pens(a)e manibus pensa manibus W. A. Baehrens 1910 W2 diss. p. 75
Paneg. 11.19.3 opes spes Franz Eyssenhardt 1867 H2 p. 7
Paneg. 12.2.2 mut-/met- motu Emil Baehrens 1874 H2
Paneg. 12.16.3 ann- armorum Franz Eyssenhardt 1867 W2 p. 21
Pers. 5.90 uetauit uetabit C. F. Heinrich 1844 Reg. 1562
Pers. 5.123 -i satyrum Casaubon n.d. αVX
Petron. 64.2 -crime plocame Thomas Reinesius 1666 Paris. lat. 7989 (H) p. 93
Petron. 76.11 tantumque tantum quod Pieter Burman I 1709 Paris. lat. 7989 (H)
Phaedr. 1.19.1 -es hominis Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ D Wχ
Phaedr. 2.8.21 b. n. nuper boues Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ N
Phaedr. 2.9.2 -uulum seruum Pierre Pithou 1596 Vat. lat. 5190 (M)
Phaedr. 3 prol. 37 fiet scelus it fictis elusit Pierre Pithou 1596 Neap. IV F 58 (N) fictis eluṣ[]
Phaedr. 3.2.4 -em quidam Pierre Pithou 1596 N T
Phaedr. 3.2.16 prumta pro uita Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ N ξ
Phaedr. 3.3.6 -us hariolos Pierre Pithou 1596 Δ V Ni
Phaedr. 3.3.14 Aesopus sibi A. ibi Pierre Pithou 1596 Δ N
Phaedr. 3.4.4 -us praestatur Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ λ
Phaedr. 3.4.5 h. d. m. magis hoc dictum Pierre Pithou 1596 λ
Phaedr. 3.4.6 -us formosos Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ N
Phaedr. 3.11.6 -lec- delictum Pierre Pithou 1596 VNi
Phaedr. 3.13.11 quibus quis Pierre Pithou 1596 Nn
Phaedr. 3.17.13 monet adm- Pierre Pithou 1596 cod. Remensis (R)
Phaedr. 3.18.3 auri- auibus Pierre Pithou 1596 λ
Phaedr. 3.19.7 est t. e turba Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ N
Phaedr. 4.4.8 -msi contempti Pierre Pithou 1596 Neap. IV F 58 (N)
Phaedr. 4.6.25 -re fauor Pierre Pithou 1596 λ
Phaedr. 4.6.36 -feret profert Pierre Pithou 1596 MVNid
Phaedr. 5.22.6 -um factus Pierre Pithou 1596 MVNi
Phaedr. 5.22.17 -o nudos Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ M N
Phaedr. 5.22.18 nati qua antiqua Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ N
Phaedr. 5.22.20 -rus uersus Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ λ
Phaedr. 5.22.26 -it dixi Pierre Pithou 1596 ρ λ
Phaedr. 5.24.18 -es debet Pierre Pithou 1596 λ
Phaedr. 5.25.25 -ent prouocet Pierre Pithou 1596 VNi
Plaut. Bacch. 489 egone illam e. ut. i. Pylades Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 499 -e impono Georgius Merula Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 500 immitiorem inimiciorem Denys Lambin n.d. Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 519 a–c habet del. François Guyet 1658 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 529 -atur remoretur Bentley Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 535 tollam cont- Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 671–2 672, 671 671, 672 Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 952 exemi me exemi Pylades Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 955 forte portae Georgius Merula Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Bacch. 956 -a nostro Joannes Meursius Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Cas. 854 bella i belle Valens Acidalius 1607 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Epid. 222 ornamenta ornata Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Most. 675 terno Tranio Pius II Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Persa 734 bonamuita bona multa Denys Lambin n.d. Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Poen. 876 mulae mutae F. H. Bothe Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Poen. 1016 quidem quid est Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Rud. 519 das eas Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Stich. 36 tuum tu tuum C. H. Weise 1838 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Stich. 436 pro probe Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Trin. 398 senectuti is senectuti Ritschl 1845 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Trin. 487 neque adsalutem nequeas saltem Joachim Camerarius 1552 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plaut. Truc. 270 sistentatum te ostentatum cum Valens Acidalius 1607 Ambros. G 82 sup. (A)
Plin. epist. 8.5.3 aduoc- auocamenta Guillaume Budé c.1508 Laur. Plut. 47.36 (M)
Plin. epist. 8.6.10 c. n. r. cui in nulla re Guillaume Budé c.1508 Laur. Plut. 47.36 (M)
Plin. epist. 10.4.2 quadringenties quadragiens Guillaume Budé 1515 Bodl. Auct. L. 4. 3. sup. (I) De asse
Plin. nat. 1.XI -mum. etiam in cera minimum. aestatis Julius Sillig 1851 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 2.160 cuncta capita Johannes Caesarius 1524 E3
Plin. nat. 11.24 euauatis euitatis Jacques Daléchamps 1587 Flor. Ricc. 488 (R)
Plin. nat. 11.199 -nus intestinum Jacques Daléchamps 1587 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 12.1 restant restat ut Madvig 1873 exc. Dalecampii (z)
Plin. nat. 13.101 primus proximus Julius Sillig 1852 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 13.109 -ire uerti inueniri reuerti Jacques Daléchamps 1587 D2F2
Plin. nat. 13.132 perfer- transferuntur Jacques Daléchamps 1587 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 14.30 -ate uetustatem Jacques Daléchamps 1587 MFa
Plin. nat. 14.33 -atem suam fertilitate sua Jacques Daléchamps 1587 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 14.39 ubi ibi Jacques Daléchamps 1587 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 14.51 fuit ruit Gronovius 1669 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 14.105 -go asparagi Julius Sillig 1852 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 15.61 -ntecta superiniecta Jacques Daléchamps 1587 cod. Moneus (M)
Plin. nat. 16.156 alta talia Julius Sillig 1853 D2
Plin. nat. 16.245 primo piro Jean Hardouin 1685 D2
Plin. nat. 17.244 capita bis ara iouis Jean Hardouin 1685 D2
Plin. nat. 18.114 annoaducena annua ducena Jean Hardouin 1685 cod. Chiffl. (f)
Plin. nat. 18.224 N̅R/N.R. noster Jacques Daléchamps 1587 Paris. lat. 6797 (d)
Plin. nat. 27.136 malagmate -ta Jean Hardouin 1685 Flor. Ricc. 488 (R)
Plin. nat. 28.117 farct-/fast- fartum Jacques Daléchamps 1587 Flor. Ricc. 488 (R)
Plin. nat. 31.37 -ia mesopotamiae Julius Sillig 1851 E1
Priap. 37.9 par pars Gonsalius de Salas 1629 cod. Grisselii (G) p. 207
Priap. 42.2 facta facili Scaliger 1773 Voss. unus Burmanni apud Burmannum
Priap. 50.6 -tris noster Nicolaus Heinsius 1773 Vat. lat. 2876 (Y) apud Burmannum
Priap. 83.43 arrig-/dirig-/rig-/erigit erigat Emil Baehrens 1878 Rehdiger. 125 (r)
Prob. vita Pers. l. 37 centies centum Casaubon n.d. Lond. mus. Brit. Reg. 15 B XIX
Prop. 1.6.9 meam se iam Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 recc.
Prop. 1.9.29 manus malus Franciscus Modius 1584 recc. p. 81; 'Nunc igitur omnium egenus et insuper debitor hic sedeo, debitumque quotidie crescit'
Prop. 1.12.7 illo ullo Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 recc.
Prop. 1.20.6 Therodom- Theiodamanteo H. E. Butler 1905 Ambros. H 46 sup. New
Prop. 2.4.13 -o subitum Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Casanat. 3227
Prop. 2.6.12 c. qua cum quae Janus Dousa II 1581–92 recc.
Prop. 2.7.11 tibi mihi Hermann Kraffert 1883 Paris. lat. 7990
Prop. 2.8.8 -is uinces Authur Palmer 1883 recc.
Prop. 2.9.41 sunt sint Pieter Burman II 1780 recc.
Prop. 2.10.11 -a anime Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Salmant. 86
Prop. 2.15.1 o nox nox ο Francesco Pucci 1827 recc.
Prop. 2.23.4 promi- commissa Filippo Beroaldo I 1486 recc.
Prop. 2.26.54 uor-/uac- uocans Housman 1888 Monac. Vniu.Cim.22 (S)
Prop. 3.3.17 hic hinc Antonius Volscus 1488 recc.
Prop. 3.3.31 turba cura Jean Passerat 1608 recc.
Prop. 3.8.40 -am offensa Francesco Pucci 1827 recc.
Prop. 3.10.26 aura ara François Guyet 1742 recc. apud Heinsium
Prop. 3.11.45 canopeia conopia Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 recc.
Prop. 3.16.23 huc haec François Guyet 1742 recc. apud Heinsium
Prop. 3.20.4 -isne tantine Gronovius 1662 Berol. lat. 500
Prop. 3.22.25 -ii socia Francesco Pucci 1827 recc.
Prop. 3.24.12 uerba uera Johannes Livineius 1621 Vat. Chig. Η IV 123
Prop. 4.3.8 -us munito Filippo Beroaldo I 1486 Berol. lat. 500
Prop. 4.5.76 hunc hanc Marcus Antonius Pocchus 1502 recc.
Prop. 4.5.77 c(a)edito caedite Johannes Livineius 1621 recc.
Prop. 4.8.28 -it uolui Filippo Beroaldo I 1486 recc.
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 1 atque Tatque Bernays 1885 Brux. 10054–10056 (B)
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 4 -atur servantur Wilhelm Kroll 1898 RT RhM
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 5 -cuius alicui Wilhelm Kroll 1898 Vat. Regin. lat. 1572 (R) RhM
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 26 pestilentibus usque p. iisque Bernays 1885 Brux. 10054–10056 (B)
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 34 -am/-ae mensuras Alois Goldbacher 1885 Brux. 10054–10056 (B)
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 36 namque nam quae Wilhelm Kroll 1898 Brux. 10054–10056 (B) RhM
Ps. Apul. Ascl. 38 -es putassis Heinrich Koziol 1870 Brux. 10054–10056 (B) p. 15
Ps. Quint. decl. 1.1 quae quo J. J. Wiles 1922 Paris. lat. 7800 (C) m. sec.
Ps. Quint. decl. 1.11 -em luce Rudolf Helm 1955 Montepess. H 226 (M)
Ps. Quint. decl. 1.13 -um occisurus Winterbottom 1980 M2
Ps. Quint. decl. 1.17 -batur quaerebat Johannes Schultingh 1720 Paris. lat. 1618 (π) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 2.23 cand- cadentia Erwin Rohde 1881 Sorbon. 629 (S) apud Ritter p. 15
Ps. Quint. decl. 3.8 -am gratia Ulrich Obrecht 1698 πE
Ps. Quint. decl. 3.15 dirig- diligunt Johannes Schultingh 1720 Montepess. H 226 (M) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 4.7 -es infirmitatis Ulrich Obrecht 1698 πpc
Ps. Quint. decl. 5.12 dicis dicitis Richard Reitzenstein 1908 M2DE
Ps. Quint. decl. 5.12 -ting- contigit Richard Reitzenstein 1908 Paris. lat. 7802 (D)
Ps. Quint. decl. 5.13 -eret contenderes Richard Reitzenstein 1908 C2
Ps. Quint. decl. 5.22 ne nec Winterbottom 1980 C2E
Ps. Quint. decl. 6.4 h. ratio humanarum rerum ratio Ellis 1909 Paris. lat. 1618 (π)
Ps. Quint. decl. 6.9 -as obsta Georg Lehnert 1905 Paris. lat. 1618 (π)
Ps. Quint. decl. 6.19 -ent debuisset Richard Reitzenstein 1909 Paris. lat. 7802 (D)
Ps. Quint. decl. 8.19 inauditae tam inauditae D. R. S. Bailey 1976 Paris. lat. 15103 (E)
Ps. Quint. decl. 8.22 -rum conditorium Johannes Schultingh 1720 Vat. Ottob. 1207 (O) apud Burmannum; m. sec.
Ps. Quint. decl. 9.21 -os inclusus Georg Lehnert 1905 Paris. lat. 1618 (π)
Ps. Quint. decl. 10.11 rict- risus T. J. van Almeloveen 1720 Audomar. 663 (A) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 12.8 et at Johannes Schultingh 1720 Dpc apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 12.17 sper- spirare Hugo Dessauer 1898 Apc
Ps. Quint. decl. 12.27 -et cadit Pieter Burman I 1720 Paris. lat. 1618 (π)
Ps. Quint. decl. 13.3 gress- egressus Gronovius 1720 Paris. lat. 15103 (E) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 13.6 et id Johannes Schultingh 1720 Audomar. 663 (A) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 14.2 adfl- et affluentes Winterbottom 1980 πA
Ps. Quint. decl. 14.9 -e(s) fortassis Fritz Walter 1925 Paris. lat. 1618 (π) Philol.
Ps. Quint. decl. 14.12 qur/cur/quos quas Richard Reitzenstein 1909 MA p. 71
Ps. Quint. decl. 16.6 -imum plurium Richard Reitzenstein 1909 Paris. lat. 15103 (E) p. 61
Ps. Quint. decl. 17.12 ita ista Richard Reitzenstein 1909 Dac
Ps. Quint. decl. 17.16 fat- facto Pieter Burman I 1720 Montepess. H 226 (M)
Ps. Quint. decl. 18.15 exut- exustos Johannes Schultingh 1720 Paris. lat. 7802 (D) apud Burmannum
Ps. Quint. decl. 19.8 -es vide Johannes Schultingh 1720 Bamb. M IV 13 (B) apud Burmannum; m. pr.
Ps. Sol. Pont. 10 candidit/-us canduit Emil Baehrens 1879 E
Publil. sent. C 39 e. o. oportet esse Johann v. G. Fröhlich 1872 Turic. C 78 (T) apud Meyer
Publil. sent. E 5 -at superest Bentley 1726 κ et cod. Gryphisw.
Publil. sent. E 21 Sine Etiam sine Orelli 1832 Veron. Capit. 168 (O) ed. alt.
Publil. sent. P 7 d. o. occultas divitias F. H. Bothe 1834 Monac. 6292 (F)
Publil. sent. P 43 -i stultus … iocus prudentis vultus … loco Janus Gruterus 1708 Veron. Capit. 168 (O) Notae postumae p. 338
Querol. 4.20 om. prologus Léon Herrmann 1937 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) 'Herrmann of course pays dear for his successes'
Querol. 5.3 a. c. atque e contrario Konrad Rittershausen 1595 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 5.20 non g. ingrati S. C. Klinkhamer 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 8.23 similem esse simile est esse Pierre Pithou 1564 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Daniel
Querol. 10.11 Nus- Numquam Rudolf Peiper 1875 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 12.4 et es Paul Thomas 1921 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) Mnem.
Querol. 22.9 u. hae p. ut tecta pateant Gisbert Koen 1767 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 32.11 eligunt eliciunt H. F. Cannegieter 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Klinkhamer
Querol. 33.13 -ur cognitor J. C. Wernsdorf 1875 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Peiper
Querol. 34.22 e. i. et nos ita Louis Havet 1880 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 37.23 se/si sed Rudolf Peiper 1875 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 38.5 rei regi Pierre Pithou 1564 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Daniel
Querol. 46.5 quod quos H. F. Cannegieter 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Klinkhamer
Querol. 47.10 pauper paulisper Konrad Rittershausen 1595 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 49.8 laudem- ludamus Pierre Pithou 1564 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H) apud Daniel
Querol. 49.21 -es uide S. C. Klinkhamer 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 51.2 -que uilisquam Pierre Daniel 1564 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 53.18 faci- gaudeas S. C. Klinkhamer 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 59.15 Peiper illius unius Pierre Daniel 1564 HSA
Querol. 59.21 ab- subdidisti Harald Hagendahl 1941 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 60.1 Peiper -ari criminali Pierre Daniel 1564 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Querol. 60.25 -em tales S. C. Klinkhamer 1829 Hamburg. Scrin. 185 (H)
Quint. decl. 247.8 at ac Paul von Winterfeld 1895 Montepess. H 126 (A) p. 30
Quint. decl. 248.13 cum i. a. tum in alterum Erwin Rohde 1884 Leid. Voss. misc. 7 (L) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 252.12 prors- profusus Constantin Ritter 1884 Leid. Voss. misc. 7 (L)
Quint. decl. 253.4 ciuium uirium Constantin Ritter 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 254.10 ut et Constantin Ritter 1884 ACD
Quint. decl. 259.7 -i(a)e innocentia Gronovius 1665 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 259.7 fec- effecit Lennart Håkanson 1984 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C) apud Winterbottom
Quint. decl. 259.8 quid/quo quod Johannes Schultingh 1720 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C) apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 259.9 emin- imminentis Gronovius 1665 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 259.22 -e/-i/-em putares Constantin Ritter 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 259.24 perit- petiturum Constantin Ritter 1884 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 260.2 existimandum existimo dandum Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) jurisconsulte
Quint. decl. 260.11 -a/-ando alioqui(n) Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 260.24 at ac Pierre Ayrault 1563 AC
Quint. decl. 260.32 -atum cupiditatibus Erwin Rohde 1884 D2 apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 261.2 -eat debet Erwin Rohde 1884 Monac. lat. 309 (B) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 264.10 non ne Constantin Ritter 1884 CD
Quint. decl. 265.10 ego ita ego Erwin Rohde 1884 ACD2 apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 266.4 patiente an p. Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 270.14 accid- accedit Johannes Schultingh 1720 Dsl vel D2 apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 272.7 cui cuius Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 272.8 -am illa Erwin Rohde 1884 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 274.13 dictum delictum Pierre Ayrault 1563 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 276.7 quod quid Pierre Ayrault 1563 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 277.7 -cepit concepti Pierre Ayrault 1563 A2
Quint. decl. 277.8 -eret educaret Pierre Ayrault 1563 CD2
Quint. decl. 289.6 me me non Pierre Pithou 1580 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 292.6 fact- fatum Pierre Pithou 1580 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 294.7 -am apertae summa parte Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 295.3 hoc hic Erwin Rohde 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 299.2 pelag- epilogi Sölve Wahlén 1930 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 301.2 NARRATIO DECLAMATIO Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) -cio D
Quint. decl. 306.7 -fic- effecit Pierre Ayrault 1563 Vat. Chig. H VIII 261 (C)
Quint. decl. 308.1 ciuitatis c. et Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 308.9 -rima plura Erwin Rohde 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 308.13 nec ne Constantin Ritter 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 309.2 suppl- simpliciter Gronovius 1665 CD
Quint. decl. 310.1 -cium iudicum Latino Latini 1677 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 312.3 -atis cupiditas Johannes Schultingh 1720 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Burmannum; s.l.
Quint. decl. 313.1 paen- pœnitentia Pierre Pithou 1580 D2 penitencia D2
Quint. decl. 313.10 inimicus iniquus Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 315.9 nos os Ulrich Obrecht 1698 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) jurisconsulte
Quint. decl. 316.1 quod quo Erwin Rohde 1884 CD apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 317.9 innitur innititur Pierre Pithou 1580 CD
Quint. decl. 321.6 utrius -usque Pierre Ayrault 1563 Montepess. H 126 (A)
Quint. decl. 321.23 -a sceleris Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 321.27 defendi deferendi Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 321.27 qualemque qualemcunque Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 322.2 nu- ullum Gronovius 1665 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 322.5 -es occideris Erwin Rohde 1884 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 323.9 tale tale est Constantin Ritter 1884 D2
Quint. decl. 323.14 destina- dedicationem Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 326.3 -um nuntio Pierre Pithou 1580 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 327.3 graue. sit graue. sit graue sit Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 328.2 patre fratre Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 328.7 -ate citare Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 329.17 -tem pestilenti(a)e Pieter Burman I 1720 D2
Quint. decl. 336.9 t. a te transferebatur ad te Johannes Schultingh 1720 β apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 338.7 -tre pater Johannes Schultingh 1720 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 338.12 scit sciuit Johannes Schultingh 1720 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Burmannum; s.l.
Quint. decl. 339.5 -e existimari Erwin Rohde 1884 CD apud Ritter
Quint. decl. 340.4 abess- abiissent Petrus Francius 1720 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Burmannum; s.l.
Quint. decl. 342.10 non num Johannes Schultingh 1720 AD apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 344.7 uerb- uero Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 348.7 se fer- referat Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 349.10 illud … nobis istud … uobis Constantin Ritter 1884 CD
Quint. decl. 349.11 fortissimum fortis sum Pierre Pithou 1580 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. decl. 352.3 -eret cluderent Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 369.2 ergo ego Petrus Francius 1720 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) apud Burmannum
Quint. decl. 371.4 -aueris dampnareris Constantin Ritter 1884 D2
Quint. decl. 376.2 no- uobis Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D)
Quint. decl. 376.3 induc- indicere Pierre Ayrault 1563 CD
Quint. decl. 379.4 pretii precio Pierre Ayrault 1563 Palat. lat. 1558 (D) s.l.
Quint. inst. 1.4.14 ipsa alteri alteri Ferdinand Meister 1876 Lond. Burn. 243 Philol.
Quint. inst. 2.12.1 plerum- plerosque Petrus Francius 1720 Paris. lat. 14146 (E) apud Burmannum
Quint. inst. 2.17.2 etiam/ea eam Karl Halm 1868–9 Bodl. D'Orv. 13
Quint. inst. 3.6.38 -iecit subicit G. L. Spalding 1798 Cantab. Ioann. 91 (J)
Quint. inst. 4.3.12 ut uel G. L. Spalding 1803 Ps. Cassiod. rhet. 16
Quint. inst. 4.5.8 quod/quid quo Madvig 1873 Paris. lat. 14146 (E)
Quint. inst. 4.5.14 -uit putabit G. L. Spalding 1803 Iul. Vict. rhet. p. 418
Quint. inst. 5.1.3 uim uiam Jodocus Badius 1516 Iul. Vict. rhet. p. 403–4
Quint. inst. 5.6.2 -it adiciet G. L. Spalding 1803 Iul. Vict. rhet. p. 405–6
Quint. inst. 5.7.11 laqueo sed laqueos et A. G. Gernhard 1830 Bodl. D'Orv. 13 p. 576
Quint. inst. 5.7.35 -em diuinationis Raphael Regius 1493 Iul. Vict. rhet. p. 407
Quint. inst. 5.7.35 -em diuinationum Ragnar Törnebladh 1860 Paris. lat. 7719 (D)
Quint. inst. 5.10.22 est et Ferdinand Meister 1865 Paris. lat. 7723 (P)
Quint. inst. 5.10.99 et illis/in illis in illis et in illis Friedrich Emlein 1907 Laur. Plut. 46.9
Quint. inst. 5.10.123 sint sit G. L. Spalding 1803 Ambros. E. 153 sup. (A)
Quint. inst. 5.11.23 interum i. similitudo C. G. Zumpt 1831 Paris. lat. 14146 (E)
Quint. inst. 5.14.33 lato elato Ferdinand Meister 1856 Iul. Vict. rhet. p. 421
Quint. inst. 6.1.7 -es -entur moris uidetur Ferdinand Meister 1853 Bodl. D'Orv. 13
Quint. inst. 6.2.32 insequitur hinc sequetur G. L. Spalding 1803 epit. Patricii
Quint. inst. 6.3.110 u. esse urbana ex serio G. L. Spalding 1803 Vat. lat. 1762
Sall. Iug. 12.3 suam sua Janus Gruterus 1607 Monac. lat. 19479 et 4559
Sall. hist. fr. 1.107 M acc[]as accitas Gerlach 1856 Vindob. L 117 (Funari)
Scrib. Larg. 46 -ere oblinire Andreas Cratander 1529 Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Scrib. Larg. 113 aliis alii G. Helmreich 1887 Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Scrib. Larg. 121 amii ami K. E. Georges 1887 Tolet. 98.12 (T) apud Helmreich
Scrib. Larg. 122 d. ab- datur obducenda Paulus Leopardus s.xvi med. Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Scrib. Larg. 195 om. malum G. Helmreich 1887 Vindoc. 109 (Va)
Scrib. Larg. 198 -um stomachi Johannes Rhodius 1655 Vindoc. 109 (Va)
Scrib. Larg. 200 vel ut P. Jourdan 1919 T Va
Scrib. Larg. 200 quoque quaeque G. Helmreich 1887 Vindoc. 109 (Va)
Scrib. Larg. 200 -sumatur consummantur G. Helmreich 1887 Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Scrib. Larg. 201 c. T. Tryphonis chirurgi P. Jourdan 1919 Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Scrib. Larg. 201 actum factum Johannes Rhodius 1655 Casin. 69 (Ca)
Scrib. Larg. 206 -ibus fronti Johannes Rhodius 1655 Casin. 69 (Ca)
Scrib. Larg. 260 -am/-um liquefacta C. Lausdei pre-2020 Casin. 69 (Ca)
Scrib. Larg. praef. 7 quae qua Johannes Rhodius 1655 Tolet. 98.12 (T)
Sen. Ag. 127 tu- timido Bentley 1882 cod. Orator. (O)
Sen. Ag. 258 -a/-i maritam Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Laur. 37.3
Sen. Ag. 264 in t. toro Girolamo Avanzi 1517 Ambros. D 276 inf. (M)
Sen. Ag. 915 times metus Lipsius 1621 Ambros. D 276 inf. (M) apud Scriverium
Sen. Herc. O. 145 feracas pias/fera caseta fera Caspia Jodocus Badius 1514 Bodl. Canon. Class. Lat. 93 (Ox.)
Sen. Herc. O. 542 -it quatis F. H. Bothe 1819 Eton. 110 (e)
Sen. Herc. O. 819 iussa visa Girolamo Avanzi 1517 cod. Orator. (O)
Sen. Herc. O. 825 vix vis F. H. Bothe 1819 Eton. 110 (e)
Sen. Herc. f. 604 quae i. qui iussit Lipsius 1798 cod. Mogunt. apud Baden
Sen. Herc. f. 823 ob- aborta H. Weber 1907 V et recc.
Sen. Herc. f. 1032–4 choro attribuit Leo 1878 Ambros. D 276 inf. (M)
Sen. Med. 132 ingest-/incest- incertum M. A. Delrio 1619–20 Vat. Regin. lat. 1500 (r)
Sen. Med. 256 quem/quippe te quippe quem Gronovius 1661 Ambros. G 82 sup. (R)
Sen. Med. 573 quod- quique Gronovius 1661 O1
Sen. Med. 677 effudit effundit Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 P.Mich. inv. 4969 fr. 36
Sen. Med. 1026 -i sublimis Hendrik Wagenvoort 1953 Qpc Mnem.
Sen. Oed. 50 crem- tremat Gronovius 1661 cod. Orator. (O)
Sen. Phaedr. 334 hac/h(a)ec hic Daniele Caetani 1493 cod. Pincianus (Delrio) apud Bothe
Sen. Phaedr. 567 dur- dirus Girolamo Avanzi 1517 OT
Sen. Phaedr. 883 -it abnuis Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Camerac. B 55 (K)
Sen. Phoen. 358 d. a. patri date arma matri Gronovius 1661 cod. Orator. (O)
Sen. Thy. 585 aeternis Aetnaeis Girolamo Avanzi 1517 Eton. 110 (e) ethneis e
Sen. Thy. 777 rup- raptum Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Laur. 37.6
Sen. Thy. 916 hoc, hoc hoc haec M. A. Delrio 1619–20 Casin. 392 P (Q)
Sen. Thy. 1104 -repto praecepto Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Kac
Sen. Tro. 463 -yti inclita Nicolaus Heinsius 1742 Paris. lat. 8260 (P)
Sen. Tro. 504 turris-/turpes- tutasque Leo 1876 Ambros. D 276 inf. (M) Hermes
Sen. Tro. 629 -am erutum Bentley 1899 Mediol. Trivult. 809
Sen. apocol. 3.1 educ- seducit Gronovius 1658 Sangall. 569 (S)
Sen. contr. 9.3.12 cestissimus/certissimum ius cestii simius André Schott 1603 Antuerp. 411 (A) m. al.
Sen. contr. 10 praef. 15 dicendis eam p. dicendi sectam putat Madvig 1872 M (teste Müller) apud Kiessling
Sen. contr. exc. 8.5 sine nisi Gronovius 1649 cod. Mutin.
Sen. dial. 5.14.6 praeciperet. quem praeciperet ei quem Friedrich Haase 1852 Laur. 76.32 (L)
Sen. dial. 5.19.5 adest id est Muretus 1585 Laur. 76.32 (L)
Sen. dial. 5.23.6 inignem p. in igne posuit Madvig 1871 Laur. 76.32 (L)
Sen. dial. 5.33.3 -parandum computandum Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Laur. 76.32 (L)
Sen. dial. 6.5.4 conuertistite conuertis te Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Laur. 76.41 (F)
Sen. dial. 6.9.4 -us perituras Bentley 1899 dett. apud Hedicke
Sen. dial. 6.12.1 in misso in amisso H. A. Koch 1875 Laur. 76.41 (F)
Sen. dial. 6.12.6 male illo malo illae C. R. Fickert 1845 Laur. 76.41 (F)
Sen. dial. 6.15.2 tamen tamen tam M. C. Gertz 1886 Laur. 76.41 (F)
Sen. dial. 6.22.1 nequitia neque ulla Friedrich Haase 1852 Laur. 76.41 (F)
Sen. dial. 7.10.1 non sine/non si non nisi Madvig 1873 Paris. lat. 15086 (P)
Sen. dial. 9.2.10 -am deploratae Bentley 1899 A1 apud Hedicke
Sen. dial. 11.1.1 -int fecerunt C. F. W. Müller 1865–6 D H V
Sen. epist. 7.5 agit-/igit- agatur Otto Rossbach 1914 Q1 apud Hense
Sen. epist. 26.4 et quis ecquis Madvig 1873 Quirin. B. II. 6 (Q)
Sen. epist. 42.2 nequitiae est nequitiaest Otto Hense 1898 LQ
Sen. epist. 44.1 a dis sunt/ad/// sunt adissunt Otto Hense 1914 Q1
Sen. epist. 48.6 sci- inscientia Lipsius 1605 Paris. lat. 8658 A (P) m. sec.
Sen. epist. 52.5 -abunt lassarunt Lipsius 1605 Vat. lat. 2207 (Chatelain)
Sen. epist. 54.2 egere/agere egerere E. Chatelain 1877 Marc. 270 s.l.
Sen. epist. 61.3 ui ut Wilhelm Gemoll 1886 L2 p. 12
Sen. epist. 66.15 in utramque in utraque Friedrich Haase 1853 QU
Sen. epist. 68.13 disputa- dispumauit Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Laur. Plut. 7640 (L) m. sec.
Sen. epist. 70.18 -iget exegit Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Paris. lat. 8540 (p)
Sen. epist. 71.17 et ut Erasmus 1515 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q)
Sen. epist. 71.21 torqueri iacere Paul Wolters 1881 Quirin. B. II. 6 (Q) p. 40
Sen. epist. 72.7 dat fortuna dant fortunae C. R. Fickert 1842 V/V2
Sen. epist. 75.7 quando quae/quandoque quando tam P. Hauck 1910 Quirin. B. II. 6 (Q)
Sen. epist. 83.26 villa- vitiatur Haupt 1866 Paris. lat. 8539 (b) p. 15
Sen. epist. 83.26 radios rabidos Haupt 1866 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q) p. 15
Sen. epist. 87.13 hic r. his respondebimus H. A. Koch 1875 Quirin. B. II. 6 (Q) Fleckeiseni annal.
Sen. epist. 88.29 -et habeo Lipsius 1605 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q) s.l.
Sen. epist. 90.38 redacti redegit Franz Bücheler 1878 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 90.39 -ens/-eris pelles Friedrich Haase 1853 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 92.1 se perfert se refert Madvig 1873 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 92.7 sonis solis Franz Bücheler 1878 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 94.59 etantanto/e(que) tanto et in tanto Johannes Schweighäuser 1809 Patav. bibl. Univ. 852 (π)
Sen. epist. 95.27 co(n)guntur congeruntur Georg Windhaus 1879 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q) p. 15
Sen. epist. 95.31 -rent luerentur Friedrich Haase 1853 cod. Rehdig. I (Fickert) m. al.
Sen. epist. 95.48 -cium g. beneficum gratis Madvig 1884 WXpc
Sen. epist. 95.66 eam demum eandem vim Erasmus 1515 WX (ψ)
Sen. epist. 98.11 -didi- perdimus Muretus 1585 Patav. bibl. Univ. 913
Sen. epist. 101.10 -abit aptauit Henri Estienne 1586 Q1ψ p. 104 ('meo quidem iudicio')
Sen. epist. 104.9 -as/-atus iudicabis Julius Bartsch 1869 cod. Uelc. RhM
Sen. epist. 106.6 et a. ut auaritia Georg Windhaus 1879 ψ
Sen. epist. 108.21 crudel- credulitatis Lipsius 1605 recc.
Sen. epist. 109.4 facit quoque facitque Madvig 1873 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 109.10 partes sui pares suis Fernandus Pincianus 1536 recc.
Sen. epist. 109.18 haec/hanc hoc Janus Gruterus 1594 Harl. 2659
Sen. epist. 116.3 -ia grata Georg Windhaus 1879 cod. Uelc.
Sen. epist. 116.6 receda- reducamus M. C. Gertz 1884 cod. Uelc. Mélanges Graux p. 378
Sen. epist. 120.10 n. d. et non deesse ei Johannes Schweighäuser 1809 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q)
Sen. epist. 120.19 qua- (a)equalitas Gronovius 1649 cod. Uelc. p. 243
Sen. epist. 120.19 uerus/uero/uer(a)e ueri Gronovius 1649 cod. Uelc. p. 243
Sen. epist. 121.8 niti n. et Johannes Schweighäuser 1809 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q)
Sen. epist. 122.18 recto retro Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q)
Sen. epist. 123.1 quod i. n. quam indignandum nihil Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Patav. bibl. Univ. 913
Sen. epist. 123.5 -iam/-ia molesta Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Quirin. A. IV. 4 (q) et ψ?
Sen. epist. 124.5 deret/daret debet Otto Rossbach 1888 Vat. lat. 2201 p. 161
Sen. epist. 124.20 e. aliquando b. erit aliquod bonum Julius Bartsch 1869 Harl. 2659 RhM
Sen. epist. 124.21 illum et illud Johannes Schweighäuser 1809 Harl. 2659
Sen. nat. 1 praef. 3 dim- deminutio Muretus 1585 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 1 praef. 6 deo dei Erasmus 1515 W2
Sen. nat. 1.1.2 dicit/discit scit Madvig 1873 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 1.1.10 defuissent defeci- Madvig 1873 H1
Sen. nat. 1.2.6 nec ne M. C. Gertz 1874 P1υ
Sen. nat. 1.3.10 om. ex Wilhelm Gemoll 1890 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 1.4.4 prior propior Erasmus 1515 Marc. lat. Z.268 (W)
Sen. nat. 1.5.14 aduersus ad uerum Fernandus Pincianus 1536 ZL2
Sen. nat. 1.13.2 natur(a)e solis natura solide B. Larisch 1874 TCam.DX
Sen. nat. 1.13.2 percussu rep- Wilhelm Kroll 1907 W2 apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 1.14.3 percussu rep- Alfred Gercke 1907 recc.
Sen. nat. 1.17.3 -polari interpellari André Schott 1615 ζ
Sen. nat. 2.2.2 et est J. Bongarsius 1845 W2 apud Fickert
Sen. nat. 2.4.1 hoc hunc Wilhelm Kroll 1907 ζL2B apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.5.1 ut (a)eque -gas/ut equ(a)e -ges nisi eque interrogas Otto Rossbach 1907 Escor. N.III.16 (f) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.11.1 iam ima Muretus 1585 E2
Sen. nat. 2.12.3 dist- destillare Wilhelm Kroll 1907 Escor. O.III.2 (R) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.12.3 dist- destillare Franz Skutsch 1907 Escor. O.III.2 (R) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.21.2 nisi ex (eo quod) nisi ex eo Madvig 1873 Montepess. 116 (G)
Sen. nat. 2.21.2 nisi ex (eo quod) nisi ex igne Günther 1907 Genev. lat. 77 (Z) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.22.3 ne hoc nec hoc Madvig 1873 ζ
Sen. nat. 2.24.1 deinde de igne Fernandus Pincianus 1536 D2TX
Sen. nat. 2.24.3 -eres permittes C. R. Fickert 1845 δFP
Sen. nat. 2.26.5 uerter- urerentur Fernandus Pincianus 1536 E2
Sen. nat. 2.26.7 quod/que ut Madvig 1873 ζ
Sen. nat. 2.32.4 sed non/si si non Alfred Gercke 1907 recc.
Sen. nat. 2.34.4 quidem/om. quid Luigi Castiglioni 1921 W2
Sen. nat. 2.35.2 nec ne M. C. Gertz 1874 ZW
Sen. nat. 2.40.1 -mo primum B. Axelson 1933 Escor. N.III.16 (f)
Sen. nat. 2.42.3 iud- indicauerunt Erasmus 1515 Bamb. M.IV.16 (B)
Sen. nat. 2.46 ad omne et m. admouet manum Alfred Gercke 1907 W2 et recc.
Sen. nat. 2.46 uim/et uim sed uim Alfred Gercke 1907 recc.
Sen. nat. 2.47 id (d)en- denuntiat Friedrich Haase 1852 Leid. B.P.L. 199 (O)
Sen. nat. 2.51 fulmina del. F. Schultess 1888 Paris. lat. 6628 (P)
Sen. nat. 2.52.2 -oris interiori Alfred Gercke 1907 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 2.52.2 arboris del. I. Opsopoeus 1587 ZP
Sen. nat. 2.54.2 -a(m) uniuersum Zimmermann 1907 ZU2 apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 2.54.3 citi icti B. Axelson 1933 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 2.54.3 terit teritur Fortunatus 1522 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 2.55.4 -um motu F. Schultess 1888 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 2.58.1 celerum e. celerrimum est Fortunatus 1522 A1 et recc.
Sen. nat. 2.59.5 corrig- confligitur Haupt 1876 recc.
Sen. nat. 3 praef. 3 post meridianas horas postmeridianis horis Erasmus 1515 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3 praef. 9 inueniri iniri Muretus 1585 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3 praef. 10 uid- uicisse G. Müller 1886 f et recc.
Sen. nat. 3.1.1 elis(i)us eleus Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Bamb. M.IV.16 (B)
Sen. nat. 3.2.3 fluuia pluuia I. Opsopoeus 1587 Cam.DET v.l.
Sen. nat. 3.3 -ant seruat Fortunatus 1522 δ
Sen. nat. 3.6.1 -cipit concepit Franz Skutsch 1907 W2 et recc. apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 3.10.2 sunt sint H. J. Müller 1876 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.10.3 quia quod Fortunatus 1522 Bamb. M.IV.16 (B)
Sen. nat. 3.11.3 uocant/uocent euocent Fortunatus 1522 recc.
Sen. nat. 3.11.5 uiros riuos I. Opsopoeus 1587 υ
Sen. nat. 3.11.6 acta apta Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Bamb. M.IV.16 (B)
Sen. nat. 3.11.6 autem amnem Gronovius 1658 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.14.2 -em aera Friedrich Haase 1852 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.15.3 -e/natura matura Fortunatus 1522 Palat. lat. 1579 (V)
Sen. nat. 3.15.3 -entur durantur P. Oltramare 1929 W2
Sen. nat. 3.15.6 perfecerat/patefecit patefecerat Friedrich Haase 1852 Paris. lat. 6386 (T)
Sen. nat. 3.16.3 -et solis Alfred Gercke 1907 Marc. lat. Z.268 (W)
Sen. nat. 3.16.3 -os suus H. C. Michaelis 1854 Speculum naturale 5.29
Sen. nat. 3.17.1 maria in m. Fortunatus 1522 Palat. lat. 1579 (V)
Sen. nat. 3.18.4 lauda- luctatus D. W. Triller 1742 recc.
Sen. nat. 3.20.4 cib- tubosque Muretus 1585 Alb. Meteora 2.3.18
Sen. nat. 3.22 hoc/hic hec C. R. Fickert 1845 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 3.24.3 euaporatio e uaporario Gronovius 1649 recc.
Sen. nat. 3.24.4 introeuntes nitro euntes M. C. Gertz 1884
Sen. nat. 3.25.2 nec ne M. C. Gertz 1874 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.25.9 -us lacu Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.25.11 siue seu Franz Skutsch 1907 Genev. lat. 77 (Z) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 3.26.2 -atur reuerberato Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Monac. Clm 11049 (U)
Sen. nat. 3.26.3 -to secretos Luigi Castiglioni 1921 Escor. N.III.16 (f)
Sen. nat. 3.26.5 -e mari Franz Skutsch 1907 Genev. lat. 77 (Z) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 3.26.6 fundat -it Alfred Gercke 1907 Marc. lat. Z.268 (W)
Sen. nat. 3.26.8 inibi/nubi ubi L. Fromondus 1632 WCam.DET
Sen. nat. 3.26.8 -gorum naufragiorum Haupt 1876 Exeter 3549B (X)
Sen. nat. 3.27.1 aut an M. C. Gertz 1884 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.27.1 perc- procurrant M. C. Gertz 1874 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.27.5 -et sustinent Madvig 1873 F1
Sen. nat. 3.27.7 ingruunt -uerunt O. Waldaestel 1888 Paris. lat. 6386 (T)
Sen. nat. 3.27.7 reuol- resolutis Gronovius 1658 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.27.11 -reptum diremptum Erasmus 1515 Paris. lat. 6386 (T)
Sen. nat. 3.27.14 aut an Wilhelm Gemoll 1890 Paris. lat. 6386 (T)
Sen. nat. 3.28.6 maximisque maximis Wilhelm Gemoll 1890 π
Sen. nat. 3.29.1 -ant profundantur Franz Skutsch 1907 recc. apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 3.29.1 bellum belum Fortunatus 1522 Cam.2D
Sen. nat. 3.29.3 -to liniamenta Fortunatus 1522 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.29.5 -eriue abolerique Luigi Castiglioni 1922 Cambrai 939 (Cam.)
Sen. nat. 3.29.6 -us impetu Erasmus 1515 W2
Sen. nat. 3.29.7 curr- decurrent Luigi Castiglioni 1921 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 3.30.3 auar- aut aut auaritia H. Mueck 1890 L2
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 2 si modo modo (prius) Fernandus Pincianus 1536
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 4 quisque patet q. W. H. Alexander 1948 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 4 fortasse — petitur del. Leo 1907 ZU apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 5 fieris ferieris P. Oltramare 1929 D2X
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 5 uilleium uitellium Lipsius 1605 ZL2 ad Tac. Ann. 6.32
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 7 -a -e incertam fidem Erasmus 1515 ZW
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 9 aliam alienam Muretus 1585 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 10 talia alia Fernandus Pincianus 1536 D1 et recc.
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 10 suscip- suspicere Erasmus 1515 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 13 -rit dixeris Fortunatus 1522 W2
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 16 -uit examinaui H. C. Michaelis 1854 recc.
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 16 q. me quidem Madvig 1873 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 17 ap- operto H. A. Koch 1874 recc.
Sen. nat. 4 praef. 19 a te te Erasmus 1515 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4 tit. De Nilo De nilo Alfred Gercke 1907 Cambrai 939 (Cam.)
Sen. nat. 4.2.1 usura (h)ausura Fortunatus 1522 E2
Sen. nat. 4.2.1 -it posset C. F. W. Müller 1866 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.4 -que del. Friedrich Haase 1852 Leid. B.P.L. 199 (O)
Sen. nat. 4.2.5 leui leni Erasmus 1529 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.5 ubi in ubi Fortunatus 1522 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.7 hoc hac Fernandus Pincianus 1536 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.10 nimiumque minimumque Fortunatus 1522 ZθW
Sen. nat. 4.2.12 et aliud/aqu(a)e atque aliud Erasmus 1515 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.18 est del. Franz Skutsch 1907 ρ apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 4.2.18 om. quae Fortunatus 1522 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 4.2.20 illis illic S. Vassis 1907–8 DX
Sen. nat. 4.2.22 -su cursum Diels 1886 Marc. lat. Z.268 (W)
Sen. nat. 4.2.22 -rit resederunt Madvig 1873 ZL2υ
Sen. nat. 4.2.23 fauere flauere Fortunatus 1522 DXW2
Sen. nat. 4.2.24 nuntium initium Haupt 1876 ZL2U
Sen. nat. 4.2.25 -cunt crescit Fortunatus 1522 Paris. lat. 6386 (T)
Sen. nat. 4.2.28 -quando alioquin Madvig 1873 L2υ
Sen. nat. 4.2.28 -munt premit L. Fromondus 1632
Sen. nat. 4.2.30 quasi quare Fortunatus 1522 υ
Sen. nat. 4.3.5 non/ne nec B. Larisch 1865 STX
Sen. nat. 4.4.1 fallar fatear Franz Skutsch 1907 k2 apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 4.7.2 -asset excantassit Fritz Schoell 1907 Genev. lat. 77 (Z) apud Gercke
Sen. nat. 4.11.3 earum del. D. Vottero 1980 Escor. O.III.2 (R)
Sen. nat. 5.1.2 adu- diuersum Bentley 1672 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 5.9.4 appareat -ret Alfred Gercke 1907 W1
Sen. nat. 5.15.1 nec … superemin- ne … superinminente Gronovius 1658 Genev. lat. 77 (Z)
Sen. nat. 5.15.3 relinq- reliqu

About

Database of Greek and Latin Conjectural Emendations Attested in MSS

Resources

License

Stars

Watchers

Forks